Miscellany

by Mary Baker Eddy




Table of Contents

Part 1

Chapter 1

Chapter II

Appendix to Part 1

Part II

Chapter I

Chapter II

Chapter III β€” Personality

Chapter IV β€” Messages to the Mother Church

Chapter V β€” Christian Science Hall, Concord, N. H.

Chapter VI β€” First Church of Christ, Scientist, Concord, N. H.

Chapter VII β€” Pleasant View and Concord, N. H.

Chapter VIII β€” Dedicatory Messages to Branch Churches

Chapter IX β€” Letters to Branch Churches

Chapter X β€” Admonition and Counsel

Chapter XI β€” Questions Answered

Chapter XII β€” Readers, Teachers, Lecturers

Chapter XIII β€” Christmas

Chapter XIV β€” Contributions to Newspapers and Magazines

Chapter XV β€” Peace and War

Chapter XVI β€” Tributes

Chapter XVII β€” Answers to Criticisms

Chapter XVIII β€” Authorship of Science and Health

Chapter XIX β€” A Memorable Coincidence and Historical Facts

Chapter XX β€” General Miscellany


Page v


1 Lord God of Hosts, be with us yet;
   Lest we forget — lest we forget !
3   β€” Kipling's Recessional


 IN these stirring times of church building, when the
 attention of the whole world is fixed on Christian Sci-
6 ence, when the growth and prosperity of the Cause are
 matters of general wonderment and frequent comment,
 when the right hand of fellowship is being extended to
9 this people by other Christian denominations, when pop-
 ularity threatens to supersede persecution, it is well
 for earnest and loyal Christian Scientists to fortify them-
12 selves against the mesmerism of personal pride and self-
 adulation by recalling the following historical facts: β€”

 1. That Mary Baker Eddy discovered Christian Sci-
15 ence in 1866, and established the Cause on a sound basis
 by healing the sick and reforming the sinner quickly
 and completely, and doing this work "without money and
18 without price."

 2. That in 1875, after nine years of arduous prelimi-
 nary labor, she wrote and published the Christian Sci-
21 ence textbook, "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures;" that over four hundred thousand copies of
 this book have been sold — an unparalleled record for
24 a work of this description; that it has healed multi-
 tudes of disease and has revealed God to well-nigh


Page vi


1 countless numbers — facts which prove, (1) that Science
 and Health does not need to be interpreted to those who
3 are earnestly seeking Truth; (2) that it is not possible
 to state truth absolutely in a simpler or more pleasing
 form.

6 3. That no one on earth to-day, aside from Mrs.
 Eddy, knows anything about Christian Science except
 as he has learned it from her and from her writings; and
9 Christian Scientists are honest only as they give her full
 credit for this extraordinary work.

 4. That Mrs. Eddy organized The First Church of
12 Christ, Scientist, in Boston, Mass., devised its church
 government, originated its form of public worship, wrote
 its Church Manual and Tenets, and always has been
15 and is now its guide, guardian, Leader, and wise and
 unerring counsellor.

 5. That Mrs. Eddy founded The Christian Science
18 Journal in 1883, was its first editor and for years the
 principal contributor to its columns; that she organized
 The Christian Science Publishing Society, which in 1898,
21 with its assets valued at forty-five thousand dollars,
 she made over to trustees under agreement to pay all
 future profits to her church; that at the same time she
24 presented to her church the property at 95 and 97
 Falmouth Street, then occupied by the Publishing So-
 ciety and valued at twenty-five thousand dollars, reserv-
27 ing for herself only a place for the publishing of her
 works; that she established the Christian Science Sentinel
 and authorized Der Herold der Christian Science, both of


Page vii


1 which, together with The Christian Science Journal, are
 the property of the Publishing Society.

3 Strive it ever so hard, The Church of Christ, Scientist,
 can never do for its Leader what its Leader has done
 for this church; but its members can so protect their
6 own thoughts that they are not unwittingly made to de-
 prive their Leader of her rightful place as the revelator
 to this age of the immortal truths testified to by Jesus
9 and the prophets.

 Deeds, not words, are the sound test of love; and
 the helpfulness of consistent and constant right think-
12 ing — intelligent thinking untainted by the emotionalism
 which is largely self-glorification — is a reasonable service
 which all Christian Scientists can render their Leader.


15 β€” The Christian Science Journal, May, 1906

Part I: The First Church of Christ Scientist


Page 3


1 MESSAGE FROM MARY BAKER EDDY ON THE OCCASION OF THE
 DEDICATION OF THE EXTENSION OF THE
3 MOTHER CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, JUNE 10, 1906


 MY BELOVED BRETHREN: β€” The divine might of
 Truth demands well-doing in order to demon-
6 strate truth, and this not alone in accord with human
 desire but with spiritual power. St. John writes: "Blessed
 are they that do His commandments, that they may have
9 right to the tree of life, and may enter in through the gates
 into the city." The sear leaves of faith without works,
 scattered abroad in Zion's waste places, appeal to re-
12 formers, "Show me thy faith by thy works."

 Christian Science is not a dweller apart in royal solitude;
 it is not a law of matter, nor a transcendentalism that
15 heals only the sick. This Science is a law of divine Mind,
 a persuasive animus, an unerring impetus, an ever-present
 help. Its presence is felt, for it acts and acts wisely,
18 always unfolding the highway of hope, faith, understand-
 ing. It is the higher criticism, the higher hope, and its
 effect on man is mainly this — that the good which has
21 come into his life, examination compels him to think
 genuine, whoever did it. A Christian Scientist verifies
 his calling. Choose ye!


Page 4


1 When, by losing his faith in matter and sin, one finds
 the spirit of Truth, then he practises the Golden Rule
3 spontaneously; and obedience to this rule spiritualizes
 man, for the world's nolens volens cannot enthrall it.
 Lust, dishonesty, sin, disable the student; they preclude
6 the practice or efficient teaching of Christian Science, the
 truth of man's being. The Scripture reads: "He that
 taketh not his cross, and followeth after me, is not worthy
9 of me." On this basis, how many are following the
 Way-shower? We follow Truth only as we follow truly,
 meekly, patiently, spiritually, blessing saint and sinner
12 with the leaven of divine Love which woman has put
 into Christendom and medicine.

 A genuine Christian Scientist loves Protestant and
15 Catholic, D.D. and M.D., β€” loves all who love God,
 good; and he loves his enemies. It will be found that,
 instead of opposing, such an individual subserves the
18 interests of both medical faculty and Christianity, and
 they thrive together, learning that Mind-power is good
 will towards men. Thus unfolding the true metal in
21 character, the iron in human nature rusts away; honesty
 and justice characterize the seeker and finder of Christian
 Science.

24 The pride of place or power is the prince of this world
 that hath nothing in Christ. Our great Master said:
 "Except ye . . . become as little children, ye shall not
27 enter into the kingdom of heaven," β€” the reign of right-
 eousness, the glory of good, healing the sick and saving
 the sinner. The height of my hope must remain. Glory
30 be to Thee, Thou God most high and nigh.

 Whatever is not divinely natural and demonstrably
 true, in ethics, philosophy, or religion, is not of God but


Page 5


1 originates in the minds of mortals. It is the Adam-
 dream according to the Scriptural allegory, in which
3 man is supposed to start from dust and woman to be
 the outcome of man's rib, β€” marriage synonymous with
 legalized lust, and the offspring of sense the murderers
6 of their brothers!

 Wholly apart from this mortal dream, this illusion and
 delusion of sense, Christian Science comes to reveal man
9 as God's image, His idea, coexistent with Him β€” God
 giving all and man having all that God gives. Whence,
 then, came the creation of matter, sin, and death, mortal
12 pride and power, prestige or privilege? The First Com-
 mandment of the Hebrew Decalogue, "Thou shalt have
 no other gods before me," and the Golden Rule are the
15 all-in-all of Christian Science. They are the spiritual
 idealism and realism which, when realized, constitute a
 Christian Scientist, heal the sick, reform the sinner, and
18 rob the grave of its victory. The spiritual understanding
 which demonstrates Christian Science, enables the devout
 Scientist to worship, not an unknown God, but Him whom,
21 understanding even in part, he continues to love more and
 to serve better.

 Beloved, I am not with you in propria persona at this
24 memorable dedication and communion season, but I am
 with you "in spirit and in truth," lovingly thanking your
 generosity and fidelity, and saying virtually what the
27 prophet said: Continue to choose whom ye will serve.

 Forgetting the Golden Rule and indulging sin, men
 cannot serve God; they cannot demonstrate the omnipo-
30 tence of divine Mind that heals the sick and the sinner.
 Human will may mesmerize and mislead man; divine
 wisdom, never. Indulging deceit is like the defendant


Page 6


1 arguing for the plaintiff in favor of a decision which the
 defendant knows will be turned against himself.

3 We cannot serve two masters. Do we love God
 supremely? Are we honest, just, faithful? Are we true
 to ourselves? "God is not mocked: for whatsoever a
6 man soweth, that shall he also reap." To abide in our
 unselfed better self is to be done forever with the sins
 of the flesh, the wrongs of human life, the tempter and
9 temptation, the smile and deceit of damnation. When
 we have overcome sin in all its forms, men may revile us
 and despitefully use us, and we shall rejoice, "for great
12 is [our] reward in heaven."

 You have dexterously and wisely provided for The
 Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, a magnificent tem-
15 ple wherein to enter and pray. Greatly impressed and
 encouraged thereby, deeply do I thank you for this proof
 of your progress, unity, and love. The modest edifice
18 of The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, began with
 the cross; its excelsior extension is the crown. The room
 of your Leader remains in the beginning of this edifice,
21 evidencing the praise of babes and the word which pro-
 ceedeth out of the mouth of God. Its crowning ulti-
 mate rises to a mental monument, a superstructure high
24 above the work of men's hands, even the outcome of
 their hearts, giving to the material a spiritual significance
 β€” the speed, beauty, and achievements of goodness.
27 Methinks this church is the one edifice on earth which
 most prefigures self-abnegation, hope, faith; love catching
 a glimpse of glory.

Page 7


 THE EXTENSION OF THE MOTHER CHURCH
 OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST: ITS INCEPTION,
 CONSTRUCTION, AND DEDICATION


 MRS. EDDY'S MESSAGE TO THE MOTHER CHURCH, JUNE 15, 1902


3 [Extract]


 HERE allow me to interpolate some matters of busi-
 ness that ordinarily find no place in my Message.
6 It is a privilege to acquaint communicants with the
 financial transactions of this church, so far as I know
 them, and especially before making another united effort
9 to purchase more land and enlarge our church edifice so
 as to seat the large number who annually favor us with
 their presence on Communion Sunday.


 THE ANNUAL MEETING OF THE MOTHER CHURCH,
 JUNE 18, 1902 β€” TWO MILLION DOLLARS PLEDGED


 Edward A. Kimball, C.S.D., offered the following
15 motion: β€”

 "Recognizing the necessity for providing an auditorium
 for The Mother Church that will seat four or five thou-
18 sand persons, and acting in behalf of ourselves and the
 Christian Scientists of the world, we agree to contribute


Page 8


1 any portion of two million dollars that may be necessary
 for this purpose."


3 In support of the motion, Mr. Kimball said in part:

 "Our denomination is palpably outgrowing the institu-
 tional end thereof. We need to keep pace with our own
6 growth and progress. The necessity here indicated is be-
 yond cavil; beyond resistance in your thought."


 Judge William G. Ewing, in seconding the motion, said: β€”
9 "As we have the best church in the world, and as we
 have the best expression of the religion of Jesus Christ,
 let us have the best material symbol of both of these, and
12 in the best city in the world.

 "Now I am sure that I have but expressed the universal
 voice of Christian Scientists, that there should be some-
15 thing done, and done immediately, to make reasonable
 accommodation for the regular business of the Christian
 Science church, and I believe really, with my faint
18 knowledge of arithmetic and the relationship of figures,
 that a church of twenty-four thousand members should
 have a seating capacity of more than nine hundred, if
21 they are all to get in."

 The motion was carried unanimously.



 Greeting from the Church to Mrs. Eddy


24 "Ten thousand Christian Scientists from throughout
 the world, convened in annual business meeting in
 Boston, send our greeting to you, whom we recognize
27 as logically the natural and indispensable Leader of our
 religious denomination and its activity.

 "Since the last report, in 1900, one hundred and five
30 new churches or congregations have been added, and


Page 9


1 those previously established have had large accessions
 to their membership. In recognition of the necessity for
3 providing an audience-room in The Mother Church which
 will seat four or five thousand persons, we have agreed to
 contribute any portion of two million dollars that may
6 be needed for that purpose.

 "The instinctive gratitude which not only impels the
 Christian to turn in loving thankfulness to his heavenly
9 Father, but induces him to glory in every good deed and
 thought on the part of every man — this would be scant
 indeed if it did not continually move us to utter our grati-
12 tude to you and declare the depth of our affection and
 esteem.

 "To you, who are standing in the forefront of the effort
15 for righteous reform, we modestly renew the hope and
 desire that we may worthily follow with you in the way
 of salvation through Christ."



 OUR LEADER'S THANKS


 To the Members of The Mother Church: β€” I am bankrupt
 in thanks to you, my beloved brethren, who at our last
21 annual meeting pledged yourselves with startling grace
 to contribute any part of two millions of dollars towards
 the purchase of more land for its site, and to enlarge
24 our church edifice in Boston. I never before felt poor
 in thanks, but I do now, and will draw on God for
 the amount I owe you, till I am satisfied with what my
27 heart gives to balance accounts.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 July 21, 1902


Page 10



1 Christian Science Sentinel, May 16, 1903


 It is inevitable that the transforming influence of
3 Christian Science should improve the thought, enlarge the
 favorable expectation, and augment the achievements of
 its followers. It was inevitable that this mighty impulse
6 for good should have externalized itself, ten years ago,
 in an edifice for The Mother Church. It is inevitable
 that this same impulsion should now manifest itself in a
9 beautiful, ample building, embodying the best of design,
 material, and situation.

 Some money has been paid in towards the fund, and
12 some of the churches and other organizations have taken
 steps in this direction, but the time is at hand, now, for
 this entire donation to be specifically subscribed as to
15 amount and date of payment. No appeal has ever been
 made in this behalf, and it is probable that none will be
 made or ever be needed. It is doubtful if the Cause of
18 Christian Science could prosper, in any particular, on the
 basis of fretful or reluctant sacrifice on the part of its
 people. Christian Scientists are not expected to contrib-
21 ute money against their will or as the result of impor-
 tunity or entreaty on the part of some one else.

 They will provide the money necessary to this end,
24 because they recognize the importance of The Mother
 Church to the Cause. They realize that there must be
 a prosperous parent church, in order to insure the pros-
27 perity of the branch churches; indeed, they know that
 it is the prosperous growth of this movement which
 now necessitates this onward step. They know that
30 their own individual welfare is closely interwoven with
 the general welfare of the Cause.


Page 11


1 Notwithstanding the fact that as Christian Scientists
 we are as yet but imperfect followers of the perfect Christ,
3 and although we may falter or stumble or loiter by the
 way, we know that the Leader of this movement, Mrs.
 Eddy, has been constantly at her post during all the
6 storms that have surged against her for a generation.
 She has been the one of all the world who has encountered
 the full force of antagonism. We know, too, that during
9 these years she has not tried to guide us by means of
 forced marches, but has waited for us to grow into readi-
 ness for each step, and we know that in all this time she
12 has never urged upon us a step that did not result in our
 welfare.

 A year ago she quietly alluded to the need of our
15 Mother Church. She knew that we were ready; the re-
 sponse was instant, spontaneous. Later on she expressed
 much gratification because of prompt and liberal action,
18 and it needs no special insight to predict that she will be
 cheered and encouraged to know that, having seized upon
 this privilege and opportunity, we have also made good
21 the pledge.



 Editorial in Christian Science Sentinel, May 16, 1903


 Our readers have been informed of the purchase of the
24 land upon which the new building will be erected, and
 that this land has been paid for. The location is, there-
 fore, determined. The size of the building was decided
27 last June, but there still remained for definite decision
 the amount to be expended and the date for commen-
 cing building operations. The pledge of the annual
30 meeting was "any portion of two million dollars that


Page 12


1 may be necessary for this purpose," and this of course
 carried the implication that work should be commenced
3 as soon as the money in hand justified the letting of
 contracts.

 The spontaneous and liberal donations which enabled
6 those having the work in charge to secure the large
 parcel of land adjoining The Mother Church, gives
 promise of the speedy accumulation of a sum sufficient
9 to justify the decision of these remaining problems.
 Each person interested must remember, however, that
 his individual desires, both as to the amount to be
12 expended and the date of commencing work, will be best
 evidenced by the liberality and promptness of his own
 contribution.



15 [Mrs. Eddy in Christian Science Sentinel, May 30, 1903]


 NOW AND THEN


 This was an emphatic rule of St. Paul: "Behold, now
18 is the accepted time." A lost opportunity is the great-
 est of losses. Whittier mourned it as what "might
 have been." We own no past, no future, we pos-
21 sess only now. If the reliable now is carelessly lost in
 speaking or in acting, it comes not back again. What-
 ever needs to be done which cannot be done now,
24 God prepares the way for doing; while that which can
 be done now, but is not, increases our indebtedness to
 God. Faith in divine Love supplies the ever-present
27 help and now, and gives the power to "act in the living
 present."

 The dear children's good deeds are gems in the settings
30 of manhood and womanhood. The good they desire to


Page 13


1 do, they insist upon doing now. They speculate neither
 on the past, present, nor future, but, taking no thought
3 for the morrow, act in God's time.

 A book by Benjamin Wills Newton, called "Thoughts
 on the Apocalypse," published in London, England, in
6 1853, was presented to me in 1903 by Mr. Marcus
 Holmes. This was the first that I had even heard of
 it. When scanning its interesting pages, my attention
9 was arrested by the following: "The church at Jerusalem,
 like a sun in the centre of its system, had other churches,
 like so many planets, revolving around it. It was
12 strictly a mother and a ruling church." According to
 his description, the church of Jerusalem seems to pre-
 figure The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, in
15 Boston.

 I understand that the members of The Mother Church,
 out of loving hearts, pledged to this church in Boston
18 any part of two millions of money with which to build
 an ample temple dedicate to God, to Him "who forgiveth
 all thine iniquities; who healeth all thy diseases; who
21 redeemeth thy life from destruction; who crowneth thee
 with lovingkindness and tender mercies; who satisfieth
 thy mouth with good things; so that thy youth is renewed
24 like the eagle's," β€” to build a temple the spiritual spire
 of which will reach the stars with divine overtures, holy
 harmony, reverberating through all cycles of systems and
27 spheres.

 Because Christian Scientists virtually pledged this
 munificent sum not only to my church but to Him who
30 returns it unto them after many days, their loving giving
 has been blessed. It has crystallized into a foundation
 for our temple, and it will continue to "prosper in the


Page 14


1 thing whereto [God, Spirit] sent it." In the now they
 brought their tithes into His storehouse. Then, when
3 this bringing is consummated, God will pour them out a
 blessing above the song of angels, beyond the ken of
 mortals — a blessing that two millions of love currency
6 will bring to be discerned in the near future as a gleam
 of reality; not a madness and nothing, but a sanity
 and something from the individual, stupendous, Godlike
9 agency of man.



 Editorial in Christian Science Sentinel, January 2, 1904


 A few days ago we received a letter from a friend in
12 another city, saying that he had just been informed β€”
 and his informant claimed to have good authority for the
 statement — that the entire amount required to complete
15 The Mother Church building fund had been paid in;
 consequently further payments or subscriptions were not
 desired.

18 Our friend very promptly and emphatically pro-
 nounced the story a fabrication of the evil one, and he
 was entirely right in doing so. If the devil were really
21 an entity, endowed with genius and inspiration, he could
 not have invented a more subtle lie with which to en-
 snare a generous and loyal people.

24 As a matter of fact, the building fund is not complete,
 but it is in such a healthy state that building operations
 have been commenced, and they will be carried on without
27 interruption until the church is finished. The rapidity
 with which the work will be pushed forward necessitates
 large payments of money, and it is desirable that the con-
30 tributions to the building fund keep pace with the dis-
 bursements.


Page 15



1 [Christian Science Sentinel, March 5, 1904]


 AMENDMENT TO BY-LAW


3 Section 3 of Article XLI (XXXIV in revised edition) of
 the Church By-laws has been amended to read as follows: β€”
 THE MOTHER CHURCH BUILDING. β€” SECTION 3. The
6 edifice erected in 1894 for The First Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Boston, Mass., shall neither be demolished
 nor removed from the site where it was built, without the
9 written consent of the Pastor Emeritus, Mary Baker
 Eddy.



 COMMUNION, 1904


12 My Beloved Brethren: β€” My heart goes out to you as
 ever in daily desire that the Giver of all good transform
 you into His own image and likeness. Already I have
15 said to you all that you are able to bear now, and thanking
 you for your gracious reception of it I close with Kate
 Hankey's excellent hymn, β€”


18    I love to tell the story,
 Of unseen things above,
 Of Jesus and his glory,
21    Of Jesus and his love.
 I love to tell the story,
 Because I know ’tis true;
24    It satisfies my longings,
 As nothing else can do.

 I love to tell the story;
27    For those who know it best
 Seem hungering and thirsting
 To hear it like the rest.
30    And when, in scenes of glory,
 I sing the NEW, NEW SONG,
 'Twill be the OLD, OLD STORY
33    That I have loved so long.


Page 16



 EXTRACT FROM THE TREASURER'S REPORT, JUNE 14, 1904


 The report of Mr. Stephen A. Chase, treasurer of the
3 building fund of The Mother Church, made to the
 annual meeting, showed that a total of $425,893.66 had
 been received up to and including May 31, 1904, and that
6 there was a balance of $226,285.73 on hand on that date,
 after paying out the sum of $ 199,607.93, which included
 the purchase price of the land for the site of the new
9 building.



 THE CORNER-STONE LAID


 The corner-stone of the new auditorium for The Mother
12 Church in Boston was laid Saturday, July 16, 1904, at
 eight o'clock in the forenoon. In addition to the members
 of the Christian Science Board of Directors, who have
15 the work directly in charge, there were present on this
 occasion: Mr. Alfred Farlow, President of The Mother
 Church; Prof. Hermann S. Hering, First Reader; Mrs.
18 Ella E. Williams, Second Reader; Mr. Charles Brigham
 and Mr. E. Noyes Whitcomb, respectively the architect
 and the builder of the new edifice.

21 The order of the services, which were conducted by the
 First Reader, was as follows: β€”

 Scripture reading, Isaiah 28: 16, 17, β€”

24 "Therefore thus saith the Lord God, Behold, I lay in
 Zion for a foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious
 corner stone, a sure foundation: he that believeth shall
27 not make haste.

 "Judgment also will I lay to the line, and righteous-
 ness to the plummet: and the hail shall sweep away the


Page 17


1 refuge of lies, and the waters shall overflow the hiding
 place."

3 Also, 1 Peter 2: 1-6, β€”

 "Wherefore laying aside all malice, and all guile, and
 hypocrisies, and envies, and all evil speakings,

6 "As newborn babes, desire the sincere milk of the word,
 that ye may grow thereby:

 "If so be ye have tasted that the Lord is gracious.

9 "To whom coming, as unto a living stone, disallowed
 indeed of men, but chosen of God, and precious,

 "Ye also, as lively stones, are built up a spiritual house,
12 an holy priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, accept-
 able to God by Jesus Christ.

 "Wherefore also it is contained in the scripture,
15 Behold, I lay in Sion a chief corner stone, elect, precious:
 and he that believeth on him shall not be confounded."


 The reading of selections from "Science and Health
18 with Key to the Scriptures" by Mary Baker Eddy, β€”


 Page 241, lines 13-30
 " 136, " 1-5, 9-14
 " 137, " 16-5
 " 583, " 12-19
 " 35, " 20-25


24 This was followed by a few moments of silent prayer
 and the audible repetition of the Lord's Prayer with its
 spiritual interpretation, as given in the Christian Science
27 textbook, after which the following extracts from Mrs.
 Eddy's writings were read: β€”

 "Hitherto, I have observed that in proportion as this
30 church has smiled on His 'little ones,' He has blessed
 her. Throughout my entire connection with The Mother


Page 18


1 Church, I have seen, that in the ratio of her love for
 others, hath His love been bestowed upon her; water-
3 ing her waste places, and enlarging her borders.

 "One thing I have greatly desired, and again earnestly
 request, namely, that Christian Scientists, here and else-
6 where, pray daily for themselves; not verbally, nor on
 bended knee, but mentally, meekly, and importunately.
 When a hungry heart petitions the divine Father-Mother
9 God for bread, it is not given a stone, β€” but more grace,
 obedience, and love. If this heart, humble and trustful,
 faithfully asks divine Love to feed it with the bread of
12 heaven, health, holiness, it will be conformed to a fitness
 to receive the answer to its desire; then will flow into it
 the 'river of His pleasure,' the tributary of divine Love,
15 and great growth in Christian Science will follow, β€” even
 that joy which finds one's own in another's good." (Mis-
 cellaneous Writings, p. 127.)

18 "Beloved brethren, the love of our loving Lord was
 never more manifest than in its stern condemnation of all
 error, wherever found. I counsel thee, rebuke and exhort
21 one another. Love all Christian churches for the gospel's
 sake; and be exceedingly glad that the churches are united
 in purpose, if not in method, to close the war between
24 flesh and Spirit, and to fight the good fight till God's will
 be witnessed and done on earth as in heaven." (Christian
 Science versus Pantheism, p. 13.)


27 The corner-stone was then laid by the members of the
 Christian Science Board of Directors. It contained the
 following articles: The Holy Bible; "Science and Health
30 with Key to the Scriptures" and all other published
 writings of the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy, the Discoverer


Page 19


1 and Founder of Christian Science; Christian Science
 Hymnal; "The Mother Church;" the current numbers of
3 The Christian Science Journal, Christian Science Sentinel,
 Der Herold der Christian Science, and the Christian Science
 Quarterly.

6 The ceremony concluded with the repetition of "the
 scientific statement of being," from Science and Health
 (p. 468), and the benediction, 2 Corinthians 13:14:
9 "The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of
 God, and the communion of the Holy Ghost, be with you
 all. Amen."



 UNSELFISH LOYALTY


 To one of the many branch churches which contributed
 their local church building funds to The Mother Church
15 building fund, Mrs. Eddy wrote as follows: β€”


 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 Colorado Springs, Col.


18 Beloved Brethren: β€” It is conceded that our shadows
 follow us in the sunlight wherever we go; but I ask for
 more, even this: That this dear church shall be pursued
21 by her substance, the immortal fruition of her unselfed
 love, and that her charity, which "seeketh not her
 own" but another's good, shall reap richly the reward of
24 goodness.

 Those words of our holy Way-shower, vibrant through
 time and eternity with acknowledgment of exemplary
27 giving, no doubt fill the memory and swell the hearts of
 the members of The Mother Church, because of that gift
 which you so sacredly bestowed towards its church build-
30 ing fund. These are applicable words: "Verily I say
 unto you, Wheresoever this gospel shall be preached


Page 20


1 throughout the whole world, this also that she hath done
 shall be spoken of for a memorial of her." (Mark 14: 9.)

3   Gratefully yours in Christ,

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
6   September 1, 1904



 HOLIDAY GIFTS


 Beloved Students: β€” The holidays are coming, and I
9 trow you are awaiting on behalf of your Leader the
 loving liberty of their license. May I relieve you of
 selecting, and name your gifts to her, in advance?
12 Send her only what God gives to His church. Bring
 all your tithes into His storehouse, and what you would
 expend for presents to her, please add to your givings
15 to The Mother Church building fund, and let this
 suffice for her rich portion in due season. Send no gifts
 to her the ensuing season, but the evidences of glorious
18 growth in Christian Science.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
21    October 31, 1904


 A WORD FROM THE DIRECTORS, MAY, 1905


 In view of the fact that a general attendance of the
24 members of The Mother Church at the communion
 and annual meeting in Boston entails the expenditure
 of a large amount of money, and the further fact that
27 it is important that the building fund of The Mother
 Church should be completed as early as possible, it has
 been decided to omit this year the usual large gathering
30 in Boston, and to ask the members to contribute to


Page 21


1 the building fund the amount which they would have
 expended in such an event.

3 We all know of the loving self-sacrifices which have been
 made by many of the branch churches in transferring to
 this fund the money which had been collected for the
6 purpose of building church homes of their own, and it will
 thus be seen that the course suggested will not only
 hasten the completion of The Mother Church, but will
9 also advance the erection of many branch churches.
 We therefore feel sure that all Christian Scientists will
 gladly forego a visit to Boston at this time, in order to
12 contribute more liberally to the building fund and thereby
 aid the progress of our Cause throughout the world.

 Christian Scientists have learned from experience that
15 divine Love more than compensates for every seeming
 trial and deprivation in our loyalty to Truth, and it is
 but right to expect that those who are willing to forego
18 their anticipated visit this year will receive a greater
 blessing β€” "good measure, pressed down, and shaken
 together, and running over." The local members, who
21 have always experienced much pleasure in welcoming
 their brethren from far and near, and who have antici-
 pated much joy in meeting very many of them this year,
24 will feel that they have been called upon to make no less
 sacrifice than have others; but we are confident that
 they too will be blessed, and that all will rejoice in the
27 glad reunion upon the completion of the new edifice in
 Boston.

 IRA O. KNAPP,     JOSEPH ARMSTRONG,
30 WILLIAM B. JOHNSON,     STEPHEN A. CHASE,
 ARCHIBALD McLELLAN,

 The Christian Science Board of Directors


Page 22



 THE ANNUAL MEETING, JUNE 13, 1905



 Extract from the Clerk's Report


3 In the year 1902 our Leader saw the need of a larger
 edifice for the home of The Mother Church, one that
 would accommodate the constantly increasing attendance
6 at all the services, and the large gatherings at the annual
 meeting; and, at the annual meeting in June, 1902, a
 sum of money adequate to erect such a building was
9 pledged. Christian Scientists have contributed already
 for this grand and noble purpose, but let us not be uncon-
 sciously blind to the further needs of the building fund,
12 in order to complete this great work, nor wait to be urged
 or to be shown the absolute necessity of giving.

 Since 1866, almost forty years ago, β€” almost forty
15 years in the wilderness, β€” our beloved Leader and teacher,
 Mrs. Eddy, the Founder of Christian Science, has labored
 for the regeneration of mankind; and time has put its
18 seal of affirmation upon every purpose she has set in
 motion, and the justification of her labors is the fruit.
 In these years of work she has shown wisdom, faith, and
21 a spiritual discernment of the needs of the present and of
 the future that is nothing less than God-bestowed.

 In years to come the moral and the physical effects
24 produced by The Mother Church, and by the advanced
 position taken by our Pastor Emeritus and Leader, will
 appear in their proper perspective. Is it not therefore
27 the duty of all who have touched the healing hem of
 Christian Science, to get immediately into the proper
 perspective of the meaning of the erection of the new
30 edifice of The First Church of Christ, Scientist, in
 Boston?


Page 23


1 It is not necessary for us to delay our contributions in
 order to find out how much our neighbor has given, or to
3 compute by the total membership of The Mother Church
 what amount each shall send the Treasurer. The divine
 Love that prompted the desire, and supplied the means to
6 consummate the erection of the present edifice in 1894, is
 still with us, and will bless us so long as we follow His
 commands.



 Extract from the Treasurer's Report


 Building Fund: β€” Amount on hand June 1, 1905,
 $303,189.41; expenditures June 1, 1904 to May 31, 1905,
12 $388,663.15; total receipts June 19, 1902 to June l,
 1905, $891,460.49.

 Amount necessary to complete the sum of $2,000,000
15 pledged at the annual meeting, 1902, $1,108,539.51.



 Greeting to Mrs. Eddy from the Annual Meeting


 Beloved Teacher and Leader: β€” The members of your
18 church, The Mother Church, The First Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Boston, Mass., in annual business meeting
 assembled, send their loyal and loving greetings to you,
21 the Discoverer and Founder of Christian Science and
 author of its textbook.

 We rejoice greatly that the walls of our new edifice are
24 rising, not only to faith but also to sight; that this temple,
 which represents the worship of Spirit, with its inseparable
 accompaniment, the Christ-healing, is being built in our
27 day; and that we have the privilege of participating
 in the work of its erection. As the stately structure
 grows, and stone is laid upon stone, those who pass by are


Page 24


1 impelled to ask, What means this edifice? and they learn
 that the truth which Christ Jesus revealed — the truth
3 which makes free — is to-day being proven and is ready
 to heal all who accept its divine ministry. We congratu-
 late you that the building is to express in its ample audi-
6 torium something of the vastness of the truth it represents,
 and also to symbolize your unmeasured love for humanity,
 which inspires you to welcome all mankind to the privi-
9 leges of this healing and saving gospel. As the walls are
 builded by the prayers and offerings of the thousands
 who have been healed through Christian Science, we know
12 that you rejoice in the unity of thought and purpose
 which is thus expressed, showing that The Mother Church
 "fitly framed together groweth unto an holy temple in the
15 Lord."



 Editorial in Christian Science Sentinel, November 25, 1905


 We are prompted to state, for the benefit of those who
18 have inquired about the progress of the work on the
 extension to The Mother Church, that the erection of the
 building is proceeding rapidly; in fact, it is being pushed
21 with the utmost energy, and at the present time there
 are no less than fifteen different trades represented. The
 beauty of the building, and the substantial and enduring
24 character of its construction, have been remarked by the
 many visitors who have recently inspected the work, and
 they have gone away with the conviction that the structure
27 is worthy of our Cause and that it will meet the needs of
 The Mother Church as well as this can be done by a
 building with a seating capacity of five thousand.

30 It therefore occurs to us that there could be no more
 appropriate time for completing the building fund than


Page 25


1 the present Thanksgiving season; and it is suggested to our
 readers that there would be great propriety in making a
 special effort during the coming week to dispose fully and
 finally of this feature of the demonstration.


 [Christian Science Sentinel, March 17, 1906]



 GIFTS FROM THE CHILDREN


 The great interest exhibited by the children who attend
 the Sunday School of The Mother Church is shown by
9 their contributions to the building fund. The following
 figures are taken from the report of the secretary of the
 Sunday School and are most gratifying:

12 March 1, 1903 to February 29, 1904, $621.10; March 1,
 1904 to February 28, 1905, $845.96; March 1, 1905 to
 February 28, 1906, $1,112.13; total, $2,579.19.



 CARD


 Will one and all of my dear correspondents accept this,
 my answer to their fervid question: Owing to the time
18 consumed in travel, et cetera, I cannot be present in
 propria persona at our annual communion and the dedi-
 cation in June next of The Mother Church of Christ,
21 Scientist. But I shall be with my blessed church "in
 spirit and in truth."
 I have faith in the givers and in the builders of this
24 church edifice, β€” admiration for and faith in the grandeur
 and sublimity of this superb superstructure, wherein all
 vanity of victory disappears and the glory of divinity
27 appears in all its promise.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H., 30 April 8, 1906


Page 26



1 [Christian Science Sentinel, April 14, 1906]


 ANNOUNCEMENT OF THE DEDICATION


3 The Christian Science Board of Directors takes pleasure
 in announcing that the extension of The Mother Church
 will be dedicated on the date of the annual communion,
6 Sunday, June 10, 1906.


 [Christian Science Sentinel, April 28, 1906]



 TO THE BOARD OF DIRECTORS


9 My Beloved Students: β€” Your generous check of five
 thousand dollars, April 23, 1906, is duly received. You
 can imagine my gratitude and emotion at the touch of
12 memory. Your beneficent gift is the largest sum of money
 that I have ever received from my church, and quite
 unexpected at this juncture, but not the less appreciated.
15 My Message for June 10 is ready for you. It is too
 short to be printed in book form, for I thought it better
 to be brief on this rare occasion. This communion and
18 dedication include enough of their own.

 The enclosed notice I submit to you, and trust that you
 will see, as I foresee, the need of it. Now is the time to
21 throttle the lie that students worship me or that I claim
 their homage. This historical dedication should date
 some special reform, and this notice is requisite to give
24 the true animus of our church and denomination.

 Lovingly yours,

 MARY BAKER EDDY

27 PLEASANT VIEW, Concord, N. H.,
 April 23, 1906


Page 27



 NOTICE


 To the Beloved Members of my Church, The Mother Church,
3 The First Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston. β€” Divine
 Love bids me say: Assemble not at the residence of your
 Pastor Emeritus at or about the time of our annual
6 meeting and communion service, for the divine and not
 the human should engage our attention at this sacred
 season of prayer and praise.

9   MARY BAKER EDDY



 NOTICE TO CONTRIBUTORS TO THE BUILDING FUND


 The contributors to the building fund for the extension
12 of The Mother Church, The First Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Boston, Mass., are hereby notified that
 sufficient funds have been received for the completion of
15 the church building, and the friends are requested to send
 no more money to this fund.

 STEPHEN A. CHASE,

18    Treasurer of the Building Fund

 BOSTON, MASS., June 2, 1906



 Editorial in Christian Science Sentinel, June 9, 1906
21 Christian Scientists will read with much joy and
 thanksgiving the announcement made by Mr. Chase in
 this issue of the Sentinel that sufficient funds have been
24 received by him, as treasurer of the building fund, to
 pay all bills in connection with the extension of The
 Mother Church, and to most of them the fact that he


Page 28


1 has been able to make this announcement coincident
 with the completion of the building will be deeply
3 significant. Our Leader has said in Science and Health
 (p. 494), "Divine Love always has met and always
 will meet every human need," and this has been proved
6 true in the experience of many who have contributed
 to the building fund.

 The treasurer's books will show the dollars and cents
9 received by him, but they can give no more than a hint of
 the unselfish efforts, and in many instances the loving
 self-sacrifice, of those who have given so generously to the
12 building of this church. Suffice it to say, however, that
 the giving to this fund has stimulated those gentle
 qualities which mark the true Christian, and its influence
15 upon the lives of thousands has been of immense value to
 them.

 The significance of this building is not to be found in
18 the material structure, but in the lives of those who, under
 the consecrated leadership of Mrs. Eddy, and following
 her example, are doing the works which Jesus said should
21 mark the lives of his followers. It stands as the visible
 symbol of a religion which heals the sick and reforms
 the sinful as our Master healed and reformed them. It
24 proclaims to the world that Jesus' gospel was for all time
 and for all men; that it is as effective to-day as it was
 when he preached the Word of God to the multitudes of
27 Judea and healed them of their diseases and their sins.
 It speaks for the successful labors of one divinely guided
 woman, who has brought to the world the spiritual under-
30 standing of the Scriptures, and whose ministry has revealed
 the one true Science and changed the whole aspect of
 medicine and theology.


Page 29



1 [Christian Science Sentinel, June 16, 1906. Reprinted from
 Boston Herald]


 COMMUNION SERVICE AND DEDICATION


 Five thousand people kneeling in silent communion;
 a stillness profound; and then, rising in unison from the
6 vast congregation, the words of the Lord's Prayer! Such
 was the closing incident of the dedicatory services of the
 extension of The Mother Church, The First Church of
9 Christ, Scientist, at the corner of Falmouth and Norway
 Streets, yesterday morning. And such was the scene
 repeated six times during the day.

12 It was a sight which no one who saw it will ever be able
 to forget. Many more gorgeous church pageantries have
 been seen in this country and in an older civilization;
15 there have been church ceremonies that appealed more
 to the eye, but the impressiveness of this lay in its very
 simplicity; its grandeur sprang from the complete
18 unanimity of thought and of purpose. There was some-
 thing emanating from the thousands who worshipped
 under the dome of the great edifice whose formal open-
21 ing they had gathered to observe, that appealed to and
 fired the imagination. A comparatively new religion
 launching upon a new era, assuming an altogether differ-
24 ent status before the world!

 Even the sun smiled kindly upon the dedication of the
 extension of The Mother Church. With a cooling breeze
27 to temper the heat, the thousands who began to congregate
 about the church as early as half past five in the morning
 were able to wait patiently for the opening of the doors
30 without suffering the inconveniences of an oppressive day.
 From that time, until the close of the evening service,


Page 30


1 Falmouth and Norway Streets held large crowds of people,
 either coming from a service or awaiting admission to
3 one. As all the services were precisely the same in every
 respect, nobody attended more than one, so that there
 were well over thirty thousand people who witnessed
6 the opening. Not only did these include Scientists from
 all over the world, and nearly all the local Scientists,
 but many hundreds of other faiths, drawn to the church
9 from curiosity, and from sympathy, too.

 It spoke much for the devotion of the members to their
 faith, the character of the attendance. In those huge
12 congregations were business men come from far distant
 points at personal sacrifices of no mean order; profes-
 sional men, devoted women members, visitors from
15 Australia, from India, from England, from Germany,
 from Switzerland, from South Africa, from Hawaii, from
 the coast States.

18 They gave generously of their means in gratitude for the
 epoch-making event. The six collections were large, and
 when the plates were returned after having been through
21 the congregations, they were heaped high with bills, with
 silver, and with gold. Some of these contributions were
 one-hundred-dollar bills. Without ostentation and quite
24 voluntarily the Scientists gave a sum surpassing some of
 the record collections secured by evangelists for the work
 of Christianity.

27 Though the church was filled for the service at half
 past seven, and hundreds had to be turned away, by far
 the largest crowd of the day applied for admission at the
30 ten o'clock service, and it was representative of the entire
 body of the Christian Science church.

 Before half past seven the chimes of the new church


Page 31


1 began to play, first the "Communion Hymn," succeeded
 by the following hymns throughout the day: "The
3 morning light is breaking;" "Shepherd, show me how
 to go;" "Just as I am, without one plea;" "I need
 Thee every hour;" "Blest Christmas morn;" "Abide
6 with me;" "Day by day the manna fell;" "Oh, the
 clanging bells of time;" "Still, still with Thee;" "O'er
 waiting harpstrings of the mind;" Doxology.

9 Promptly at half past six the numerous doors of the
 church were thrown open and the public had its first
 glimpse of the great structure, the cost of which approxi-
12 mates two millions of dollars, contributed from over the
 entire world. The first impression was of vastness, then
 of light and cheerfulness, and when the vanguard of the
15 thousands had been seated, expressions of surprise and of
 admiration were heard on every hand for the beauty and
 the grace of the architecture. The new home for worship
18 that was opened by the Scientists in Boston yesterday
 can take a place in the front rank of the world's houses
 of worship, and it is no wonder that the first sight which
21 the visitors caught of its interior should have impressed
 them as one of the events of their lives.

 First Reader William D. McCrackan, accompanied by
24 the Second Reader, Mrs. Laura Carey Conant, and the
 soloist for the services, Mrs. Hunt, was on the Readers'
 platform. Stepping to the front of the platform, when
27 the congregation had taken their seats, the First Reader
 announced simply that they would sing Hymn 161,
 written by Mrs. Eddy, as the opening of the dedicatory
30 service. And what singing it was! As though trained
 carefully under one leader, the great body of Scientists
 joined in the song of praise.


Page 32


1 Spontaneous unanimity and repetition in unison were
 two of the most striking features of the services. When,
3 after five minutes of silent communion at the end of the
 service, the congregation began to repeat the Lord's
 Prayer, they began all together, and their voices rose as
6 one in a heartfelt appeal to the creator.

 So good are the acoustic properties of the new structure
 that Mr. McCrackan and Mrs. Conant could be heard
9 perfectly in every part of it, and they did not have to lift
 their voices above the usual platform tone.

 Following the organ voluntary β€” Fantasie in E minor,
12 Merkel — the order of service was as follows: β€”


 Hymn 161, from the Hymnal. Words by the Rev.
 Mary Baker Eddy.(1)

15 Reading from the Scriptures: Deuteronomy 26: 1, 2,
 5-10 (first sentence).

 Silent prayer, followed by the audible repetition of the
18    Lord's Prayer with its spiritual interpretation as given in
 the Christian Science textbook.

 Hymn 166, from the Hymnal.(2)

21 Reading of notices.

 Reading of Tenets of The Mother Church.

 Collection.

24 Solo, "Communion Hymn," words by the Rev. Mary
 Baker Eddy, music by William Lyman Johnson.

 Reading of annual Message from the Pastor Emeritus,
27    the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy.

 Reading the specially prepared Lesson-Sermon.

 After the reading of the Lesson-Sermon, silent com-
30    munion, which concluded with the audible repetition of
 the Lord's Prayer.

 (1) Hymn 306, (2) Hymn 108, in Revised Hymnal


Page 33


1 Singing the Communion Doxology.

 Reading of a despatch from the members of the church
3   to Mrs. Eddy.

 Reading of "the scientific statement of being" (Sci-
 ence and Health, p. 468), and the correlative Scripture,
6   1 John 3: 1-3.

 The benediction.


 The subject of the special Lesson-Sermon was "Adam,
9 Where Art Thou?" the Golden Text: "Search me, O
 God, and know my heart: try me, and know my
 thoughts: and see if there be any wicked way in me,
12 and lead me in the way everlasting." (Psalms 139: 23,
 24.) The responsive reading was from Psalms 15: 1-5;
 24: 1-6, 9, 10.

15 1 Lord, who shall abide in thy tabernacle? who shall
 dwell in thy holy hill?

 2 He that walketh uprightly, and worketh righteous-
18    ness, and speaketh the truth in his heart.

 3 He that backbiteth not with his tongue, nor doeth
 evil to his neighbor, nor taketh up a reproach against his
12    neighbor.

 4 In whose eyes a vile person is contemned; but he
 honoreth them that fear the Lord. He that sweareth to
24    his own hurt, and changeth not.

 5 He that putteth not out his money to usury, nor
 taketh reward against the innocent. He that doeth these
27    things shall never be moved.

 1 The earth is the Lord's, and the fulness thereof;
 the world, and they that dwell therein.

30 2 For he hath founded it upon the seas, and established
 it upon the floods.


Page 34


1 3 Who shall ascend into the hill of the Lord? or who
 shall stand in his holy place?

3 4 He that hath clean hands, and a pure heart; who
 hath not lifted up his soul unto vanity, nor sworn
 deceitfully.

6 5 He shall receive the blessing from the Lord, and
 righteousness from the God of his salvation.
 6 This is the generation of them that seek him, that
9   seek thy face, O Jacob.

 9 Lift up your heads, O ye gates; even lift them up, ye
 everlasting doors; and the King of glory shall come in.
12 10 Who is this King of glory? The Lord of hosts, he
 is the King of glory.


 The Lesson-Sermon consisted of the following citations
15 from the Bible and "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures" by the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy, and was
 read by Mr. McCrackan and Mrs. Conant: β€”


18        I


 The Bible        Science and Health (1)
 Genesis 3: 9-11   224: 22
21 Proverbs 8: 1, 4, 7    559: 8-10, 19
 Mark 2: 15-17     181: 21-25
 307: 31-8


24    II


 Psalms 51: 1-3, 6, 10, 12,  308: 8, 16-28 This;
 13, 17        Jacob
 323: 19-24, 28-32
 When; The effects

 (1)The Science and Health references in this lesson are according
30 to the 1913 edition.


Page 35


1      III


 The Bible  Science and Health
3 Hebrews 11: 1, 3, 6    297: 20 Faith
 Proverbs 3: 5, 6     241: 23-27
 Job 28: 20, 23, 28    275: 25
6 1 Corinthians 14: 20   505: 21-28 Under-
 standing
 536: 8


9    IV


 Psalms 86: 15, 16     345: 31
 Matthew 9: 2-8   337: 10
12      525: 4
 494: 30-2 Our Master
 476: 32-4
15      171: 4


 V


 Mark 12: 30, 31   9: 17-21 Dost thou
18 John 21: 1 (first     53: 8-11
 clause), 14-17   54:29-1
 1 John 4: 21      560: 11-19, 22 The
21    great; Abuse
 565: 18-22


 VI


24 John 21: 4-6, 9, 12, 13     34: 29-29
 Revelation 3: 20
 Revelation 7: 13,14,16,17


27 During the progress of each service, First Reader
 William D. McCrackan read to the congregation the


Page 36


1 dedicatory Message from their teacher and Leader, Mrs.
 Mary Baker Eddy.

3 The telegram from the church to Mrs. Eddy was read
 by Mr. Edward A. Kimball of Chicago, and the five
 thousand present rose as one to indicate their approval
6 of it.


 REV. MARY BAKER EDDY, Pastor Emeritus


 Beloved Teacher and Leader: β€” The members of your
9 church have assembled at this sacred time to commune
 with our infinite heavenly Father and again to consecrate
 all that we are or hope to be to a holy Christian service
12 that shall be acceptable unto God.

 Most of us are here because we have been delivered from
 beds of sickness or withheld from open graves or reclaimed
15 from vice or redeemed from obdurate sin. We have ex-
 changed the tears of sorrow for the joy of repentance and
 the peace of a more righteous living, and now with blessed
18 accord we are come, in humility, to pour out our gratitude
 to God and to bear witness to the abundance of salvation
 through His divine Christ.

21 At this altar, dedicated to the only true God, we who
 have been delivered from the depths increase the measure
 of our devotion to the daily life and purpose which are in
24 the image and likeness of God.

 By these stately walls; by this sheltering dome; by
 all the beauty of color and design, the Christian Scientists
27 of the world, in tender affection for the cause of human
 weal, have fulfilled a high resolve and set up this taber-
 nacle, which is to stand as an enduring monument, a sign
30 of your understanding and proof that our Supreme
 God, through His power and law, is the natural healer


Page 37


1 of all our diseases and hath ordained the way of salva-
 tion of all men from all evil. No vainglorious boast,
3 no pride of circumstances has place within the sacred
 confines of this sanctuary. Naught else than the gran-
 deur of humility and the incense of gratitude and com-
6 passionate love can acceptably ascend heavenward from
 this house of God.

 It is from the depths of tenderest gratitude, respect,
9 and affection that we declare again our high appreciation
 of all that you have done and continue to do for the ever-
 lasting advantage of this race. Through you has been
12 revealed the verity and rule of the Christianity of Christ
 which has ever healed the sick. By your fidelity and the
 constancy of your obedience during forty years you have
15 demonstrated this Science before the gaze of universal
 humanity. By reason of your spiritual achievement the
 Cause of Christian Science has been organized and main-
18 tained, its followers have been prospered, and the philos-
 ophy of the ages transformed. Recognizing the grand
 truth that God is the supreme cause of all the activities of
21 legitimate existence, we also recognize that He has made
 known through your spiritual perception the substance
 of Christian Science, and that this church owes itself and
24 its prosperity to the unbroken activity of your labors,
 which have been and will still be the pretext for our
 confident and favorable expectation.

27 We have read your annual Message to this church.
 We are deeply touched by its sweet entreaty, its ineffable
 loving-kindness, its wise counsel and admonition.

30 With sacred resolution do we pray that we may give
 heed and ponder and obey. We would be glad if our
 prayers, our rejoicing, and our love could recompense your


Page 38


1 long sacrifice and bestow upon you the balm of heavenly
 joy, but knowing that every perfect gift cometh from
3 above, and that in God is all consolation and comfort,
 we rest in this satisfying assurance, while we thank you
 and renew the story of our love for you and for all that
6 you are and all that you have done for us.

 WILLIAM B. JOHNSON, Clerk


 By means of a carefully trained corps of ushers, num-
9 bering two hundred, there was no confusion in finding
 seats, and when all seating space had been filled no more
 were admitted until the next service. The church was
12 filled for each service in about twenty minutes, and was
 emptied in twelve, in spite of the fact that many of
 the visitors showed a tendency to tarry to examine the
15 church.

 It was "children's day" at noon, for the service at half
 past twelve was specially reserved for them. They filled
18 all the seats in the body of the church, and when it came
 to the singing, the little ones were not a whit behind their
 elders, their shrill trebles rising with the roll of the organ
21 in almost perfect time. In every respect their service was
 the same as all the others.

 There was no more impressive feature of the dedication
24 than the silent communion. Devout Scientists said after
 the service that they would ever carry with them the
 memory of it.



 THE ANNUAL MEETING, JUNE 12, 1906


 The annual meeting of The First Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Boston, was held in the extension of The
30 Mother Church, Tuesday, June 12, at ten o'clock in the


Page 39


1 forenoon, and in order to accommodate those who could
 not gain admittance at that hour a second session was held
3 at two o'clock in the afternoon. The meeting was opened
 by the President, Rev. William P. McKenzie, who read
 from the Bible and Science and Health as follows: β€”


6    The Bible       Science and Health
 Isaiah 54: 1-5, 10-15,   571: 22
 17        574: 3-16, 27 The Revela-
9 Revelation 19: 1, 6-9        tor; The very
 577: 4


 Then followed a short silent prayer and the audible
12 repetition of the Lord's Prayer, in which all joined. The
 following list of officers for the ensuing year was read by
 the Clerk: β€”

15 President, Willis F. Gross, C.S.B.; Treasurer, Stephen
 A. Chase, C.S.D.; Clerk, William B. Johnson, C.S.D.

 In introducing the new President, Mr. McKenzie said: β€”


18 When I introduce the incoming President, my modest
 task will be ended. You will allow me, however, the
 privilege of saying a few words of reminder and prophecy.
21 My thoughts revert to a former occasion, when it was my
 pleasant duty to preside at an annual meeting when our
 Pastor Emeritus, Mrs. Eddy, was present. We remember
24 her graciousness and dignity. We recall the harmonious
 tones of her gentle voice. Our hearts were thrilled by her
 compassion, and the memory lives with us. But even more
27 distinctly may we realize her presence with us to-day.
 Why? Because our own growth in love and unity enables
 us to comprehend better the strength and beauty of her
30 character.


Page 40


1 Moreover, this completed extension of The Mother
 Church is an evidence to us of her hospitable love. She
3 has desired for years to have her church able to give
 more adequate reception to those who hunger and thirst
 after practical righteousness; and we are sure that now
6 the branch churches of The Mother Church will also en-
 large their hospitality, so that these seekers everywhere
 may be satisfied. This will imply the subsidence of criti-
9 cism among workers. It may even imply that some who
 have been peacebreakers shall willingly enter into the
 blessedness of peacemakers. Nothing will be lost, how-
12 ever, by those who relinquish their cherished resentments,
 forsake animosity, and abandon their strongholds of
 rivalry. Through rivalries among leaders Christendom
15 became divided into warring sects; but the demand
 of this age is for peacemaking, so that Christianity
 may more widely reassert its pristine power to bring
18 health and a cure to pain-racked and sorrow-worn hu-
 manity. "The wisdom that is from above is first
 pure, then peaceable, . . . And the fruit of righteous-
21 ness is sown in peace of them that make peace."
 "Blessed are the peacemakers: for they shall be called
 the children of God."

24 Our Leader, Mrs. Eddy, has presented to the world the
 ideal of Christianity, because she is an exact metaphysi-
 cian. She has illustrated what the poet perceived when he
27 said, "All's love, but all's law." She has obeyed the divine
 Principle, Love, without regrets and without resistance.
 Human sense often rebels against law, hence the proverb:
30 Dura lex, sed lex (Hard is the law, nevertheless it is
 the law). But by her own blameless and happy life,
 as well as by her teachings, our Leader has induced a


Page 41


1 multitude — how great no man can number — to be-
 come gladly obedient to law, so that they think rightly
3 or righteously.

 No one can change the law of Christian metaphysics,
 the law of right thinking, nor in any wise alter its
6 effects. It is a forever fact that the meek and lowly in
 heart are blessed and comforted by divine Love. If the
 proud are lonely and uncomforted, it is because they
9 have thoughts adverse to the law of love. Pride, arro-
 gance, and self-will are unmerciful, and so receive judg-
 ment without mercy; but the law of metaphysics says,
12 "Blessed are the merciful," and will allow no one to
 escape that blessedness, howsoever far he may stray,
 whatsoever lawlessness of hatred he may practise and
15 suffer from.

 So we see that Christian Science makes no compromise
 with evil, sin, wrong, or imperfection, but maintains the
18 perfect standard of truth and righteousness and joy. It
 teaches us to rise from sentimental affection which ad-
 mires friends and hates enemies, into brotherly love which
21 is just and kind to all and unable to cherish any enmity.
 It brings into present and hourly application what Paul
 termed "the law of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus," and
24 shows man that his real estate is one of blessedness. Why
 should any one postpone his legitimate joy, and disregard
 his lawful inheritance, which is "incorruptible and unde-
27 filed"? Our Leader and teacher not only discovered
 Christian Science, but through long years of consecration
 has obeyed its every demand, for our sakes as well as
30 for her own; and we begin to understand how illim-
 itable is the Love which supports such selfless devotion,
 we begin to comprehend the "beauty of holiness," and


Page 42


1 to be truly grateful to her who has depicted its form
 and comeliness. We have found it true that "she
3 openeth her mouth with wisdom; and in her tongue is
 the law of kindness."

 It is my pleasure to introduce to you a faithful follower
6 of this Leader as the President for the coming year, Willis
 F. Gross, C.S.B., one who has for many years "witnessed
 a good confession" in the practice of Christian Science.
9 You are no doubt already acquainted with him as one of
 the helpful contributors to our periodicals, so that any
 further words of mine are unnecessary.


12 Mr. Gross, on assuming office, said: β€”


 Beloved Friends: β€” Most unexpectedly to me came the
 call to serve you in this capacity, and I desire to improve
15 this opportunity to express my thanks for the honor con-
 ferred upon me. With a heart filled with gratitude for the
 countless blessings which have come into my life through
18 Christian Science, I shall endeavor to perform this service
 to the best of my ability.

 It affords me great pleasure to welcome you to our first
21 annual meeting held in the extension of The Mother
 Church. I shall not attempt to speak of the deep signifi-
 cance of this momentous occasion. I realize that only as
24 infinite good unfolds in each individual consciousness can
 we begin to comprehend, even in small degree, how great
 is the work that has been inaugurated by our beloved
27 Leader, how faithful is her allegiance to God, how untiring
 are her efforts, and how successful she is in the performance
 of her daily tasks.

30 "With a mighty hand, and with an outstretched arm"
 were the children of Israel delivered from the bondage of


Page 43


1 the Egyptians, but this deliverance did not put them in
 possession of the promised land. An unknown wilder-
3 ness was before them, and that wilderness must be con-
 quered. The law was given that they might know what
 was required of them, that they might have a definite rule
6 of action whereby to order aright the affairs of daily life.
 Obedience to the demands of the law revealed the God
 of their fathers, and they learned to know Him. During
9 their sojourn in the wilderness they suffered defeats and
 met with disappointments, but they learned from experi-
 ence and finally became willingly obedient to the voice of
12 their leader. The crossing of the Jordan brought them
 into the promised land, and this experience was almost
 as marvellous as had been the passage of the Red Sea
15 forty years before. In obedience to the command of
 Joshua, twelve stones taken from the midst of the river
 were set up on the other side for a memorial. In future
18 generations when it was asked, "What mean ye by these
 stones?" it was told them: Israel came over this Jordan
 on dry ground.

21 Forty years ago the Science of Christian healing was
 revealed to our beloved Leader, the Rev. Mary Baker
 Eddy. A few years later she gave us our textbook,
24 "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures." Obedi-
 ence to the teachings of this book has brought us to this
 hour. We have learned from experience, and to-day we
27 rejoice that we have found in Christian Science that
 which heals and saves.

 The world looks with wonder upon this grand achieve-
30 ment, β€” the completion and dedication of our magnificent
 temple, β€” and many are asking, "What mean ye by these
 stones?" The answer is, The way out of the wilderness


Page 44


1 of human beliefs has been revealed. Through the under-
 standing of God as an ever-present help, the sick are being
3 healed, the shackles of sin are being broken, heavy burdens
 are being laid down, tears are being wiped away, and
 Israel is going up to possess the promised land of eternal,
6 harmonious existence.

 Friends, our progress may be fast or it may be slow,
 but one thing is certain, it will be sure, if we are obe-
9 dient to the loving counsel of our ever faithful Leader.
 The Christ is here, has come to individual conscious-
 ness; and the faithful disciple rejoices in prophecy ful-
12 filled, "Lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of
 the world."



 Telegram to Mrs. Eddy


15 Judge Septimus J. Hanna then advanced to the
 front of the platform, read the following despatch, and
 moved that it be forwarded at once to our Leader,
18 Mrs. Eddy. The motion was carried unanimously by a
 rising vote.

 The despatch was as follows: β€”


21 TO THE REV. MARY BAKER EDDY,
 Pleasant View, Concord, N. H.


 Beloved Teacher and Leader: β€” The members of The
24 Mother Church, The First Church of Christ, Scientist,
 in Boston, Mass., in annual meeting assembled, hereby
 convey to you their sincere greetings and their deep
27 love.

 They desire to express their continued loyalty to your
 teachings, their unshaken confidence in the unerring wis-
30 dom of your leadership, and their confident assurance


Page 45


1 that strict and intelligent recognition of and obedience to
 the comprehensive means by you provided for the further-
3 ance of our Cause, will result in its perpetuity as well
 as in the ultimate regeneration of its adherents and of
 mankind.

6 We are witnessing with joy and gratitude the significant
 events associated with this, one of the greatest and most
 important gatherings of Christian Scientists in the annals
9 of our history. Yet the upwards of thirty thousand who
 are physically present at the dedication represent only a
 small part of the entire body who are of us and with us
12 in the animus and spirit of our movement.

 The great temple is finished! That which you have long
 prophetically seen has been accomplished. The magnifi-
15 cent edifice stands a fitting monument of your obedience
 and fidelity to the divine Principle revealed to you in that
 momentous hour when purblind mortal sense declared you
18 to be in extremis. You followed unswervingly the guid-
 ance of Him who went before you by day in a pillar of
 cloud to lead you in the way, and by night in a pillar
21 of fire to give you light, and the results of such following
 have been marvellous beyond human ken. As clearly
 as in retrospect we see the earlier leading, we now discern
24 the fulfilment of the later prophecy, that "He took not
 away the pillar of cloud by day, nor the pillar of fire by
 night," for each advancing step has logically followed
27 the preceding one.

 The great temple is finished! This massive pile of New
 Hampshire granite and Bedford stone, rising to a height
30 of two hundred and twenty-four feet, one foot loftier than
 the Bunker Hill monument, stands a material type of
 Truth's permanence. In solid foundation, in symmetrical


Page 46


1 arches, in generous hallways, in commodious foyer and
 broad stairways, in exquisite and expansive auditorium,
3 and in towering, overshadowing dome, the great structure
 stands, silently but eloquently beckoning us on towards
 a higher and more spiritual plane of living, for we know
6 that without this spiritual significance it were but a pass-
 ing dream.

 In the best sense it stands in prophetic verity of the
9 primary declaration of this church in its original organiza-
 tion; namely, "To organize a church designed to com-
 memorate the word and works of our Master, which should
12 reinstate primitive Christianity and its lost element
 of healing." (Church Manual, p. 17.) To rise to the
 demands of this early pronouncement is the work of true
15 Christian Scientists.

 To preach the gospel and heal the sick on the Christ-
 basis is the essential requirement of a reinstated Chris-
18 tianity. Only as we pledge ourselves anew to this demand,
 and then fulfil the pledge in righteous living, are we faith-
 ful, obedient, deserving disciples.

21 On this solemn occasion, and in the presence of this
 assembled host, we do hereby pledge ourselves to a deeper
 consecration, a more sincere and Christly love of God and
24 our brother, and a more implicit obedience to the sacred
 teachings of the Bible and our textbook, as well as to the
 all-inclusive instructions and admonitions of our Church
27 Manual in its spiritual import, that we may indeed reach
 "unto the city of the living God, the heavenly Jerusalem,
 and to an innumerable company of angels, to the general
30 assembly and church of the firstborn."

 WILLIAM B. JOHNSON, Clerk

 BOSTON, MASS., June 12, 1906


Page 47



1   Report of the Clerk


 Beloved Brethren of The First Church of Christ, Scientist,
3 in Boston, Mass.: β€” It seems meet at this time, when
 thousands of Christian Scientists have gathered here
 from all parts of the world, many of whom have not had
6 the means of knowing the steps by which this church has
 reached its present growth, to present in this report a few
 of the stages of its progress, as gleaned from the pages of
9 its history.

 After a work has been established, has grown to great
 magnitude, and people the world over have been touched
12 by its influence for good, it is with joy that those who have
 labored unceasingly for the work look back to the pictur-
 esque, interesting, and epoch-marking stages of its growth,
15 and recall memories of trials, progress, and victories that
 are precious each and all. To-day we look back over the
 years that have passed since the inception of this great
18 Cause, and we cannot help being touched by each land-
 mark of progress that showed a forward effort into the
 well-earned joy that is with us now. For a Cause that
21 has rooted itself in so many distant lands, and inspired so
 many of different races and tongues into the demonstration
 of the knowledge of God, the years that have passed since
24 Mrs. Eddy founded her first church seem but a short
 time. And this little church, God's word in the wilder-
 ness of dogma and creed, opened an era of Christian
27 worship founded on the commands of Jesus: "Go ye
 into all the world, and preach the gospel to every
 creature. . . . And these signs shall follow them that
30 believe; In my name shall they cast out devils; they
 shall speak with new tongues; they shall take up ser-


Page 48


1 pents; and if they drink any deadly thing, it shall not
 hurt them; they shall lay hands on the sick, and they
3 shall recover."

 Not until nineteen centuries had passed was there one
 ready to receive the inspiration, to restore to human con-
6 sciousness the stone that had been rejected, and which
 Mrs. Eddy made "the head of the corner" of The Church
 of Christ, Scientist.

9 With the reading of her textbook, "Science and
 Health with Key to the Scriptures," Mrs. Eddy insisted
 that her students make, every day, a prayerful study of
12 the Bible, and obtain the spiritual understanding of its
 promises. Upon this she founded the future growth of
 her church, and twenty-six years later the following
15 splendid appreciation of her efforts appeared in the
 Methodist Review from the pen of the late Frederick
 Lawrence Knowles:β€”

18 "Mrs. Eddy . . . in her insistence upon the constant
 daily reading of the Bible and her own writings, . . .
 has given to her disciples a means of spiritual development
21 which . . . will certainly build such truth as they do gain
 into the marrow of their characters. The scorn of the
 gross and sensual, and the subordination of merely material
24 to spiritual values, together with the discouragement of
 care and worry, are all forces that make for righteousness.
 And they are burned indelibly upon the mind of the
27 neophyte every day through its reading. The intellects
 of these people are not drugged by scandal, drowned in
 frivolity, or paralyzed by sentimental fiction. . . . They
30 feed the higher nature through the mind, and I am bound
 as an observer of them to say, in all fairness, that the
 result is already manifest in their faces, their conversation,


Page 49


1 and their bearing, both in public and private. What
 wonder that when these smiling people say, 'Come thou
3 with us, and we will do thee good,' the hitherto half-
 persuaded one is wholly drawn over, as by an irresistible
 attraction. The religious body which can direct, and con-
6 trol, in no arbitrary sense, but through sane counsel, the
 reading of its membership, stands a great chance of sweep-
 ing the world within a generation."

9 The charter of this little church was obtained August
 23, 1879, and in the same month the members extended a
 unanimous invitation to Mrs. Eddy to become its pastor.
12 At a meeting of those who were interested in forming the
 church, Mrs. Eddy was appointed on the committee to
 formulate the rules and by-laws, also the tenets and church
15 covenant. The first business meeting of the church was
 held August 16, 1879, in Charlestown, Mass., for the pur-
 pose of electing officers. August 22 the Clerk, by instruc-
18 tions received at the previous meeting, sent an invitation
 to Mrs. Eddy to become pastor of the church. August 27
 the church held a meeting, with Mrs. Eddy in the chair.
21 An interesting record of this meeting reads: "The minutes
 of the previous meeting were read and approved. Then
 Mrs. Eddy proceeded to instruct those present as to their
24 duties in the Church of Christ, giving some useful hints as
 to the mode of conducting the church."

 At a meeting held October 19, 1879, it was unanimously
27 voted that "Dr. and Mrs. Eddy merited the thanks of the
 society for their devoted labors in the cause of Truth,"
 and at the annual meeting, December 1 of the same year,
30 it was voted to instruct the Clerk to call Mrs. Eddy
 to the pastorate of the church, and at this meeting Mrs.
 Eddy accepted the call. The first meeting of this little


Page 50


1 church for deliberation before a Communion Sabbath
 was held at the home of the pastor, Mrs. Eddy, Jan-
3 uary 2, 1880.

 Most of those present had left their former church
 homes, in which they had labored faithfully and ardently,
6 and had united themselves into a little band of prayerful
 workers. As the Pilgrims felt the strangeness of their
 new home, the vast gloom of the mysterious forests, and
9 knew not the trials before them, so this little band of
 pioneers, guided by their dauntless Leader and teacher,
 starting out on their labors against the currents of dogma,
12 creed, sickness, and sin, must have felt a peculiar sense of
 isolation, for their records state, "The tone of this meeting
 for deliberation before Communion Sabbath was rather
15 sorrowful;" but as they turned steadfastly from the mor-
 tal side, and looked towards the spiritual, as the records
 further relate, "yet there was a feeling of trust in the
18 great Father, of Love prevailing over the apparently dis-
 couraging outlook of the Church of Christ." The Com-
 munion Sunday, however, brought fresh courage to the
21 earnest band, and the records contain these simple but
 suggestive words, β€” "Sunday, January 4, 1880. The
 church celebrated her Communion Sabbath as a church,
24 and it was a very inspiring season to us all, and two new
 members were added to the church." This was indeed
 the little church in the wilderness, and few knew of its
27 teachings, but those few saw the grandeur of its work
 and were willing to labor for the Cause.

 The record of May 23, 1880, more than twenty-six years
30 ago, states: "Our pastor, Mrs. Eddy, preached her fare-
 well sermon to the church. The business committee met
 after the services to call a general meeting of the church


Page 51


1 to devise means to pay our pastor, so as to keep her with
 us, as there is no one in the world who could take her place
3 in teaching us the Science of Life." May 26 of the same
 year the following resolutions were passed: "That the
 members of the Church of Christ, and all others now in-
6 terested in said church, do most sincerely regret that our
 pastor, Mrs. Eddy, feels it her duty to tender her resigna-
 tion, and while we feel that she has not met with the
9 support that she should have reason to expect, we venture
 to hope she will remain with us. That it would be a
 serious blow to her Cause to have the public services
12 discontinued at a time when there is such an interest
 manifested on the part of the people, and we know of no
 one who is so able as she to lead us to the higher under-
15 standing of Christianity, whereby to heal the sick and
 reform the sinner. It was moved to instruct the Clerk to
 have our pastor remain with us for a few Sundays if not
18 permanently."

 At a meeting of the church, December 15, 1880, an invi-
 tation was extended to Mrs. Eddy to accept the pastorate
21 for the ensuing year; but, as the records state, "she gave
 no definite answer, believing that it was for the interest
 of the Cause, and her duty, to go into new fields to
24 teach and preach."

 An interesting record relative to this very early work of
 the church, and its appreciation of Mrs. Eddy's tireless
27 labors, is that of July 20, 1881, which reads, "That we,
 the members of The Church of Christ, Scientist, tender to
 our beloved pastor, Mrs. Eddy, the heartfelt thanks and
30 gratitude shared by all who have attended the services, in
 appreciation of her earnest endeavors, her arduous labors,
 and successful instructions to heal the sick, and reform


Page 52


1 the sinner, by metaphysical truth or Christian Science, dur-
 ing the past year. Resolved: That while she had many
3 obstacles to overcome, many mental hardships to endure,
 she has borne them bravely, blessing them that curse her,
 loving them that despitefully use her, thereby giving in
6 her Christian example, as well as her instructions, the
 highest type of womanhood, or the love that heals. And
 while we sincerely acknowledge our indebtedness to her,
9 and to God, for these blessings, we, each and all, will make
 greater efforts more faithfully to sustain her in her work.
 Resolved: That while we realize the rapid growth, and
12 welcome the fact of the spreading world wide of this great
 truth, that Mind, Truth, Life, and Love, as taught and
 expressed by our pastor, does heal the sick, and, when
15 understood, does bring out the perfection of all things, we
 also realize we must use more energy and unselfish labor
 to establish these our Master's commands and our pastor's
18 teachings, namely, heal the sick, and preach the gospel,
 and love our neighbor as ourselves."

 Eighteen years ago, the Rev. James Henry Wiggin, who
21 was not a Christian Scientist, wrote as follows: "What-
 ever is to be Mrs. Eddy's future reputation, time will
 show. Little cares she, if only through her work Truth
24 may be glorified. More than once, in her earnestness, she
 has reached her bottom dollar, but the interest of the
 world to hear her word has always filled her coffers anew.
27 Within a few months she has made sacrifices from which
 most authors would have shrunk, to insure the moral
 rightness of her book." This statement "Phare Pleigh"
30 [the nom de plume of the Rev. James Henry Wiggin]
 makes out of his own peculiar knowledge of the circum-
 stances. "Day after day flew by, and weeks lengthened


Page 53


1 into months; from every quarter came important mis-
 sives of inquiry and mercantile reproach; hundreds of
3 dollars were sunk into a bottomless sea of corrections;
 yet not until the authoress was satisfied that her duty
 was wholly done, would she allow printer and binder to
6 send forth her book to the world." This book has now
 reached its four hundredth edition, each of one thousand
 copies.

9 On September 8, 1882, it was voted that the church
 hold its meetings of worship in the parlors of Mrs. Eddy's
 home, 569 Columbus Avenue, Boston. The services were
12 held there until November, 1883, and then in the Haw-
 thorne Rooms, at No. 3 Park Street, the seating capacity
 of which place was about two hundred and twenty-
15 five. At a meeting October 22, 1883, the church voted
 to wait upon Mrs. Eddy, to ascertain if she would
 preach for the society for ten dollars a Sunday, which
18 invitation she accepted. After establishing itself as a
 church in the Hawthorne Rooms, the number of atten-
 dants steadily increased. The pulpit was supplied by
21 Mrs. Eddy, when she could give the time to preach,
 and by her students and by clergymen of different
 denominations, among whom was the Rev. A. J. Pea-
24 body, D.D., of Cambridge, Mass.

 The annual report of the business committee of the
 church, for the year ending December 7, 1885, contains
27 some very interesting statements, among which is this:
 "There was a steadily increasing interest in Christian
 Science among the people, even though the continuity
30 of thought must have been very much broken by having
 so many different ones address them on the subject.
 When our pastor preached for us it was found that the


Page 54


1 Hawthorne Rooms were inadequate for the occasion,
 hundreds going away who could not obtain entrance;
3 those present enduring the inconvenience that comes
 from crowding, for the sake of the eternal truth she
 taught them." The Boston Traveler contained the fol-
6 lowing item: "The Church of Christ, Scientist, had their
 meeting Easter Sunday at Hawthorne Rooms, which
 were crowded one hour before the service commenced,
9 and half an hour before the arrival of the pastor, the
 Rev. Mary Baker Eddy, the tide of men and women
 was turned from the door with the information, 'No
12 more standing-room.’ β€œ

 On February 8, 1885, communion was held at Odd
 Fellows Hall, and there were present about eight hundred
15 people. At this time the Hawthorne Rooms, which had
 been regarded as the church home, were outgrown. Dur-
 ing the summer vacation, different places were considered,
18 but no place suitable could be found that was available,
 and the Sunday services were postponed. There was an
 expectation that some place would be obtained, but the
21 desire for services was so great that the Hawthorne Rooms
 were again secured. A record of this period reads, "It
 should be here stated that from the first of September to
24 our opening, crowds had besieged the doors at the Haw-
 thorne Rooms, Sunday after Sunday." On October 18,
 1885, the rooms were opened and a large congregation
27 was present. It was then concluded to engage Chickering
 Hall on Tremont Street. In the previous consideration
 of places for meeting it had been decided that this hall
30 was too large, as it seated four hundred and sixty-four.
 The first Sunday service held in Chickering Hall was on
 October 25, 1885. Mrs. Eddy preached at this service


Page 55


1 and the hall was crowded. This date is memorable as
 the one upon which the Sunday School was formed.

3 Meanwhile it was felt that the church needed a place of
 its own, and efforts were made to obtain by purchase some
 building, or church, in a suitable location. Several places
6 were considered, but were not satisfactory; yet the
 thought of obtaining a church edifice, although given up
 for a time, was not forgotten. In the mean time, not
9 only was the attendance rapidly growing in this church in
 Chickering Hall, but the Cause itself was spreading over
 the land. September 1, 1892, Mrs. Eddy gave the plot of
12 ground on which The Mother Church now stands. On
 the twenty-third day of September, 1892, twelve of the
 members of the church met, and, upon Mrs. Eddy's
15 counsel, reorganized the church, and named it The First
 Church of Christ, Scientist. This effort of Mrs. Eddy
 was an inspiration to Christian Scientists, and plans were
18 made for a church home.

 In the mean time Sunday services were held in Chicker-
 ing Hall, and continued there until March, 1894, and
21 during the last year the hall was crowded to overflowing.
 In March, however, the church was obliged to seek other
 quarters, as Chickering Hall was to be remodelled. At this
24 time the church removed to Copley Hall on Clarendon
 Street, which had a seating capacity of six hundred and
 twenty-five, and in that place Sunday services were held
27 until The Mother Church edifice was ready for occupancy,
 December 30, 1894. During the months that the con-
 gregation worshipped in Copley Hall there was a steady
30 increase in attendance.

 Twelve years ago the twenty-first of last month, the
 corner-stone of The Mother Church edifice was laid, and


Page 56


1 at that time it was thought the seating capacity would be
 adequate for years to come. Attendance at the Sunday
3 service gradually increased, until every seat was filled and
 many stood in the aisles, and in consequence two services
 were held, morning and afternoon, the latter a repetition
6 of the morning service. The date of the inauguration of
 two Sunday services was April 26, 1896. It was soon
 evident that even this provision was inadequate to meet
9 the need, and it was found necessary to organize branch
 churches in such suburbs of Boston as would relieve
 the overcrowded condition of The Mother Church; there-
12 fore three branch churches were organized, one in each of
 the following named places: Cambridge, Chelsea, and
 Roxbury.

15 For a while it seemed that there would be ample room
 for growth of attendance in The Mother Church, but not-
 withstanding the relief that the organization of branch
18 churches had given, the number of attendants increased
 faster than ever. From the time that the three foregoing
 named churches were established, the membership and the
21 attendance at them and at The Mother Church steadily
 grew, and more branch churches were established in other
 suburbs, members of which had formerly been attendants
24 at The Mother Church. In the spring of 1905 the over-
 crowded condition of the morning service showed that
 still further provision must be made, as many were obliged
27 to leave the church for the reason that there was not even
 standing-room. Therefore, beginning October 1, 1905,
 three services were held each Sunday, the second and
30 third being repetitions of the first service.

 This continued growth, this continued overcrowding,
 proved the need of a larger edifice. Our communion ser-


Page 57


1 vices and annual meetings were overcrowded in The
 Mother Church, they were overcrowded in Tremont
3 Temple, in Symphony Hall, and in the Mechanics Build-
 ing, and the need was felt of an auditorium that would
 be of great seating capacity, and one that would have the
6 sacred atmosphere of a church home.

 In Mrs. Eddy's Message to the church in 1902 she sug-
 gested the need of a larger church edifice, and at the
9 annual meeting of the same year the church voted to
 raise any part of two millions of dollars for the purpose of
 building a suitable edifice. The labor of clearing the land
12 was begun in October, 1903, and the corner-stone was
 laid July 16, 1904.

 The first annual meeting of the church was held in
15 Chickering Hall, October 3, 1893, and the membership
 at that date was 1,545. The membership of this
 church to-day is 40,011. The number of candidates
18 admitted June 5 of this year is the largest in the his-
 tory of the church and numbers 4,889, which is 2,194
 more than the hitherto largest admission, that of June,
21 1903. The total number admitted during the last
 year is 6,181. The total number of branch churches
 advertised in The Christian Science Journal of this
24 June is 682, 614 of which show a membership of
 41,944. The number of societies advertised in the
 Journal is 267.

27 Shortly before the dedication of The Mother Church in
 1895, the Boston Evening Transcript said: "Wonders will
 never cease. Here is a church whose Treasurer has sent
30 out word that no sums except those already subscribed
 can be received. The Christian Scientists have a faith
 of the mustard-seed variety. What a pity some of our


Page 58


1 practical Christian folk have not a faith approximate to
 that of these impractical Christian Scientists."

3 The fact that a notice was published in the Christian
 Science Sentinel of last Saturday that no more funds
 are needed to complete the extension of The Mother
6 Church, proves the truth of the axiom, "History re-
 peats itself." These are the evidences of the magnifi-
 cent growth of this Cause, and are sufficient refutation
9 of the statements that have been made that "Christian
 Science is dying out."

 The majesty and the dignity of this church edifice not
12 only shows the growth of this Cause, but proclaims the
 trust, the willingness of those who have contributed to
 the erection of these mighty walls.

15 This magnificent structure, this fitting testimonial in
 stone, speaks more than words can picture of the love and
 gratitude of a great multitude that has been healed and
18 purified through the labor and sacrifice of our revered
 Leader and teacher, Mary Baker Eddy, the one through
 whom God has revealed a demonstrable way of salvation.
21 May her example inspire us to follow her in preaching,
 "The kingdom of heaven is at hand," by healing the
 sick and reforming the sinful, and, as she has done, ver-
24 ifying Jesus' words, "Lo, I am with you alway."



 LETTERS AND EDITORIAL


 MRS. MARY BAKER EDDY,
27    Pleasant View, Concord, N. H.

 My Dear Teacher: β€” Of the many thousands who
 attended the dedicatory services at the Christian Science
30 church last Sunday it is doubtful if there was one so deeply


Page 59


1 impressed with the grandeur and magnitude of your work
 as was the writer, whom you will recall as a member of
3 your first class in Lynn, Mass., nearly forty years ago.
 When you told us that the truth you expounded was
 the little leaven that should leaven the whole lump, we
6 thought this might be true in some far distant day
 beyond our mortal vision. It was above conception
 that in less than forty years a new system of faith and
9 worship, as well as of healing, should number its adher-
 ents by the hundreds of thousands and its tenets be
 accepted wholly or in part by nearly every religious and
12 scientific body in the civilized world.

 Seated in the gallery of that magnificent temple, which
 has been reared by you, gazing across that sea of heads,
15 listening again to your words explaining the Scriptures,
 my mind was carried back to that first public meeting in
 the little hall on Market Street, Lynn, where you preached
18 to a handful of people that would scarce fill a couple of
 pews in this grand amphitheatre; and as I heard the sono-
 rous tones of the powerful organ and the mighty chorus of
21 five thousand voices, I thought of the little melodeon on
 which my wife played, and of my own feeble attempts
 to lead the singing.

24 In years gone by I have been asked, "Did Mrs. Eddy
 really write Science and Health? Some say she did not."
 My answer has invariably been, "Send those who say
27 she did not to me. I heard her talk it before it was
 ever written. I read it in manuscript before it was ever
 printed." Now my testimony is not needed. No human
30 being in this generation has accomplished such a work or
 been so thoroughly endorsed or so completely vindicated.
 It is marvellous beyond all imagining to one who knew of


Page 60


1 your early struggles. I have been solicited by many of
 your followers to say something about the early history
3 of Christian Science. I have replied that if Mrs. Eddy
 thought it wise to instruct them on the subject she would
 doubtless do so.

6 Possibly you may remember the words of my uncle, the
 good old deacon of the First Congregational Church of
 Lynn, when told that I had studied with you. "My boy,
9 you will be ruined for life; it is the work of the devil."
 He only expressed the thought of all the Christian (?)
 people at that time. What a change in the Christian
12 world! "The stone which the builders rejected" has
 become the corner-stone of this wonderful temple of
 "wisdom, Truth, and Love." (Science and Health, p.
15 495.) I have yet the little Bible which you gave me
 as a reward for the best paper on the spiritual sig-
 nificance of the first chapter of Genesis. It has this
18 inscription on the fly-leaf in your handwriting, "With
 all thy getting get understanding."


 Respectfully and faithfully yours,
21     S. P. BANCROFT

 CAMBRIDGE, MASS., June 12, 1906


 MRS. MARY BAKER EDDY,
24 Pleasant View, Concord, N. H.


 Dear Leader and Guide: β€” Now that the great event,
 the dedication of our new church building, is over, may
27 I ask a little of your time to tell you of the interesting
 part I had to perform in this wonderful consummation.
 On the twenty-fifth of last March I was asked by one
30 of the Directors if I would care to do a little watching


Page 61


1 at the church. I gladly answered in the affirmative, and
 have been in the building part of every night since that
3 time. To watch the transformation has been very in-
 teresting indeed, and the lessons I have learned of the
 power of divine Mind to remove human obstructions
6 have been very precious. At first I thought that, since
 it seemed impossible for the building to be completed
 before the end of summer, the communion would likely
9 be postponed until that time. Then came the announce-
 ment that the services would be held in the new exten-
 sion on June 10. I saw at once that somebody had to
12 wake up. I fought hard with the evidence of mortal
 sense for a time; but after a while, in the night, as
 I was climbing over stones and planks and plaster,
15 I raised my eyes, and the conviction that the work
 would be accomplished came to me so clearly, I said
 aloud, "Why, there is no fear; this house will be ready
18 for the service, June 10." I bowed my head before
 the might of divine Love, and never more did I have
 any doubt.

21 One feature about the work interested me. I noticed
 that as soon as the workmen began to admit that the work
 could be done, everything seemed to move as by magic;
24 the human mind was giving its consent. This taught me
 that I should be willing to let God work. I have often
 stood under the great dome, in the dark stillness of the
27 night, and thought, "What cannot God do?" (Science
 and Health, p. 135.)

 As I discovered the many intricate problems which must
30 necessarily present themselves in such an immense under-
 taking, I appreciated as never before the faithful, earnest
 work of our noble Board of Directors. With unflinching


Page 62


1 faith and unfailing fidelity they have stood at the breast-
 works in the battle, and won the reward, "Well done,
3 good and faithful servant; . . . enter thou into the joy
 of thy lord."

 But what of this magnificent structure ? Whence did it
6 come? To me it is the result of the love that trembled
 in one human heart when it whispered: "Dear God, may
 I not take this precious truth and give it to my brothers
9 and sisters?" How can we ever thank God enough for
 such an one, β€” ever thank you enough for your unselfed
 love. May the glory which crowns the completion of this
12 structure shed its brightest beams on your pathway, and
 fill your heart with the joy of Love's victory.

 Your sincere follower,

15     JAMES J. ROME

 BOSTON, MASS., June 30, 1906


 REV. MARY BAKER EDDY,
18    Pleasant View, Concord, N. H.


 Beloved Leader and Teacher: β€” We, the Directors of
 your church, send you loving greetings and congratulations
21 upon the completion of the magnificent extension of The
 Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, and we again express
 our thankful appreciation of your wise counsel, timely
21 instruction, and words of encouragement when they were
 so much needed.

 We acknowledge with many thanks the valuable services
27 rendered to this Board by the members of the business
 committee, who were ever ready to assist us in every way
 possible; also the services of other members of the church,
30 who gave freely of their time and efforts when there was
 urgent need of both.


Page 63


1 We do not forget that it was through you we were en-
 abled to secure the services of Mr. Whitcomb as builder
3 in the early days of the construction of the church, and of
 Mr. Beman in an advisory capacity in the later days; for
 this, and for their valuable services, we are grateful.

6   Lovingly and gratefully your students,

 THE CHRISTIAN SCIENCE BOARD OF DIRECTORS,
 By WILLIAM B. JOHNSON, Secretary

9  BOSTON, MASS., July 10, 1906



 [Editorial in Christian Science Sentinel, June 23, 1906]


 Our annual communion and the dedication of the exten-
12 sion of The Mother Church are over, and this happy and
 holy experience has become a part of our expanding con-
 sciousness of Truth, to abide with us and enable us better
15 to work out the purposes of divine Love. It was scarcely
 possible to repress a feeling of exultation as friend met
 friend at every turn with words of rejoicing; and even the
18 greetings and congratulations of those not of our faith
 seemed to say that all the world was in some degree sharing
 in our joy. But within our sacred edifice there came a
21 deeper feeling, a feeling of awe and of reverence beyond
 words, β€” a new sense of the magnitude of Christian
 Science, this revelation of divinity which has come to the
24 present age. Grandly does our temple symbolize this
 revelation, in its purity, stateliness, and vastness; but
 even more impressive than this was the presence of the
27 thousands who had come, as the Master predicted, "from
 the east, and from the west, and from the north, and
 from the south," to tell by their presence that they had
30 been healed by Christ, Truth, and had found the kingdom
 of God.


Page 64


1 As one thought upon the significance of the occasion,
 the achievements of our beloved Leader and her relation
3 to the experiences of the hour took on a larger and truer
 meaning. The glories of the realm of infinite Mind,
 revealed to us through her spiritual attainments and her
6 years of toil, encompassed us, and hearts were thrilled
 with tender gratitude and love for all that she has done.
 If to-day we feel a pardonable pride in being known as
9 Christian Scientists, it is because our Leader has made the
 name an honored one before the world.

 In her dedicatory Message to The Mother Church,
12 Mrs. Eddy says, "The First Commandment of the Hebrew
 Decalogue, 'Thou shalt have no other gods before me,'
 and the Golden Rule are the all-in-all of Christian Science."
15 In all her writings, through all the years of her leadership,
 she has been teaching her followers both by precept and
 example how to obey this commandment and rule, and
18 her success in so doing is what constitutes the high stand-
 ing of Christian Science before the world. Fearlessly does
 she warn all her followers against the indulgence of the
21 sins which would prevent the realization of ideal manhood
 β€” the reign of the Christ — and now it is ours to address
 ourselves with renewed faith and love to the high and holy
24 task of overcoming all that is unlike God, and thus prove
 our worthiness to be "living stones" in the universal
 temple of Spirit, and worthy members of The Mother
27 Church before men.

Page 65



1 [Boston Journal, June 19, 1902]


 AN ASTONISHING MOTION


3 Assembled in the largest church business meeting ever
 held in Boston — perhaps the largest ever held in the
 United States — the members of The First Church of
6 Christ, Scientist, Boston, The Mother Church of the de-
 nomination, voted yesterday afternoon to raise any part
 of two million dollars that might be needed to build
9 in this city a church edifice capable of seating between
 four and five thousand persons. This astonishing motion
 was passed with both unanimity and assurance. It was
12 not even talked over, beyond two brief explanations why
 the building was needed. Learning that a big church was
 required, the money to provide it was pledged with the
15 readiness and despatch of an ordinary mortal passing out
 a nickel for carfare.



 [Boston Globe, April, 1903]


 PROGRESSIVE STEPS


 The last parcel in the block bounded by Falmouth,
 Norway, and St. Paul Streets, in the shape of a triangle,
21 has passed to the ownership of the Christian Science
 church, the deed being taken by Ira O. Knapp et al.,


Page 66


1 trustees. The purchase of this parcel, which is known as
 the Hotel Brookline, a four-story brick building also in the
3 shape of a triangle, gives to the above society the ownership
 of the entire block.

 During the past two weeks considerable activity has
6 been going on in property on these streets, no less than
 ten estates having been conveyed by deed to the Christian
 Science church, and now comes the purchase of the last
9 parcel on St. Paul Street by the above society, which
 gives them the ownership of the entire block.

 Just what use the society will make of the property
12 has not been stated, but it is said that a number of changes
 will be made that will enable the church to expand, and
 to do so it was necessary to have this property. No block
15 is so well situated for church purposes as this one, being
 in a fine part of the city.



 [Boston Post, June 6, 1906]


 THE FINISHING TOUCHES


 Artisans and artists are working night and day and
 craftsmen are hurrying on with their work to make the
21 spacious and elegant edifice complete for the elaborate
 observances of Sunday, when six services will be held,
 and when the words of Mary Baker Eddy will come from
24 her beautiful home, Pleasant View, in Concord, N. H.,
 welcoming her children and giving her blessing to the
 structure.

27 The services of Sunday will mark an epoch in the history
 of Christian Science. Since the discovery by Mrs. Eddy,
 many beautiful houses of worship have been erected, but
30 never before has such a grand church been built as that


Page 67


1 which raises its dome above the city at the corner of
 Falmouth and Norway Streets.



3     [Boston Post]


 Description of the Extension


 Extension of The Mother Church


6 Cost ..................................................................................$2,000,000
 Shape, triangular ..................................................... 220x220x236 ft.
 Height ...................................................................................... 224 ft.
9 Area of site ....................................................................40,000 sq. ft.
 Seating capacity ........................................................................5,000
 Checking facilities .................................................... 3,000 garments


12    Notable Dates in Christian Science


 Christian Science discovered .....................................................1866
 First church organized ................................................................1879
15 First church erected ....................................................................1894
 Corner-stone of cathedral laid ....................................................1904
 Cathedral to be dedicated ...........................................................1906


18 Two million dollars was set aside for the building of this
 addition to The First Church of Christ, Scientist, and the
 money was used in giving Boston an edifice that is a
21 marvel of architectural beauty. But one church in the
 country exceeds it in seating capacity, and, while vaster
 sums of money were spent in other instances, never was
24 a more artistic effect reached.

 This new temple, begun nearly two years ago, will in
 its simple grandeur surpass any church edifice erected
27 in this city. Notwithstanding its enormous size, it is so
 proportionately built that its massiveness is unnoticed
 in the graceful outlines.


Page 68


1 Built in the Italian Renaissance style, the interior of
 this church is carried out with the end in view of impressing
3 the audiences with the beauty and strength of the design.
 The great auditorium, with its high-domed ceiling, sup-
 ported on four arches springing from the tops of great
6 stone piers, contains about one mile and a half of pews.

 The dome surmounting the building is more than twice
 the size of the dome on the State House, having a diameter
9 of eighty-two feet and a height of fifty-one feet.

 The top of the dome is two hundred and twenty-four feet
 above the street, and reaches an altitude twenty-nine feet
12 higher than that of the State House.

 The old church at the corner of Falmouth and Norway
 Streets, with a seating capacity of twelve hundred, built
15 twelve years ago, will remain as it was, and Mrs. Eddy's
 famous room will be undisturbed.

 The Readers' platform is of a beautiful foreign marble,
18 and the color scheme for all the auditorium is of a warm
 gray, to harmonize with the Bedford stone which enters
 so largely into the interior finish.

21 The great organ is placed back of the Readers' platform
 and above the Readers' special rooms. It has an archi-
 tectural stone screen and contributes not a little to the
24 imposing effect of the interior.

 Bedford stone and marble form the interior finish, with
 elaborate plaster work for the great arches and ceilings.
27 The floors of the first story are of marble.

 There are twelve exits and seven broad marble stair-
 ways, the latter framed of iron and finished with bronze,
30 marble, and Bedford stone.

 Bronze is used in the lighting fixtures, and the pews and
 principal woodwork are of mahogany.


Page 69


1 The church is unusually well lighted, and one of the
 extraordinary features is the eight bronze chains, each
3 suspending seventy-two lamps, each lamp of thirty-two
 candle-power.

 Where ceiling or roof and side walls come together no
6 sharp angles are visible, such meetings presenting an oval
 and dome appearance and forming a gently curved and
 panelled surface, whereon are placed inscriptions illustra-
9 tive of the faith of Christian Science.

 Two large marble plates with Scripture quotations are
 also placed on the two sides of the organ.

12 Everywhere within the building where conditions per-
 mitted it pure white marble was used, and the hammer
 and chisel of the sculptor added magnificent carvings to
15 the rich beauty of the interior.

 The auditorium contains seven galleries, two on either
 side and three at the back, yet not a single pillar or post
18 anywhere in the vast space interrupts the view of the
 platform from any seat.

 Another unusual feature is the foyer, where five thousand
21 people can freely move. Adjoining this foyer are the
 Sunday School and the administration offices, while in
 the basement is a cloak-room of the capacity of three
24 thousand wraps.



 [Boston Globe]


 AN IDEA OF THE SIZE


27 If one would get an idea of the size of this building and
 the manner in which the dome seems to dominate the
 entire city, the best point of view is on top of the tower
30 in Mt. Auburn cemetery in Cambridge, some four miles
 away. From this point the building and dome can be seen


Page 70


1 in their relation to the city itself, and it certainly looks
 imposing.

3 One thing is certain: for a religion which has been
 organized only thirty years, and which erected its first
 church only twelve years ago, Christian Science has more
6 fine church edifices to its credit in the same time than
 any other denomination in the world, and they are all
 paid for.



9  [Boston Evening Transcript]


 THE CHIMES


 The chimes for the new Christian Science temple are
12 worthy of the dome. The effect on all within earshot is
 quite remarkable. They say that workingmen stopped
 in the street and stood in silent admiration while the
15 chimes were being tested the other day. Millet's
 "Angelus" had living reproductions on every corner in
 the neighborhood.



18    [Boston Post]


 MAGNIFICENCE OF THE ORGAN


 The new church is replete with rare bits of art, chosen
21 from the works of both ancient and modern masters, but
 there is nothing more wonderful than the organ which
 has been installed. Nowhere in the world is there a more
24 beautiful, more musical, or more capable instrument.
 In reality it is a combination of six organs, with four
 manuals, seventy-two stops, nineteen couplers, nineteen
27 adjustable combination pistons, three balanced swells,
 a grand crescendo pedal, seven combination pedals, and
 forty-five hundred and thirty-eight pipes, the largest of
30 which is thirty-two feet long. Attached to the organ is


Page 71


1 a set of cathedral chimes, stationed in one of the towers,
 and some of the most intricate discoveries of organ
3 builders enable the organist to produce the most beautiful
 effects by means of the bells. There is also a solo organ
 attached.



6   [Boston Journal]


 ITS ARCHITECTURE


 There is no need of fussing about the underlying spirit
9 that built the Christian Science cathedral. We can all
 agree that it is a stunning piece of architecture and a
 great adornment to the city.



12    [Boston Globe]


 UNIQUE INTERIOR


 When these people enter this new cathedral or temple
15 which has been in process of construction, they will find
 themselves in one of the most imposing church edifices
 in the country — yes, in the world. For in its interior
18 architecture it is different from any other church in the
 world. In fact, nearly all the traditions of church interior
 architecture have been set aside in this temple, for here
21 are neither nave, aisles, nor transept — just one vast audi-
 torium which will seat exactly five thousand and twelve
 people on floor and galleries, and seat them comfort-
24 ably. And what is more, every person seated in the
 auditorium, either on floor or galleries, can see and hear
 the two Readers who conduct the services on the platform
27 in front of the great organ.

 This was the aim and object of the architect: to con-
 struct an auditorium that would seat five thousand people,
30 each of whom could see the Readers, and with such nicely


Page 72


1 adjusted acoustic properties that each person could hear
 what was said. To do this it was necessary to set aside
3 the traditions of interior church architecture.



 [Boston Post]


 GATES OF BOSTON OPEN


6 The gates of Boston are open wide in welcome to
 nobility. Never before has the city been more fre-
 quented by members of the titled aristocracy of the
9 old world than it is now. From all the centres of Europe
 there are streaming into town lords and ladies who
 come to attend the dedication of the new church for
12 Christian Scientists.



 [Boston Globe]


 CHRISTIAN SCIENTISTS HAVE ALL THE MONEY NEEDED


15 "Please do not send us any more money — we have
 enough!"

 Briefly that is the notice which Stephen A. Chase,
18 treasurer of the building fund of the new Christian Sci-
 ence temple, sent forth to the thirty thousand or more
 Christian Scientists who have come to Boston to attend
21 the dedication exercises, and also through the Chris-
 tian Science Sentinel to members of the church all over
 the world.

24 This means that nearly two million dollars has
 been subscribed for the new building, and that every
 cent of it was paid in before the work was actually
27 completed.

 That is the way the Christian Scientists began when
 they erected the first church in Boston twelve years ago


Page 73


1 β€” The Mother Church. Then it was found necessary
 to issue a similar notice or order, and even to return
3 more than ten thousand dollars which had been over-
 subscribed. They have erected dozens of churches all
 over this country and in other countries since that time,
6 but it is claimed that very few of them owe a cent.

 If you ask a Christian Scientist how they do it, the
 reply will be in the form of a quotation from Science
9 and Health (p. 494), "Divine Love always has met and
 always will meet every human need."



 [Boston Globe]


 THE GREAT GATHERING


 Christian Scientists are flocking from all over the
 world to Boston to-day, as they have been for several
15 days past and will be for several days to come, to attend
 the June meetings of The Mother Church and the dedica-
 tion of the new temple.

18 The headquarters was thrown open to visitors this
 forenoon in Horticultural Hall, corner of Huntington
 and Massachusetts Avenues. It is in charge of G. D.
21 Robertson, and here the visitors will receive all information
 concerning rooms and board, hotels, railroads, etc. There
 is here also a post-office to which all mail may be directed,
24 and telegraph and telephone service.



 [Boston Evening Transcript]


 SPECIAL TRAINS COMING


27 Special trains and extra sections of trains are due to
 arrive in Boston to-night, bearing the first instalments of
 the crowds of Christian Scientists from the central and


Page 74


1 western sections of this country. Those from abroad
 and from the far West to a large degree are already in
3 Boston. From now until Saturday night the inrush will
 be from the sections within two or three days' ride, and
 no doubt the night trains of Saturday will bring con-
6 siderable numbers of belated church members from New
 York and elsewhere who will arrive in this city just about
 in time for the first Sunday service.



9     [Boston Evening Transcript]


 INTERESTING AND AGREEABLE VISITORS


 The Christian Scientists are here in force, and they are
12 very interesting and agreeable visitors, even to those who
 are unable to accompany them in their triumph of mind
 over matter. Boston is indebted to them for one of the
15 finest architectural achievements in this or any other city,
 and other denominations might profit by their example of
 paying for their church before dedicating it. It is a monu-
18 ment to the sincerity of their faith; and the pride and
 satisfaction that is not only evident from their addresses
 but reflected in their faces, is justifiable. They are an
21 intelligent and a happy appearing body, and even if those
 outside are unable to believe that they have escaped from
 the bondage of the material world, it would be idle to
24 attempt to deny them the satisfaction that springs from
 a belief in such emancipation. Our present relations with
 them are as the guests of the city, and as such they are
27 welcome.

 Within two weeks we have had here the representatives
 of the two poles of healing, the material and the mental,
30 and each is interesting, one for its hopefulness and the
 other for its novelty. Whatever opinions we may enter-


Page 75


1 tain of the value of the latter, we cannot well withhold
 our respectful acknowledgment of its enthusiasm, its
3 energy, and its faith in its fundamentals. Its votaries
 are certainly holding the centre of the stage this week.



 [Boston Globe]


 READILY ACCOMMODATED


 Yesterday was a busy day at the headquarters of the
 Christian Scientists in Horticultural Hall. They poured
9 into the city from every direction and most of them
 headed straight for Horticultural Hall, where they were
 assigned rooms in hotels or lodging-houses, if they had
12 not already been provided for. So perfect have been all
 the preliminary arrangements for the handling of a great
 number of visitors that there has not been the slightest
15 hitch in the matter of securing accommodations. And
 if there was it would not make much difference, for these
 people would take it all very good-naturedly. They
18 do not get excited over trifles. They are very patient and
 good-natured. Crowded as the hall was yesterday, and
 warm as the day was, there was not the slightest evidence
21 of temper, no matter how far they had travelled or what
 discomforts they might have endured in their travels.



 [Boston Evening Transcript]


 BIG CHURCH IS PAID FOR


 According to the custom of the Christian Scientists, the
 big addition to The Mother Church will be dedicated
27 to-morrow free from debt. No church has ever yet been
 dedicated by this denomination with any part of the
 expense of its construction remaining unprovided for, and


Page 76


1 it went without saying that the same practice would be
 followed with this new two-million-dollar edifice, the
3 largest of them all. Up to within ten days the notices
 that more money was needed had been in circulation,
 and new contributions were constantly being received;
6 but on June 2 it became evident to the Board of Direct-
 ors that enough money was on hand to provide for the
 entire cost of the building, and the formal announcement
9 was made that no more contributions to the building fund
 were needed. That it was received with rejoicing by the
 thousands of church members and their friends only feebly
12 expresses the gratification.

 A similar decision was reached and published at the
 time of the dedication of The Mother Church in 1895, all
15 of which goes to show the earnestness and loyalty which
 Christian Scientists manifest in the support of their
 church work, and which enables them to dedicate their
18 churches free of debt without exception. The estimated
 cost of the extension of The Mother Church was pledged
 by the members assembled in their annual church meeting
21 in Boston, in 1902, and all contributions have been
 voluntary.



 [New York Herald]


 GIANT TEMPLE FOR SCIENTISTS


 There will be dedicated in Boston to-morrow the
 first great monument to Christian Science, the new two-
27 million-dollar cathedral erected by the devotees of a
 religion which twenty-seven years ago was founded in
 Boston by Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy with a membership
30 of twenty-six persons.

 The new structure, which is now completed, has for


Page 77


1 months been the cynosure of all eyes because of its great
 size, beautiful architecture, and the novelty of the cult
3 which it represents. This temple is one of the largest in
 the world. It has a seating capacity of over five thousand.
 In this respect it leads the Auditorium of Chicago. Be-
6 side it the dome of the Massachusetts State House, which
 is the leading landmark of Boston, pales into insignificance,
 as its dimensions are only half as great.

9 From all over the world Christian Scientists are rapidly
 gathering in this city to participate in the most notable
 feature in the life of their cult. From beyond the Rockies,
12 from Canada, from Great Britain, and practically every
 civilized country, daily trainloads of pilgrims are pouring
 into Boston, and it is estimated that not less than twenty-
15 five thousand visitors will participate in the dedication.



 [New York World]


 DEDICATION DAY


18 Over the heads of a multitude which began to gather at
 daybreak and which filled the streets leading to the mag-
 nificent temple of the Christian Science church, there
21 pealed from the chimes a first hymn of thanksgiving at
 six o'clock this morning. It was dedication day, and
 Christian Scientists from all quarters of the globe were
24 present to participate in the occasion.

 It was estimated that nearly forty thousand believers
 had gathered in Boston. Word was conveyed to them that
27 the temple would open its doors absolutely free of debt,
 every penny of the two million dollars required to build
 the imposing edifice in the Back Bay district having
30 been secured by voluntary subscription.


Page 78


1 The seating capacity of the temple is five thousand,
 and in order that all might participate in the dedication,
3 six services, identical in character, were held during the
 morning, afternoon, and evening.

 The worshippers saw an imposing structure of gray
6 stone with a massive dome rising to a height of two
 hundred and twenty-four feet and visible from every
 quarter of the city. The multitude passed through the
9 twelve entrances beneath a series of arches in the sev-
 eral faΓ§ades. They looked upon an interior done in soft
 gray with decorative carvings peculiarly rich and im-
12 pressive. The seating is accomplished in a semi-circular
 sweep of mahogany pews and in triple galleries.

 The offertory taken at the beginning of the services
15 found every basket piled high with bank-notes, everybody
 contributing, and none proffering small change.

 At the close of the Lesson-Sermon, and in accordance
18 with the custom of the Christian Science church, the
 entire congregation knelt in silent communion, followed
 by the audible repetition of the Lord's Prayer. One of
21 the remarkable features of the services was the congre-
 gation singing in perfect unison. The acoustic properties
 of the temple, in spite of its vast interior, were found to
24 be perfect.



 [Boston Globe]


 CHILDREN'S SERVICE


27 No mere words can convey the peculiar impressiveness
 of the half past twelve service; the little children, awed by
 the grandeur of the great room in which they were seated,
30 drinking in every word of the exercises and apparently
 understanding all they heard, joining with their shrill


Page 79


1 voices in the singing and responsive reading, and then, at
 the last, kneeling for silent communion before the pews, in
3 absolute stillness, their eyes closed and their solemn little
 faces turned upward.



 [Norfolk (Neb.) Tribune]


 ON A FAR HIGHER PEDESTAL


 To those who seem to see no good in Christian Science,
 it must stagger their faith not a little to read the account
9 of the dedication of the vast temple located in the heart
 of the city of Boston, the supposed fountain of knowledge
 and seat of learning of America; the spectacle of thirty
12 thousand people assembling to gain admission to the
 temple shows an enthusiasm for Christian Science seldom
 witnessed anywhere in the world on any occasion; and
15 this occurred in staid old Boston, and the fact was heralded
 in flaming headlines in the leading newspapers of the
 world. According to the despatches, that assembly was
18 not a gathering of "the vulgar throng;" the intelligence
 and wisdom of the country were there. There certainly
 must be something more than a fad in Christian Science,
21 which was placed upon a far higher pedestal by that
 demonstration than it ever occupied before.



 [Boston Herald]


 THE WEDNESDAY EVENING MEETINGS


 Quietly, without a trace of fanaticism, making their
 remarkable statements with a simplicity which sprang
27 from the conviction that they would be believed, scores of
 Christian Scientists told of cures from diseases, physical
 and mental, at the testimony meetings that marked the


Page 80


1 close of their visit to Boston; cures that carried one back
 to the age of miracles. To hear prosperous, contented
3 men and women, people of substance and of standing,
 earnestly assure thousands of auditors that they had been
 cured of blindness, of consumption in its advanced stages,
6 of heart disease, of cancer; that they had felt no pain
 when having broken bones set; that when wasted unto
 death they had been made whole, constituted a severe tax
9 upon frail human credulity, yet they were believed.

 Meetings were held in the extension of The Mother
 Church, in the extension vestry, in the old auditorium
12 of The Mother Church, in The Mother Church vestry,
 Horticultural Hall (Exhibition Hall), Horticultural Hall
 (Lecture Hall), Jordan Hall, Potter Hall, Howe and
15 Woolson Halls, Chickering Hall.

 At each of the meetings the introductory services were
 identical, consisting of hymns, an appropriate reading
18 from the Bible, and selections from "Science and Health
 with Key to the Scriptures" by Mrs. Mary Baker
 Eddy.

21 Fifteen thousand Scientists crowded into the auditorium
 of the extension of The Mother Church, into the old
 church, into Horticultural Hall, Jordan Hall, Potter Hall,
24 Woolson Hall, and Chickering Hall, and it took ten
 meetings to accommodate the great throngs who wanted
 to give testimony or who wanted to hear it. And when
27 these places had all been filled, there were many hundreds
 waiting vainly in the streets. A few were upon the scene
 as early as three o'clock in the afternoon to secure seats
30 in the main body of the church, where the largest meeting
 was held, and long before seven the auditorium was com-
 fortably filled.


Page 81


1 Upon entering The Mother Church one was immediately
 struck with the air of well-being and of prosperity of the
3 great congregation. The Scientists fairly radiate good
 nature and healthy satisfaction with life. No pessimistic
 faces there! So ingrained is this good nature, so complete
6 this self-abnegation, that at the very height of fervor, when
 bursting with a desire to testify to the benefits and the
 healing power of the faith, one of them would pause and
9 laughingly give precedence to another who had been the
 first to catch the Reader's eye.

 When Mr. McCrackan announced at the main meet-
12 ing that they were ready to receive testimony, up
 leaped half a dozen Scientists. They had been told to
 name, before beginning, the places where they lived.
15 "Indianapolis!" "Des Moines!" "Glasgow!" "Cuba!"
 "Dresden!" "Peoria!" they cried. No more cosmo-
 politan audience ever sat in Boston.

18 Those who poured out their debts of gratitude for ills
 cured, for hearts lifted up, spoke simply and gratefully,
 but occasionally the voices would ring out in a way there
21 was no mistaking. In those people was the depth of
 sincerity, and, when they sang, the volume of holy song
 rose tingling to the great dome, swelling as one voice.
24 It was a practical demonstration of the Scientist claims,
 a fitting close to a memorable week.

 If an attempt were made to give any account of the
27 marvellous cures narrated at the meetings of the Scien-
 tists, or wherever two or more of them are met together,
 it would be impossible to convey a conception of the
30 fervor of belief with which each tells his or her experi-
 ence. These are tales of people of standing and of
 substance, professional men, hard-headed shrewd busi-


Page 82


1 ness men. Yet they all have the same stories of their
 conversion, either through a cure to themselves or to
3 one near and dear to them.



 [Boston Herald]


 EXODUS BEGINS


6 For a while this morning it looked as though all the
 Christian Scientists who have been crowding Boston
 the last week were trying to get away at the same
9 time. Hotels, boarding-houses, and private houses
 were disgorging trunks and smaller articles of baggage
 so fast that it was a matter of wonder where there
12 could be secured express wagons enough to accommo-
 date the demand.

 At the dedicatory services of The Mother Church
15 extension on Sunday, and at the sessions of the annual
 meeting, Tuesday, it was the pride of the Church Direct-
 ors that the edifice was emptied of its crowds in some-
18 thing like ten minutes. It would seem that this ability
 to get away when the entertainment is over is a dis-
 tinguishing characteristic of Christian Scientists, for at
21 noon to-day [June 14] the indications were that Boston
 would be emptied of its twenty thousand and more vis-
 itors by midnight to-night.

24 Transportation facilities at the two stations were taxed
 to the utmost from early morning, and trains pulled out
 of the city in double sections.

27 Although the Scientists came to Boston in such numbers
 and are departing with such remarkable expedition, their
 going will not be noticeable to the residents of Boston,
30 except perhaps those living in the streets leading directly


Page 83


1 to Horticultural Hall. This fact will be due to the
 custom Christian Scientists have of never going about
3 labelled. Ordinarily the holding of a great convention
 is patent to every one residing in the convention city.
 Up at Horticultural Hall the one hundred and fifty
6 members of the local arrangement committee wore tiny
 white, unmarked buttons, for their own self-identification,
 otherwise there has been no flaunting of badges or
9 insignia of any kind. Christian Scientists frequently
 wear a small pin, but this is usually hidden away in
 the laces of the women's frocks, and the men go
12 entirely unadorned.

 Therefore, with the exception of the street-car men
 and policemen, who will doubtless have fewer questions
15 as to locality to answer, and the hotel and restaurant
 keepers, who will have time to rest and sleep, the pub-
 lic at large will scarcely realize that the Scientists have
18 gone.



 WHAT THE BOSTON EDITORS SAID



 [Boston Daily Advertiser]


21 The meeting of the Christian Scientists in this city
 naturally takes on a tone of deserved satisfaction, in view
 of the announcement, which has just been made, that the
24 two million dollars needed for the construction of the new
 temple has been raised even before the building itself has
 been completed.

27 The thirty thousand visitors have other evidences of
 the strength and growth of their organization, which has
 made steady gains in recent years. But of this particu-
30 lar example of the readiness of the members to bear
 each his or her share of the necessary expense of church


Page 84


1 work, the facts speak more plainly than mere assertion
 could. Nothing is more of a drag on a church than a
3 heavy debt, the interest on which calls for practically all
 the resources of the institution. Many a clergyman can
 testify from his own experience how a "church debt"
6 cramps and retards and holds back work that would
 otherwise be done. It is a rule in some denominations
 that a church edifice may not be formally dedicated until
9 it be wholly free from debt. And the experience of many
 generations has affirmed its wisdom.



 [Boston Herald]


12 Boston is the Mecca for Christian Scientists all over the
 world. The new temple is something to be proud of. Its
 stately cupola is a fitting crown for the other architec-
15 tural efforts in that section of the Back Bay.



 [Boston Evening Record]


 Boston is near to another great demonstration of the
18 growth of the Christian Science idea in numbers, wealth,
 vigor, and faithful adherence. It is a remarkable story
 which the gathering here tells. Its very magnitude and
21 the cheerful optimism and energy of its followers im-
 press even the man who cannot reconcile himself to
 the methods and tenets of the sect. Its hold and
24 development are most notable.



 [Boston Post]


 The gathering of Christian Scientists for the dedication
27 of the beautiful structure on Falmouth Street, which is
 to take place on Sunday, is notable in many ways. It


Page 85


1 is remarkable in the character of the assembling mem-
 bership, in its widely international range, and in the
3 significance of the occasion.

 The growth of this cult is the marvel of the age. Thirty
 years ago it was comparatively unknown; one church
6 and a mere handful of members measured its vogue.
 To-day its adherents number probably a million, its
 churches have risen by hundreds, and its congregations
9 meet in Europe and in the antipodes, as from the Atlantic
 to the Pacific on this continent.

 One does not need to accept the doctrines of Mrs.
12 Eddy to recognize the fact that this wonderful woman
 is a world power. This is conclusive; it is conspicu-
 ously manifest. And here in Boston the zeal and
15 enthusiasm of the followers of this creed have been
 manifested in the building of a church structure which
 will hold place among the architectural beauties of the
18 country.



 [Boston Herald]


 Another glory for Boston, another "landmark" set
21 in the illustrious list for future generations to reverence
 and admire! The Science church has become the great
 centre of attraction, not merely for its thousands of wor-
24 shippers, but for a multitude of strangers to whom this
 historic city is the Mecca of their love and duty. Last
 Sunday it was entirely credible that the spirit of faith
27 and brotherhood rested on this structure, which is abso-
 lutely unique in its symmetrical and appropriate design.
 Aside from every other consideration, this church, with
30 its noble dome of pure gray tint, forming one of the
 few perfect sky-lines in an American city, is doubly


Page 86


1 welcomed. Henceforth the greeting of admiring eyes,
 too often unaccustomed to fine architectural effects, will
3 be constant and sincere.

 As Boston has ever loved its golden State House
 dome, so will it now find pleasure in this new symbol,
6 brooding elevation, guarding as it were, embracing as it
 may be, the hosts of a new religion.



 [Boston Globe]


9 Thousands of Christian Scientists have been pouring
 into Boston in the past few days to be present at the
 dedication yesterday of their new two-million-dollar
12 church, and to take part in the subsequent ceremonies and
 exercises. Not only was every cent of the estimated cost
 contributed before the actual work was completed, but
15 the treasurer of the building fund of the great temple
 appealed to his brethren to give no more money, since he
 had enough. This must be regarded as an extraordinary
18 achievement, and one which indicates plainly enough the
 generosity of the devotion that the Christian Scientists
 maintain towards their church.



21       [Boston Post]


 The dedication of the edifice of the Christian Scientists
 on the Back Bay has proved one of the most interest-
24 ing and in some of its aspects the most notable of such
 occasions.

 The attendance at the ceremonies yesterday was re-
27 markable, probably unprecedented, as regards numbers.
 Not even the great size of the auditorium could accom-
 modate the throng of participants. At each of the iden-
30 tical services, repeated at intervals from early morning


Page 87


1 until the evening, the attendance was greater than the
 building could contain. And the transportation facilities
3 of the town have been strained to their utmost to care
 for the multitudes going and coming.

 The temporary increase of the population of Boston has
6 been apparent to the most casual observer. And so, we
 think, must be the characteristics of this crowd of visitors.
 It is a pleasant, congenial, quietly happy, well-to-do,
9 intellectual, and cheerfully contented multitude that has
 invaded the town. There are among them visitors of
 title and distinction, but one does not notice these unless
12 they are pointed out. The impression created is that of
 a great gathering of people we like to know and like to
 have here.

15 We congratulate these comfortable acquaintances upon
 the fact that they have their costly church fully paid for,
 and we feel that Boston is to be congratulated upon the
18 acquisition of an edifice so handsome architecturally.



 [Boston Herald]


 I do not think I have ever seen more cheerful looking
21 groups of people than I have met in Boston during the
 past few days. Their happy faces would make sunshine
 on the grayest day. If Christian Science gives such
24 serene, beautiful expressions, it would not be a bad thing
 if all the world turned to the new religion. There is one
 thing about it: it is certainly imbued with the spirit of
27 unselfishness and helpfulness, and, whatever one's special
 creed may be, there is nothing antagonistic to it in this
 doctrine of health, happiness, and in the cheerful doing
30 of good.


Page 88



 GENERAL EDITORIAL OPINION



 [Montreal (Can.) Gazette]


3 Twenty thousand Christian Scientists have assembled
 at Boston to attend the opening of their great new
 temple. Christian Science, as now before this conti-
6 nent, is the development of a short lifetime. It shows
 strength in all parts, and among classes above the aver-
 age in intelligence.



9      [Concord (N. H.) Monitor]


 The dedication, Sunday, in Boston, of the new Mother
 Church of the Christian Science faith was a ceremonial of
12 far more than usual ecclesiastic significance. The edifice
 itself is so rich in the architectural symbolisms of aspira-
 tion and faith, its proportions are so large, and its accom-
15 modations are so wide, that its dedication abounds in
 remarkable external manifestations which must arrest
 public attention. But externals constitute the smallest
18 feature of the Christian Science faith, and this beau-
 tiful temple, striking as are its beauties, is only a slight
 and material development in evidence of that beauty and
21 serenity of faith, life, and love which finds its temple in
 the heart of all that increasing host who have found the
 truths of Christian Science to be a marvellous revelation
24 given to this generation by a noble and devoted woman,
 to whom they rightfully turn with respect and affection.



 [Brooklyn (N. Y.) Eagle]


27 The stoutest enemies of Christian Science will confess
 at least an aesthetic debt to that great and growing cult,
 which is implied in the building of a great church in Bos-


Page 89


1 ton. This church is one of the largest and seemliest in
 America, and in its size, if not in its aspect, it may be
3 held to symbolize that faith which is so much a faith
 that all facts inhospitable to it are deemed by its pro-
 fessors not to exist at all. The building is of light stone,
6 with a dome over two hundred and twenty feet high, a
 chime of bells, and one of the largest organs in the world.
 The architect has joined lightness and grace to solidity,
9 and the edifice needs only an open space about it, such
 as one finds in the English cathedrals, to achieve its
 extreme of beauty. A sect that leaves such a monument
12 has not lived in vain.

 A remarkable thing in this building is that, although
 it cost two million dollars, it is not blanketed with debts
15 and mortgages. Everything, even to the flagstones in
 front of it, is paid for, and subscriptions are not solic-
 ited. Here is an occasion for joy that marks it as dif-
18 ferent from almost all other of the Christian churches,
 where petitions for money are almost as constant as
 petitions for divine mercy.



21    [Denver (Col.) News]


 The dedication of the new Mother Church of the
 Christian Scientists in Boston is not a matter of interest
24 to that city alone, but to the nation; not to the nation
 alone, but to the world; not to this time alone, but to
 history.

27 The growth of this form of religious faith has been one of
 the marvels of the last quarter century. It is, in some
 respects, the greatest religious phenomenon of all history.
30 That a woman should found a religious movement of
 international sway; that its followers should number


Page 90


1 many thousands during her lifetime; that hundreds of
 great buildings should be filled at every meeting Sun-
3 days or on week-days with devout worshippers, wooed
 by no eloquence of orator or magnetic ritual, β€” all these
 things are new, utterly new, in the history of religious
6 expression.

 Unaccountable? Hardly so. Whatever else it is, this
 faith is real and is given very real tests. Thousands upon
9 thousands believe that it has cured them of diseases many
 and diverse. All the passionate love for life with which
 nature endows the children of men, grips hold of their
12 faith and insures fidelity in pain or death for self or dear
 ones. But, while health-seeking is the door to this gospel
 for many, it is not the only source of appeal. A faith
15 which teaches that hate is atheism, that discord is poison-
 ous, that gloom is sin, has a mission that can be readily
 grasped by sick or well.

18 The world is enormously richer for this reincarnation of
 the old, old gospel of "on earth peace, good will toward
 men."



21     [Terre Haute (Ind.) Star]


 The dedication of The Mother Church of Christian
 Science at Boston, with its paid-up cost of two million
24 dollars and its tremendous outpouring of eager commu-
 nicants from all over the civilized world, is an event of
 impressiveness and momentous significance. The historic
27 place of Mrs. Eddy as the Founder of a great denomination
 can no longer be questioned, and the sources of her power
 and following can be readily apprehended. Prominent
30 among these is the denomination's peculiar department of
 healing, the efficacy of which to some extent is established


Page 91


1 beyond cavil. The immense membership of the body is
 proof positive that it supplies these persons, most of
3 whom were already nominal Christians, something they
 did not find in other communions. It affords refutation
 of the notion that spiritual and mystic mediation has
6 been drowned out in this so-called commercial age. The
 Christian Scientists set a good example to other denomi-
 nations in requiring their church edifices to be fully paid
9 for before they are dedicated. It is to be said for Chris-
 tian Science that no person's spiritual aspirations were
 ever deadened or his moral standards debased through
12 its agency. Its communicants are cheerful and shed
 sunshine about them — no insignificant element in true
 Christianity.



15    [Lafayette (Ind.) Journal]


 The dedication of a Christian Science temple at Boston
 serves to call attention to one of the most remarkable
18 religious movements that this country or any other country
 has ever known. It has not been very many years since
 Christian Science was announced as a discovery of Mary
21 Baker Eddy of Concord, N. H. The few thousand persons
 who followed Mrs. Eddy during the first years of her
 preaching were the objects of much ridicule, but despite
24 the obstacles put in the way the church has continued to
 grow. Its growth in numbers is remarkable, but even
 stranger is its increase in wealth. The temple which has
27 just been dedicated at Boston cost two million dollars,
 and is one of the finest places of worship in the world,
 at least it is the largest in New England. This Mother
30 Church is absolutely free from debt. After but a few
 years, Christian Science has congregations in every im-


Page 92


1 portant town and city of the United States. Of course
 the new idea will never have determined its real position
3 in the doctrines of the world until it has stood the test of
 time. But its beginning has been impressive, and that
 large numbers of intelligent men and women should be
6 converted to it makes it appear that Science cannot
 be brushed aside by ridicule alone.



 [Springfield (Mass.) Republican]


9 The prodigious convention of Christian Scientists in
 Boston is a portent worthy of perhaps even more interest
 than it has evoked in that city, where a new temple to
12 Isis and Osiris would be hardly more than a day's wonder.
 With the swift growth of the new faith the public has in
 a general way been familiar; it is but a few years ago that
15 the astonishing revelation was made that since 1890 its
 following had increased from an insignificant number to
 hundreds of thousands, a rate at which every other sect in
18 the country would soon be left behind. But mere statistics
 give a feeble impression in comparison with so huge and
 concrete a demonstration as the dedication of this vast
21 temple. The statistics have been ridiculed by the hostile
 as mere guesswork, but one cannot sneer away the two-
 million-dollar stone edifice or the thirty thousand wor-
24 shippers who entered its portals Sunday.



 [Rochester (N. Y.) Post Express]


 There are two things to be said in favor of Christian
27 Science. Its growth has been wonderfully rapid, and due
 apparently to nothing save the desire in the human heart
 for some such comfort as it promises. Christian Scientists,


Page 93


1 as a class, so far as the writer knows them, are happy,
 gentle, and virtuous. They are multiplying without
3 efforts at proselytizing; they are in no wise at war with
 society; and they have little of the spirit of bigotry. The
 dedication of their great church in Boston is a material
6 evidence of their prosperity; and it may be said that if
 their opinions seem visionary, there is nothing in them
 to attract any class save the moderately well-to-do, the
9 intelligent, and the well-behaved. It has been said
 cynically that a religion prospers according to the pledges
 which it holds out to its votaries; and though Christian
12 Science promises nothing in the way of gratifying the
 passions or attaining dominion over others, yet it has
 rare lures for weary hearts, β€” physical health and spiritual
15 peace.



 [Topeka (Kan.) Daily Capital]


 Those of us who do not accept the doctrine of Christian
18 Science are possibly too prone to approach it in a spirit
 of levity, too often disposed to touch upon it with the
 tongue of facetiousness. Too often we see only its ridic-
21 ulous phases, attaching meanwhile no importance to
 the saneness and common sense which underlie many of
 the practices in its name. And many of us have missed
24 entirely its tremendous growth and the part it has come
 to play in the economy of our social and religious life.

 To those of us who have overlooked these essentials of
27 its hold upon the public, certain statistics brought to light
 by the great meeting of the church now being held in
 Boston will come in the nature of a revelation. In 1890
 the faith had but an insignificant following. To-day its
30    adherents number hundreds of thousands, and if the


Page 94


1 growth continues in like proportion through another
 decade every other sect will be left behind in the race for
3 numerical supremacy. The figures given out by the
 church itself have been ridiculed by the hostile as mere
 guesswork, but some of the evidence appears in the con-
6 crete and cannot be combated. "One cannot sneer away
 the two-million-dollar stone edifice or the thirty thousand
 worshippers who entered its portals Sunday," says the
9 Springfield Republican. Neither can we overlook the
 steady, consistent growth of the sect in every commu-
 nity in which it has found a foothold. In the adherence
12 of its converts to the faith, and in the absence of dissent
 among them in the interpretation of its tenets, there is
 also much to convince the skeptic.



15    [Albany (N.Y.) Knickerbocker]


 The remarkable growth and the apparent permanency
 of Christian Science were noted in the recent dedication in
18 Boston of the magnificent new temple of the cult. When
 the doors were opened to the public, the structure was free
 from debt. While the dedicatory services were being
21 held at different hours of the day, forty thousand Chris-
 tian Scientists from every State in the Union and from
 many foreign countries were in attendance.

24 Although Mrs. Eddy, the Founder of Christian Science,
 was not in attendance, she sent greetings in which she
 declared that the "crowning ultimate" of the church
27 "rises to a mental monument, a superstructure high above
 the work of men's hands, even the outcome of their
 hearts, giving to the material a spiritual significance β€”
30 the speed, beauty, and achievements of goodness."

 But a few years ago, men there were who predicted that


Page 95


1 Christian Science would soon be included among the cults
 which flourish for a time like a green bay-tree, and are
3 then forgotten. Those predictions have not been verified.
 The church which has been built upon the tenets first
 presented by Mrs. Eddy is being constantly strengthened
6 by members who represent the intelligence of many
 communities in different parts of the world.



 [Mexican Herald, City of Mexico, Mex.]


9 The dedication of the magnificent Christian Science
 church in Boston has brought that cheerful and pros-
 perous body of believers before the press gallery of com-
12 mentators. They have built a huge church, which has
 cost them about two million dollars, and it has a dome
 which rivals that of the famous old Massachusetts State
15 House. During the great assembly of forty thousand
 Christian Scientists in Boston they were described in the
 newspapers of the Hub as a contented and well-dressed
18 body of people.

 The faith of these people is certainly great. They go
 about telling of miracles performed in this twentieth cen-
21 tury when "advanced" clergymen of other denominations
 are avowing their disbelief in the miraculous.

 The higher critics and the men of science may think
24 they can banish faith in the supernatural, but no religion
 of growth and vitality exists without faith in the things
 unseen.



27    [Sandusky (Ohio) Star-Journal]


 It is doubtful if, since the days of the primitive Chris-
 tians, there has been such a wonderful demonstration of
30 religious faith and enlightened zeal as that exhibited at


Page 96


1 Boston, Sunday, when forty thousand Christian Scientists
 from all parts of the world assembled to participate in
3 the dedication of the extension of The Mother Church
 of that denomination. These people were of the highest
 order of intelligence, many of them prominent figures in
6 the social and business world, and none of them afflicted
 with the slightest trace of fanaticism. The gathering
 can in no sense, save one, be compared with those of
9 Mecca and the Hindu shrines, where fanaticism domi-
 nates everything else. The one point of resemblance is
 that the Christian Scientists are thoroughly in earnest
12 and take joy in attesting their faith in the creed of the
 church of their choice. It is a faith based upon rea-
 son, and reached only through intelligent and unbiased
15 study and comparison with other creeds.

 A remarkable feature, perhaps the most remarkable, of
 the gathering was the generosity of its adherents towards
18 their church. The building they were in Boston to dedi-
 cate cost approximately two million dollars. Members
 were invited to contribute what they could to pay for it.
21 The money was sent in such quantities that before the day
 set for the dedication arrived the fund was full to over-
 flowing and the members were asked to quit giving.



24     [Peoria (Ill.) Journal]


 It is the custom to sneer at Christian Science, but it is
 evident that the cult will soon be beyond the sneering
27 point. The dedication of what is known as The Mother
 Church extension in Boston, the other day, was attended
 by people from all parts of the United States. And they
30 were people of intelligence.

 The fact is that Christian Science just goes a little


Page 97


1 beyond what almost every one is inclined to admit. The
 best physicians now admit the power of mind over matter.
3 They believe that firm faith on the part of a sick per-
 son, for instance, will go far towards making the patient
 well. These same physicians, however, ridicule the idea
6 of a patient getting well without the use of medicine.
 It has yet to be shown that of the sick who abjure
 medicine a larger proportion have died than among
9 those who were medically treated. The Journal has
 kept no books on the subject, and is not a Christian
 Scientist, but believes that if the figures could be given
12 they might show that the Scientists have a little the
 advantage so far as this goes.



 [Nebraska State Journal, Lincoln, Neb.]


15 Zion's Herald, a rather bitter critic of Mrs. Eddy and
 her cult, speaks of "the audacious, stupendous, inex-
 plicable faith of this well-dressed, good-looking, emi-
18 nently respectable, evidently wealthy congregation in
 their teacher and her utterances." The opening of the
 new Mother Church of the Christian Science faith
21 at Boston has opened the eyes of the country anew to
 the growth of the new church and the zeal of its
 membership.



24    [Athol (Mass.) Transcript]


 The Christian Scientists who descended upon Boston
 to the number of forty thousand last week to dedicate the
27 new temple, just built at a cost of two million dollars, have
 mostly departed, but Boston has not yet recovered from
 the effects produced by that stupendous gathering. The
30 incidents witnessed during the week were calculated to


Page 98


1 impress the most determined skeptic. Forty thousand
 people truly make up a mighty host, but these, it is de-
3 clared, are but a twentieth of the Christian Science army
 in this country to-day, and this is the wonderful growth
 of less than a score of years. Christian Science may be
6 anything that its foes try to prove it to be, but that mag-
 nificent church, holding five thousand people, dedicated
 free from debt, and the centre of an enthusiasm and rever-
9 ence of worship such as religious annals hardly parallel
 in modern times, is a tangible reality, and critics who
 seek the light must have done with scoffs and jeers if
12 they would deal with the phenomenon with any effect.



 [Portland (Ore.) Telegram]


 The last issue of the Christian Science Sentinel contains
15 a rather remarkable announcement to the effect that
 friends were requested to send no more money for the
 building of the church which was recently dedicated at
18 Boston. This structure cost about two million dollars,
 and all of the funds required to build it were raised in a
 little less than three years. It was dedicated absolutely
21 free of debt, and no member of the church anywhere,
 in this country or elsewhere, was asked to contribute a
 dollar. Contributions were entirely voluntary. No re-
24 sort was had to any of the latter-day methods of raising
 money. The record is one of which any church might
 well be proud.



27    [Portland (Me.) Advertiser]


 The erection in Boston of the two-million-dollar church
 of the Christian Scientists and its dedication free from
30 debt has been a wonderful achievement, but as our con-


Page 99


1 temporary, the Boston Times, comments, it is but one of
 the marvellous, great, and really good things that this
3 sect is doing. It says: "A faith which is able to raise
 its believers above the suffering of petty ills; a religion
 that makes the merry heart that doeth good like a
6 medicine, not a necessity, but a pleasure and an essen-
 tial; a cult able to promote its faith with so great an
 aggregation of good and beneficial works, is welcomed
9 within our midst and bidden Godspeed."



 [Denver (Col.) Republican]


 Christian Scientists are a remarkably optimistic body
12 of people, and it must be said in their behalf that they
 are enthusiasts whenever their form of religion is con-
 cerned. They have recently built a splendid cathedral in
15 Boston, seating five thousand people, at a cost of two
 million dollars, and when it was dedicated there was not a
 cent of indebtedness left. Thirty thousand of the faith,
18 coming from all parts of the world, attended the dedicatory
 exercises, and the press reports state that the contribution
 baskets when passed around were literally stuffed and
21 jammed with money.

 Less than a generation ago there was not a Christian
 Science church in the land. To-day there are hundreds
24 of such churches. The denomination has grown with a
 rapidity that is startling, and the end is not yet.



 [Bridgeport (Conn.) Standard]


27 Facts and figures are stubborn things, and ignore them
 as we may their existence points out their meaning and
 leaves no choice but the acceptance of them at their
30 face value. The recent dedication of a Christian Science


Page 100


1 temple in Boston has inevitably brought out in connection
 with the event some of the facts and figures belonging to
3 it, which are as remarkable in their aggregate as they are
 unmistakable in their trend. The temple recently dedi-
 cated at Boston cost about two million dollars and is
6 therefore the property of no poverty-stricken sect. On
 the Sunday of the dedication, thirty thousand worshippers
 were present in the building, coming from all, or nearly
9 all, parts of the country, and representing a vast number
 of the followers of the cult.

 It is only twenty-five years, or thereabout, since the
12 Christian Science sect made its appearance as a dis-
 tinctive organization among religious bodies, but its
 members are numbered by thousands to-day, and they
15 are very generally of a class who are reputable, intelli-
 gent, and who think for themselves.

Part II


CHAPTER I β€” TO THE CHRISTIAN WORLD

Page 103

1 IN the midst of the imperfect, perfection is reluctantly
 seen and acknowledged. Because Science is unim-
3 peachable, it summons the severest conflicts of the ages
 and waits on God.

 The faith and works demanded of man in our textbooks,
6 the Bible and "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures," and the proof of the practicality of this faith
 and these works, show conclusively that Christian Science
9 is indeed Science, β€” the Science of Christ, the Science of
 God and man, of the creator and creation. In every age
 and at its every appearing, Science, until understood, has
12 been persecuted and maligned. Infinite perfection is
 unfolded as man attains the stature of man in Christ
 Jesus by means of the Science which Jesus taught and
15 practised. Alluding to this divine method, the Psalmist
 said: "Why do the heathen rage, and the people imagine
 a vain thing?"

18 I have set forth Christian Science and its application
 to the treatment of disease just as I have discovered
 them. I have demonstrated through Mind the effects
21 of Truth on the health, longevity, and morals of men;
 and I have found nothing in ancient or in modern sys-
 tems on which to found my own, except the teachings
24 and demonstrations of our great Master and the lives
 of prophets and apostles. The Bible has been my only


Page 104


1 authority. I have had no other guide in the strait and
 narrow way of Truth.

3 Jewish pagans thought that the learned St. Paul, the
 Mars' Hill orator, the canonized saint, was a "pestilent
 fellow," but to-day all sorts of institutions flourish under
6 the name of this "pestilent fellow." That epithet points
 a moral. Of old the Pharisees said of the great master
 of metaphysics, "He stirreth up the people." Because
9 they could find no fault in him, they vented their hatred
 of Jesus in opprobrious terms. But what would be
 thought to-day of a man that should call St. Paul
12 a "pest," and what will be thought to-morrow of him
 who shall call a Christian Scientist a "pest"? Again,
 what shall be said of him who says that the Saviour
15 of men, the healer of men, the Christ, the Truth, "stir-
 reth up the people"?

 It is of the utmost concern to the world that men
18 suspend judgment and sentence on the pioneers of
 Christianity till they know of what and of whom these
 pioneers speak. A person's ignorance of Christian Sci-
21 ence is a sufficient reason for his silence on the subject,
 but what can atone for the vulgar denunciation of that
 of which a man knows absolutely nothing?

24 On November 21, 1898, in my class on Christian Science
 were many professional men and women of the highest
 talents, scholarship, and character in this or any other
27 country. What was it that brought together this class
 to learn of her who, thirty years ago, was met with the
 anathema spoken of in Scripture: "Blessed are ye, when
30 men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall say all
 manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake"? It
 was the healing of the sick, the saving of sinners, the works


Page 105


1 even more than the words of Christ, Truth, which had
 of a verity stirred the people to search the Scriptures and
3 to find in them man's only medicine for mind and body.
 This Γ†sculapius, defined Christianly and demonstrated
 scientifically, is the divine Principle whose rules demon-
6 strated prove one's faith by his works.

 After my discovery of Christian Science, I healed con-
 sumption in its last stages, a case which the M.D.'s,
9 by verdict of the stethoscope and the schools, declared
 incurable because the lungs were mostly consumed. I
 healed malignant diphtheria and carious bones that could
12 be dented by the finger, saving the limbs when the sur-
 geon's instruments were lying on the table ready for their
 amputation. I have healed at one visit a cancer that had
15 eaten the flesh of the neck and exposed the jugular vein
 so that it stood out like a cord. I have physically restored
 sight to the blind, hearing to the deaf, speech to the dumb,
18 and have made the lame walk.

 About the year 1869, I was wired to attend the patient
 of a distinguished M.D., the late Dr. Davis of Manchester,
21 N. H. The patient was pronounced dying of pneumonia,
 and was breathing at intervals in agony. Her physician,
 who stood by her bedside, declared that she could not live.
24 On seeing her immediately restored by me without mate-
 rial aid, he asked earnestly if I had a work describing
 my system of healing. When answered in the negative,
27 he urged me immediately to write a book which should
 explain to the world my curative system of metaphysics.
 In the ranks of the M.D.'s are noble men and women,
30 and I love them; but they must refrain from persecuting
 and misrepresenting a system of medicine which from
 personal experience I have proved to be more certain


Page 106


1 and curative in functional and organic diseases than any
 material method. I admonish Christian Scientists either
3 to speak charitably of all mankind or to keep silent, for
 love fulfils divine law and without this proof of love
 mental practice were profitless.

6 The list of cases healed by me could be made to include
 hopeless organic diseases of almost every kind. I name
 those mentioned above simply to show the folly of believ-
9 ing that the immutable laws of omnipotent Mind have not
 power over and above matter in every mode and form, and
 the folly of the cognate declaration that Christian Science
12 is limited to imaginary diseases! On the contrary, Chris-
 tian Science has healed cases that I assert it would have
 been impossible for the surgeon or materia medica to cure.
15 Without Mind, man and the universe would collapse;
 the winds would weary, and the world stand still. It is
 already proved that Christian Science rests on the basis of
18 fixed Principle, and overcomes the evidence of diseased
 sensation. Human mentality, expressed in disease, sin,
 and death, in tempest and in flood, the divine Mind calms
21 and limits with a word.

 In what sense is the Christian Scientist a "pest"? Is it
 because he minds his own business more than does the
24 average man, is not a brawler, an alcohol drinker, a
 tobacco user, a profane swearer, an adulterer, a fornicator,
 nor a dishonest politician or business man? Or is it
27 because he is the very antipode of all these? In what
 sense is the Christian Scientist a charlatan? Is it because
 he heals the sick without drugs?

30 Our great Exemplar, the Nazarene Prophet, healed
 through Mind, and commanded his followers to do like-
 wise. The prophets and apostles and the Christians in


Page 107


1 the first century healed the sick as a token of their Chris-
 tianity. Has Christianity improved upon its earlier
3 records, or has it retrograded? Compare the lives of its
 professors with those of its followers at the beginning of
 the Christian era, and you have the correct answer.

6 As a pertinent illustration of the general subject under
 discussion, I will cite a modern phase of medical practice,
 namely, the homoeopathic system, to which the old school
9 has become reconciled. Here I speak from experience.
 In homoeopathy, the one thousandth attenuations and
 the same triturations of medicine have not an iota of the
12 drug left in them, and the lower attenuations have so
 little that a vial full of the pellets can be swallowed without
 harm and without appreciable effect. Yet the homoe-
15 opathist administers half a dozen or less of these same
 globules, and he tells you, and you believe him, that
 with these pellets he heals the sick. The diminishing of
18 the drug does not disprove the efficiency of the homoeo-
 pathic system. It enhances its efficiency, for it identifies
 this system with mind, not matter, and places it nearer the
21 grooves of omnipotence. O petty scorner of the infinite,
 wouldst thou mock God's miracles or scatter the shade of
 one who "shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty"?
24 If, as Scripture declares, God made all that was made,
 then whatever is entitled to a classification as truth
 or science must be comprised in a knowledge or under-
27 standing of God, for there can be nothing beyond
 illimitable divinity.

 The homoeopathist handles in his practice and heals the
30 most violent stages of organic and inflammatory diseases,
 stops decomposition, removes enteritis, gastritis, hyper-
 aemia, pneumonia, diphtheria, and ossification — the effects


Page 108


1 of calcareous salts formed by carbonate and sulphate of
 lime; and the homoeopathic physician succeeds as well in
3 healing his cases without drugs as does the allopath who
 depends upon drugs. Then is mind or matter the intelli-
 gent cause in pathology? If matter, I challenge matter
6 to act apart from mind; and if mind, I have proved beyond
 cavil that the action of the divine Mind is salutary and
 potent in proportion as it is seen to act apart from matter.
9 Hence our Master's saying, "The flesh profiteth nothing."
 The difference between metaphysics in homoeopathy and
 metaphysics in Christian Science consists in this forcible
12 fact: the former enlists faith in the pharmacy of the
 human mind, and the latter couples faith with spiritual
 understanding and is based on the law of divine Mind.
15 Christian Science recognizes that this Mind is the only
 lawgiver, omnipotent, infinite, All. Hence the divine
 Mind is the sovereign appeal, and there is nothing in
18 the divine Mind to attenuate. The more of this Mind
 the better for both physician and patient.

 Ignorance, slang, and malice touch not the hem of the
21 garment of Christian Scientists, for if they did once touch
 it, they would be destroyed. To be stoned for that which
 our Master designated as his best work, saying, "For
24 which of those works do ye stone me," is to make known
 the best work of a Christian Scientist.

 Finally, beloved brethren in Christ, the words of the
27 New York press β€” "Mrs. Eddy not shaken" β€” are valid.
 I remain steadfast in St. Paul's faith, and will close with
 his own words: "Christ is the head of the church: and he
30 is the saviour of the body."


CHAPTER II β€” THE CHRISTIAN SCIENCE TEXTBOOK


Page 109


1 MATTER is but the subjective state of mortal mind.
 Matter has no more substance and reality in our
3 day-dreams than it has in our night-dreams. All the way
 mortals are experiencing the Adam-dream of mind in
 matter, the dream which is mortal and God-condemned
6 and which is not the spiritual fact of being. When this
 scientific classification is understood, we shall have one
 Mind, one God, and we shall obey the commandment,
9 "Love thy neighbor as thyself."

 If nineteen hundred years ago Christ taught his fol-
 lowers to heal the sick, he is to-day teaching them the
12 same heavenly lesson. Christ is "the same yesterday,
 and to-day, and forever." "God is Love," the ever-
 operative divine Principle (or Person, if you please) whose
15 person is not corporeal, not finite. This infinite Person
 we know not of by the hearing of the ear, yet we may
 sometimes say with Job, "But now mine eye [spiritual
18 sense] seeth Thee."

 God is one because God is All. Therefore there can
 be but one God, one Christ. We are individually but
21 specks in His universe, the reflex images of this divine
 Life, Truth, and Love, in whom "we live, and move,
 and have our being." Divine metaphysics is not to
24 be scoffed at; it is Truth with us, God "manifest in the
 flesh," not alone by miracle and parable, but by proof;


Page 110


1 it is the divine nature of God, which belongs not to a
 dispensation now ended, but is ever present, casting out
3 evils, healing the sick, and raising the dead — resurrect-
 ing individuals buried above-ground in material sense.

 At the present time this Bethlehem star looks down
6 upon the long night of materialism, β€” material religion,
 material medicine, a material world; and it shines as of
 yore, though it "shineth in darkness; and the dark-
9 ness comprehended it not." But the day will dawn and
 the daystar will appear, lighting the gloom, guiding the
 steps of progress from molecule and mortals outward and
12 upward in the scale of being.

 Hidden electrical forces annihilating time and space,
 wireless telegraphy, navigation of the air; in fact, all the
15 et cetera of mortal mind pressing to the front, remind me
 of my early dreams of flying in airy space, buoyant with
 liberty and the luxury of thought let loose, rising higher
18 and forever higher in the boundless blue. And what of
 reality, if waking to bodily sensation is real and if bodily
 sensation makes us captives? The night thought, me-
21 thinks, should unfold in part the facts of day, and open
 the prison doors and solve the blind problem of matter.
 The night thought should show us that even mortals
24 can mount higher in the altitude of being. Mounting
 higher, mortals will cease to be mortal. Christ will have
 "led captivity captive," and immortality will have been
27 brought to light.

 Robert Ingersoll's attempt to convict the Scriptures of
 inconsistency made his life an abject failure. Happily,
30 the misquoting of "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures," or quoting sentences or paragraphs torn from
 their necessary contexts, may serve to call attention to


Page 111


1 that book, and thus reveal truths which otherwise the
 reader would not have sought. Surely "the wrath of man
3 shall praise Thee."

 The nature and truth of Christian Science cannot
 be destroyed by false psychics, crude theories or modes
6 of metaphysics. Our master Metaphysician, the Galilean
 Prophet, had much the same class of minds to deal with
 as we have in our time. They disputed his teachings on
9 practically the same grounds as are now assumed by many
 doctors and lawyers, but he swept away their illogical
 syllogisms as chaff is separated from the wheat. The
12 genuine Christian Scientist will tell you that he has found
 the physical and spiritual status of a perfect life through
 his textbook.

15 The textbook of Christian Science maintains primitive
 Christianity, shows how to demonstrate it, and through-
 out is logical in premise and in conclusion. Can Scien-
18 tists adhere to it, establish their practice of healing on
 its basis, become successful healers and models of good
 morals, and yet the book itself be absurd and unscientific ?
21 Is not the tree known by its fruit? Did Jesus mistake
 his mission and unwittingly misguide his followers? Were
 the apostles absurd and unscientific in adhering to his
24 premise and proving that his conclusion was logical
 and divine?

 "The scientific statement of being" (Science and Health,
27 p. 468) may irritate a certain class of professionals
 who fail to understand it, and they may pronounce it
 absurd, ambiguous, unscientific. But that Christian
30 Science is valid, simple, real, and self-evident, thousands
 upon thousands attest with their individual demonstra-
 tions. They have themselves been healed and have


Page 112


1 healed others by means of the Principle of Christian
 Science. Science has always been first met with denun-
3 ciations. A fiction or a false philosophy flourishes for a
 time where Science gains no hearing. The followers of the
 Master in the early Christian centuries did just what he
6 enjoined and what Christian Science makes practical to-
 day to those who abide in its teachings and build on its
 chief corner-stone. Our religious denominations interpret
9 the Scriptures to fit a doctrine, but the doctrines taught
 by divine Science are founded squarely and only on the
 Scriptures.

12 "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures" is not
 inconsistent in a single instance with its logical premise
 and conclusion, and ninety-nine out of every hundred
15 of its readers — honest, intelligent, and scholarly — will
 tell you this. The earnest student of this book, under-
 standing it, demonstrates in some degree the truth of its
18 statements, and knows that it contains a Science which
 is demonstrable when understood, and which is fully
 understood when demonstrated. That Christian Scien-
21 tists, because of their uniformly pure morals and noble
 lives, are better representatives of Christian Science
 than the textbook itself, is not in accordance with the
24 Scriptures. The tree is known by its fruit. The student
 of this book will tell you that his higher life is the result
 of his conscientious study of Science and Health in con-
27 nection with the Bible.

 A book that through the good it does has won its
 way into the palaces of emperors and kings, into the
30 home of the President of the United States, into the chief
 cities and the best families in our own and in foreign
 lands, a book which lies beside the Bible in hundreds


Page 113


1 of pulpits and in thousands of homes, which heals the
 sick and reclaims sinners in court and in cottage, is
3 not less the evangel of Christian Science than is he
 who practises the teachings of this book or he who
 studies it and thereby is healed of disease. Can such a
6 book be ambiguous, self-contradictory, or unprofitable
 to mankind?

 St. Paul was a follower but not an immediate disciple
9 of our Lord, and Paul declares the truth of the complete
 system of Christian Science in these brief sentences:
 "There is therefore now no condemnation to them which
12 are in Christ Jesus, who walk not after the flesh, but after
 the Spirit. For the law of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus
 hath made me free from the law of sin and death." Was
15 it profane for St. Paul to aspire to this knowledge of Christ
 and its demonstration, healing sin and sickness, because
 he was not a disciple of the personal Jesus? Nay, verily.
18 Neither is it presumptuous or unscriptural or vain for
 another, a suckling in the arms of divine Love, to perfect
 His praise.

21 A child will demonstrate Christian Science and have
 a clear perception of it. Then, is Christian Science a
 cold, dull abstraction, or is that unscientific which
24 all around us is demonstrated on a fixed Principle and
 a given rule, β€” when, in proportion as this Principle
 and rule are understood, men are found casting out
27 the evils of mortal thought, healing the sick, and uplift-
 ing human consciousness to a more spiritual life and
 love? The signs of the times emphasize the answer
30 to this in the rapid and steady advancement of this Sci-
 ence among the scholarly and titled, the deep thinkers,
 the truly great men and women of this age. In the


Page 114


1 words of the Master, "Can ye not discern the signs of
 the times?"

3 Christian Science teaches: Owe no man; be temperate;
 abstain from alcohol and tobacco; be honest, just, and
 pure; cast out evil and heal the sick; in short, Do unto
6 others as ye would have others do to you.

 Has one Christian Scientist yet reached the maxi-
 mum of these teachings? And if not, why point the
9 people to the lives of Christian Scientists and decry the
 book which has moulded their lives? Simply because
 the treasures of this textbook are not yet uncovered
12 to the gaze of many men, the beauty of holiness is not
 yet won.

 My first writings on Christian Science began with notes
15 on the Scriptures. I consulted no other authors and read
 no other book but the Bible for about three years. What
 I wrote had a strange coincidence or relationship with the
18 light of revelation and solar light. I could not write these
 notes after sunset. All thoughts in the line of Scriptural
 interpretation would leave me until the rising of the sun.
21 Then the influx of divine interpretation would pour in
 upon my spiritual sense as gloriously as the sunlight on the
 material senses. It was not myself, but the divine power
24 of Truth and Love, infinitely above me, which dictated
 "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures." I
 have been learning the higher meaning of this book since
27 writing it.

 Is it too much to say that this book is leavening
 the whole lump of human thought? You can trace its
30 teachings in each step of mental and spiritual progress,
 from pulpit and press, in religion and ethics, and find
 these progressive steps either written or indicated in the


Page 115


1 book. It has mounted thought on the swift and mighty
 chariot of divine Love, which to-day is circling the
3 whole world.

 I should blush to write of "Science and Health with
 Key to the Scriptures" as I have, were it of human origin,
6 and were I, apart from God, its author. But, as I was
 only a scribe echoing the harmonies of heaven in divine
 metaphysics, I cannot be super-modest in my estimate of
9 the Christian Science textbook.


CHAPTER III β€” PERSONALITY


Page 116



 PERSONAL CONTAGION


 AT a time of contagious disease, Christian Scientists en-
3 deavor to rise in consciousness to the true sense of
 the omnipotence of Life, Truth, and Love, and this great
 fact in Christian Science realized will stop a contagion.
6 In time of religious or scientific prosperity, certain indi-
 viduals are inclined to cling to the personality of its
 leader. This state of mind is sickly; it is a contagion
9 β€” a mental malady, which must be met and overcome.
 Why? Because it would dethrone the First Command-
 ment, Thou shalt have one God.

12 If God is one and God is Person, then Person is infinite;
 and there is no personal worship, for God is divine Prin-
 ciple, Love. Hence the sin, the danger and darkness of
15 personal contagion.

 Forgetting divine Principle brings on this contagion.
 Its symptoms are based upon personal sight or sense.
18 Declaring the truth regarding an individual or leader,
 rendering praise to whom praise is due, is not a symp-
 tom of this contagious malady, but persistent pursuit
21 of his or her person is.

 Every loss in grace and growth spiritual, since time
 began, has come from injustice and personal contagion.
24 Had the ages helped their leaders to, and let them alone


 Copyright, 1909, by Mary Baker Eddy. Renewed, 1937.


Page 117


1 in, God's glory, the world would not have lost the Science
 of Christianity.

3 "What went ye out for to see?" A person, or a Prin-
 ciple? Whichever it be, determines the right or the
 wrong of this following. A personal motive gratified by
6 sense will leave one "a reed shaken with the wind,"
 whereas helping a leader in God's direction, and giving
 this leader time and retirement to pursue the infinite
9 ascent, β€” the comprehending of the divine order and con-
 sciousness in Science, β€” will break one's own dream of
 personal sense, heal disease, and make one a Christian
12 Scientist.

 Is not the old question still rampant? "When saw we
 thee a stranger, and took thee in? or naked, and clothed
15 thee? Or when saw we thee sick, or in prison, and came
 unto thee?" But when may we see you, to get some good
 out of your personality?

18 "In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was
 with God, and the Word was God" (St. John). This
 great truth of God's impersonality and individuality and
21 of man in His image and likeness, individual, but not
 personal, is the foundation of Christian Science. There
 was never a religion or philosophy lost to the centuries
24 except by sinking its divine Principle in personality.
 May all Christian Scientists ponder this fact, and give
 their talents and loving hearts free scope only in the
27 right direction!

 I left Boston in the height of prosperity to retreat from
 the world, and to seek the one divine Person, whereby
30 and wherein to show others the footsteps from sense to
 Soul. To give me this opportunity is all that I ask of
 mankind.


Page 118


1 My soul thanks the loyal, royal natures of the beloved
 members of my church who cheerfully obey God and
3 steadily go on promoting the true Principle of Christian
 Science. Only the disobedient spread personal contagion,
 and any imaginary benefit they receive is the effect of
6 self-mesmerism, wherein the remedy is worse than the
 disease.



 LETTER TO A CLERGYMAN


9 My Dear Sir: β€” I beg to thank you for your most
 excellent letter. It is an outpouring of goodness and
 greatness with which you honor me.

12 In a call upon my person, you would not see me, for
 spiritual sense demands and commands us; hence I seek
 to be "absent from the body," and such circumstances
15 embarrass the higher criticism.

 The Scripture reads: "Blessed are they that have not
 seen, and yet have believed." A saving faith comes
18 not of a person, but of Truth's presence and power.
 Soul, not sense, receives and gives it. One's voluntary
 withdrawal from society, from furnishing the demands
21 upon the finite to supply the blessings of the infinite, β€”
 something impossible in the Science of God and credited
 only by human belief, by a material and not by the
24 spiritual sense of man, β€” should come from conscience.

 The doctrine of Buddha, which rests on a heathen basis
 for its Nirvana, represents not the divinity of Christian
27 Science, in which Truth, or Christ, finds its paradise in
 Spirit, in the consciousness of heaven within us — health,
 harmony, holiness, entirely apart from limitations, which
30 would dwarf individuality in personality and couple evil


Page 119


1 with good. It is convenient for history to record limi-
 tations and to regard evil as real, but it is impossible
3 in Science to believe this, or on such a basis to demon-
 strate the divine Principle of that which is real, harmo-
 nious, and eternal — that which is based on one infinite
6 God, and man, His idea, image, and likeness.

 In Science, we learn that man is not absorbed in the
 divine nature, but is absolved by it. Man is free from
9 the flesh and is individual in consciousness — in Mind,
 not in matter. Think not that Christian Science tends
 towards Buddhism or any other "ism." Per contra,
12 Christian Science destroys such tendency. Mary of old
 wept because she stooped down and looked into the sepul-
 chre — looked for the person, instead of the Principle that
15 reveals Christ. The Mary of to-day looks up for Christ,
 away from the supposedly crucified to the ascended
 Christ, to the Truth that "healeth all thy diseases" and
18 gives dominion over all the earth. The doubting disciple
 could not identify Christ spiritually, but he could mate-
 rially. He turned to the person, to the prints of the nails,
21 to prove Christ, whereas the discharged evidence of mate-
 rial sense gave the real proof of his Saviour, the veritable
 Christ, Truth, which destroys the false sense with the
24 evidence of Soul, immortality, eternal Life without begin-
 ning or end of days.

 Should I give myself the pleasant pastime of seeing your
27 personal self, or give you the opportunity of seeing mine,
 you would not see me thus, for I am not there. I
 have risen to look and wait and watch and pray for the
30 spirit of Truth that leadeth away from person — from
 body to Soul, even to the true image and likeness of
 God. St. John found Christ, Truth, in the Word which


Page 120


1 is God. We look for the sainted Revelator in his writ-
 ings, and there we find him. Those who look for me in
3 person, or elsewhere than in my writings, lose me in-
 stead of find me. I hope and trust that you and I may
 meet in truth and know each other there, and know
6 as we are known of God.

 Accept my gratitude for the chance you give me to
 answer your excellent letter. Forgive, if it needs forgive-
9 ness, my honest position. Bear with me the burden of
 discovery and share with me the bliss of seeing the risen
 Christ, God's spiritual idea that takes away all sin, disease,
12 and death, and gives to soul its native freedom.

CHAPTER IV β€” MESSAGES TO THE MOTHER CHURCH

Page 121



 COMMUNION, JANUARY 2, 1898


 MY BELOVED BRETHREN: β€” I have suggested a
3 change in the time for holding our semi-annual
 church meetings, in order to separate these sessions
 from the excitement and commotion of the season's
6 holidays.

 In metaphysics we learn that the strength of peace
 and of suffering is sublime, a true, tried mental convic-
9 tion that is neither tremulous nor relapsing. This
 strength is like the ocean, able to carry navies, yet
 yielding to the touch of a finger. This peace is spiritual;
12 never selfish, stony, nor stormy, but generous, reliable,
 helpful, and always at hand.

 Peace, like plain dealing, is somewhat out of fashion.
15 Yet peace is desirable, and plain dealing is a jewel as beau-
 tiful as the gems that adorn the Christmas ring presented
 to me by my students in 1897. Few blemishes can be
18 found in a true character, for it is always a diamond of the
 first water; but external gentility and good humor may
 be used to disguise internal vulgarity and villainy. No
21 deformity exists in honesty, and no vulgarity in kindness.
 Christian Science, however, adds to these graces, and
 reflects the divine likeness.

24 Self-denial is practical, and is not only polite to all
 but is pleasant to those who practise it. If one would


Page 122


1 follow the advice that one gratuitously bestows on
 others, this would create for one's self and for the world
3 a destiny more grand than can issue from the brain of
 a dreamer.

 That glory only is imperishable which is fixed in one's
6 own moral make-up.

 Sin is like a dock root. To cut off the top of a plant
 does no good; the roots must be eradicated or the plant
9 will continue to grow. Now I am done with homilies
 and, you may add, with tedious prosaics.

 On the fifth of July last, my church tempted me ten-
12 derly to be proud! The deportment of its dear members
 was such as to command respect everywhere. It called
 forth flattering comment and created surprise in our good
15 city of Concord.

 Beloved brethren, another Christmas has come and gone.
 Has it enabled us to know more of the healing Christ that
18 saves from sickness and sin? Are we still searching dili-
 gently to find where the young child lies, and are we sat-
 isfied to know that our sense of Truth is not demoralized,
21 finitized, cribbed, or cradled, but has risen to grasp the
 spiritual idea unenvironed by materiality? Can we say
 with the angels to-day: "He is risen; he is not here:
24 behold the place where they laid him"? Yes, the real
 Christian Scientist can say his Christ is risen and is not
 the material Christ of creeds, but is Truth, even as Jesus
27 declared; and the sense of Truth of the real Christian
 Scientist is spiritualized to behold this Christ, Truth,
 again healing the sick and saving sinners. The mission
30 of our Master was to all mankind, and included the very
 hearts that rejected it — that refused to see the power
 of Truth in healing.


Page 123


1 Our unity and progress are proverbial, and this church's
 gifts to me are beyond comparison — they have become
3 a wonder! To me, however, love is the greater marvel,
 so I must continue to prize love even more than the gifts
 which would express it. The great guerdon of divine
6 Love, which moves the hearts of men to goodness and
 greatness, will reward these givers, and this encourages
 me to continue to urge the perfect model for your accept-
9 ance as the ultimate of Christian Science.

 To-day in Concord, N. H., we have a modest hall in one
 of the finest localities in the city, β€” a reading-room and
12 nine other rooms in the same building. "Tell it not in
 Gath"! I had the property bought by the courtesy of
 another person to be rid of the care and responsibility of
15 purchasing it, and furnished him the money to pay for it.
 The original cost of the estate was fourteen thousand
 dollars. With the repairs and other necessary expenses
18 the amount is now about twenty thousand dollars. Ere
 long I will see you in this hall, Deo volente; but my out-
 door accommodations at Pleasant View are bigger than
21 the indoor. My little hall, which holds a trifle over two
 hundred people, is less sufficient to receive a church of ten
 thousand members than were the "five loaves and two
24 fishes" to feed the multitude; but the true Christian
 Scientist is not frightened at miracles, and ofttimes small
 beginnings have large endings.

27 Seeing that we have to attain to the ministry of right-
 eousness in all things, we must not overlook small things
 in goodness or in badness, for "trifles make perfection,"
30 and "the little foxes . . . spoil the vines."

 As a peculiar people whose God is All-in-all, let us say
 with St. Paul: "We faint not; but have renounced the


Page 124


1 hidden things of dishonesty, not walking in craftiness,
 nor handling the word of God deceitfully; but by mani-
3 festation of the truth commending ourselves to every
 man's conscience."



 COMMUNION, JUNE 4, 1899


6 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Looking on this annual assem-
 blage of human consciousness, β€” health, harmony, growth,
 grandeur, and achievement, garlanded with glad faces,
9 willing hands, and warm hearts, β€” who would say to-day,
 "What a fond fool is hope"? The fruition of friendship,
 the world's arms outstretched to us, heart meeting heart
12 across continents and oceans, bloodless sieges and tear-
 less triumphs, the "well done" already yours, and the
 undone waiting only your swift hands, β€” these are
15 enough to make this hour glad. What more abounds
 and abides in the hearts of these hearers and speakers,
 pen may not tell.

18 Nature reflects man and art pencils him, but it remains
 for Science to reveal man to man; and between these lines
 of thought is written in luminous letters, O man, what
21 art thou? Where art thou? Whence and whither? And
 what shall the answer be? Expressive silence, or with
 finger pointing upward, β€” Thither! Then produce thy
24 records, time-table, log, traveller's companion, et cetera,
 and prove fairly the facts relating to the thitherward, β€”
 the rate of speed, the means of travel, and the number
27 en route. Now what have you learned? The mystery
 of godliness β€” God made "manifest in the flesh," seen
 of men, and spiritually understood; and the mystery of
30 iniquity — how to separate the tares from the wheat,
 that they consume in their own fires and no longer


Page 125


1 kindle altars for human sacrifice. Have you learned to
 conquer sin, false affections, motives, and aims, β€” to be
3 not only sayers but doers of the law?

 Brethren, our annual meeting is a grave guardian. It
 requires you to report progress, to refresh memory, to
6 rejuvenate the branches and to vivify the buds, to bend
 upward the tendrils and to incline the vine towards the
 parent trunk. You come from feeding your flocks, big
9 with promise; and you come with the sling of Israel's
 chosen one to meet the Goliaths.

 I have only to dip my pen in my heart to say, All honor
12 to the members of our Board of Lectureship connected
 with The Mother Church. Loyal to the divine Principle
 they so ably vindicate, they earn their laurels. History
15 will record their words, and their works will follow
 them. When reading their lectures, I have felt the touch
 of the spirit of the Mars' Hill orator, which always
18 thrills the soul.

 The members of the Board of Education, under the
 auspices of the Massachusetts Metaphysical College, have
21 acquitted themselves nobly. The students in my last
 class in 1898 are stars in my crown of rejoicing.
 We are deeply grateful that the church militant is
24 looking into the subject of Christian Science, for Zion
 must put on her beautiful garments — her bridal robes.
 The hour is come; the bride (Word) is adorned, and lo,
27 the bridegroom cometh! Are our lamps trimmed and
 burning?

 The doom of the Babylonish woman, referred to in Reve-
30 lation, is being fulfilled. This woman, "drunken with the
 blood of the saints, and with the blood of the martyrs
 of Jesus," "drunk with the wine of her fornication,"


Page 126


1 would enter even the church, β€” the body of Christ, Truth;
 and, retaining the heart of the harlot and the purpose
3 of the destroying angel, would pour wormwood into the
 waters — the disturbed human mind — to drown the
 strong swimmer struggling for the shore, β€” aiming for
6 Truth, β€” and if possible, to poison such as drink of the
 living water. But the recording angel, standing with
 "right foot upon the sea, and his left foot on the earth,"
9 has in his hand a book open (ready to be read), which un-
 covers and kills this mystery of iniquity and interprets the
 mystery of godliness, β€” how the first is finished and the
12 second is no longer a mystery or a miracle, but a marvel,
 casting out evil and healing the sick. And a voice was
 heard, saying, "Come out of her, my people" (hearken
15 not to her lies), "that ye receive not of her plagues. For
 her sins have reached unto heaven, and God hath remem-
 bered her iniquities . . . double unto her double accord-
18 ing to her works: in the cup which she hath filled fill
 to her double . . . for she saith in her heart, I . . . am
 no widow, . . . Therefore shall her plagues come in one
21 day, death, and mourning, and famine; . . . for strong is
 the Lord God who judgeth her." That which the Rev-
 elator saw in spiritual vision will be accomplished. The
24 Babylonish woman is fallen, and who should mourn
 over the widowhood of lust, of her that "is become the
 habitation of devils, and the hold of every foul spirit,
27 and a cage of every unclean . . . bird"?

 One thing is eternally here; it reigns supreme to-day,
 to-morrow, forever. We need it in our homes, at our fire-
30 sides, on our altars, for with it win we the race of the
 centuries. We have it only as we live it. This is that
 needful one thing — divine Science, whereby thought is


Page 127


1 spiritualized, reaching outward and upward to Science in
 Christianity, Science in medicine, in physics, and in
3 metaphysics.

 Happy are the people whose God is All-in-all, who ask
 only to be judged according to their works, who live to
6 love. We thank the Giver of all good for the marvellous
 speed of the chariot-wheels of Truth and for the steadfast,
 calm coherence in the ranks of Christian Science.

9 On comparison, it will be found that Christian Science
 possesses more of Christ's teachings and example than
 all other religions since the first century. Comparing
12 our scientific system of metaphysical therapeutics with
 materia medica, we find that divine metaphysics com-
 pletely overshadows and overwhelms materia medica, even
15 as Aaron's rod swallowed up the rods of the magicians
 of Egypt. I deliberately declare that when I was in prac-
 tice, out of one hundred cases I healed ninety-nine to
18 the ten of materia medica.

 We should thank God for persecution and for prosecu-
 tion, if from these ensue a purer Protestantism and mono-
21 theism for the latter days of the nineteenth century. A
 siege of the combined centuries, culminating in fierce attack,
 cannot demolish our strongholds. The forts of Christian
24 Science, garrisoned by God's chosen ones, can never sur-
 render. Unlike Russia's armament, ours is not costly as
 men count cost, but it is rich beyond price, staunch and
27 indestructible on land or sea; it is not curtailed in peace,
 surrendered in conquest, nor laid down at the feet of
 progress through the hands of omnipotence. And why?
30 Because it is "on earth peace, good will toward men," β€”
 a cover and a defence adapted to all men, all nations,
 all times, climes, and races. I cannot quench my


Page 128


1 desire to say this; and words are not vain when the
 depth of desire can find no other outlet to liberty.
3 "Therefore . . . let us go on unto perfection; not laying
 again the foundation of repentance from dead works."
 (Hebrews 6: 1.)

6 A coroner's inquest, a board of health, or class legisla-
 tion is less than the Constitution of the United States, and
 infinitely less than God's benign government, which is
9 "no respecter of persons." Truth crushed to earth springs
 spontaneously upward, and whispers to the breeze man's
 inalienable birthright β€” Liberty. "Where the Spirit of
12 the Lord is, there is liberty." God is everywhere. No
 crown nor sceptre nor rulers rampant can quench the vital
 heritage of freedom — man's right to adopt a religion,
15 to employ a physician, to live or to die according to the
 dictates of his own rational conscience and enlightened
 understanding. Men cannot punish a man for suicide;
18 God does that.

 Christian Scientists abide by the laws of God and the
 laws of the land; and, following the command of the
21 Master, they go into all the world, preaching the gospel
 and healing the sick. Therefore be wise and harmless, for
 without the former the latter were impracticable. A lack
24 of wisdom betrays Truth into the hands of evil as effec-
 tually as does a subtle conspirator; the motive is not as
 wicked, but the result is as injurious. Return not evil for
27 evil, but "overcome evil with good." Then, whatever
 the shaft aimed at you or your practice may be, it will
 fall powerless, and God will reward your enemies accord-
30 ing to their works. Watch, and pray daily that evil
 suggestions, in whatever guise, take no root in your
 thought nor bear fruit. Ofttimes examine yourselves, and


Page 129


1 see if there be found anywhere a deterrent of Truth and
 Love, and "hold fast that which is good."

3 I reluctantly foresee great danger threatening our na-
 tion, β€” imperialism, monopoly, and a lax system of relig-
 ion. But the spirit of humanity, ethics, and Christianity
6 sown broadcast — all concomitants of Christian Science
 β€” is taking strong hold of the public thought through-
 out our beloved country and in foreign lands, and is
9 tending to counteract the trend of mad ambition.

 There is no night but in God's frown; there is no day
 but in His smile. The oracular skies, the verdant earth
12 β€” bird, brook, blossom, breeze, and balm — are richly
 fraught with divine reflection. They come at Love's call.
 The nod of Spirit is nature's natal.

15 And how is man, seen through the lens of Spirit,
 enlarged, and how counterpoised his origin from dust,
 and how he presses to his original, never severed
18 from Spirit! O ye who leap disdainfully from this rock
 of ages, return and plant thy steps in Christ, Truth,
 "the stone which the builders rejected"! Then will
21 angels administer grace, do thy errands, and be thy
 dearest allies. The divine law gives to man health
 and life everlasting — gives a soul to Soul, a present
24 harmony wherein the good man's heart takes hold on
 heaven, and whose feet can never be moved. These
 are His green pastures beside still waters, where faith
27 mounts upward, expatiates, strengthens, and exults.

 Lean not too much on your Leader. Trust God to
 direct your steps. Accept my counsel and teachings only
30 as they include the spirit and the letter of the Ten Com-
 mandments, the Beatitudes, and the teachings and
 example of Christ Jesus. Refrain from public contro-


Page 130


1 versy; correct the false with the true — then leave the
 latter to propagate. Watch and guard your own thoughts
3 against evil suggestions and against malicious mental
 malpractice, wholly disloyal to the teachings of Christian
 Science. This hidden method of committing crime β€”
6 socially, physically, and morally — will ere long be un-
 earthed and punished as it deserves. The effort of
 disloyal students to blacken me and to keep my works
9 from public recognition — students seeking only public
 notoriety, whom I have assisted pecuniarily and striven to
 uplift morally — has been made too many times and has
12 failed too often for me to fear it. The spirit of Truth is
 the lever which elevates mankind. I have neither the
 time nor the inclination to be continually pursuing a lie
15 β€” the one evil or the evil one. Therefore I ask the help
 of others in this matter, and I ask that according to
 the Scriptures my students reprove, rebuke, and exhort.
18 A lie left to itself is not so soon destroyed as it is with
 the help of truth-telling. Truth never falters nor fails;
 it is our faith that fails.

21 All published quotations from my works must have
 the author's name added to them. Quotation-marks are
 not sufficient. Borrowing from my copyrighted works,
24 without credit, is inadmissible. But I need not say this
 to the loyal Christian Scientistβ€” to him who keeps
 the commandments. "Science and Health with Key to
27 the Scriptures" has an enormous strain put upon it,
 being used as a companion to the Bible in all your
 public ministrations, as teacher and as the embodiment
30 and substance of the truth that is taught; hence
 my request, that you borrow little else from it, should
 seem reasonable.


Page 131


1 Beloved, that which purifies the affections also strength-
 ens them, removes fear, subdues sin, and endues with
3 divine power; that which refines character at the same
 time humbles, exalts, and commands a man, and obedience
 gives him courage, devotion, and attainment. For this
6 hour, for this period, for spiritual sacrament, sacrifice,
 and ascension, we unite in giving thanks. For the body
 of Christ, for the life that we commemorate and would
9 emulate, for the bread of heaven whereof if a man eat
 "he shall live forever," for the cup red with loving resti-
 tution, redemption, and inspiration, we give thanks. The
12 signet of the great heart, given to me in a little symbol,
 seals the covenant of everlasting love. May apostate
 praise return to its first love, above the symbol seize the
15 spirit, speak the "new tongue" β€” and may thought soar
 and Soul be.



 ADDRESS AT ANNUAL MEETING, JUNE 6, 1899


18 My Beloved Brethren: β€” I hope I shall not be found
 disorderly, but I wish to say briefly that this meeting is
 very joyous to me. Where God is we can meet, and where
21 God is we can never part. There is something suggestive
 to me in this hour of the latter days of the nineteenth
 century, fulfilling much of the divine law and the gospel.
24 The divine law has said to us: "Bring ye all the tithes into
 the storehouse, that there may be meat in mine house,
 and prove me now herewith, saith the Lord of hosts, if I
27 will not open you the windows of heaven, and pour you
 out a blessing, that there shall not be room enough to
 receive it."

30 There is with us at this hour this great, great blessing;
 and may I say with the consciousness of Mind that the


Page 132


1 fulfilment of divine Love in our lives is the demand of
 this hour — the special demand. We begin with the law
3 as just announced, "Prove me now herewith, . . . if I will
 not open you the windows of heaven, and pour you out a
 blessing," and we go to the Gospels, and there we hear:
6 "In the world ye shall have tribulation; but be of good
 cheer; I have overcome the world."

 The Christian Scientist knows that spiritual faith and
9 understanding pass through the waters of Meribah here β€”
 bitter waters; but he also knows they embark for infinity
 and anchor in omnipotence.

12 Oh, may this hour be prolific, and at this time and in
 every heart may there come this benediction: Thou hast
 no longer to appeal to human strength, to strive with
15 agony; I am thy deliverer. "Of His own will begat He us
 with the word of truth." Divine Love has strengthened
 the hand and encouraged the heart of every member of this
18 large church. Oh, may these rich blessings continue and
 be increased! Divine Love hath opened the gate Beau-
 tiful to us, where we may see God and live, see good in
21 good, β€” God all, one, β€” one Mind and that divine; where
 we may love our neighbor as ourselves, and bless our
 enemies.

24 Divine Love will also rebuke and destroy disease, and
 destroy the belief of life in matter. It will waken the
 dreamer — the sinner, dreaming of pleasure in sin; the sick,
27 dreaming of suffering matter; the slothful, satisfied to
 sleep and dream. Divine Love is our only physician,
 and never loses a case. It binds up the broken-hearted;
30 heals the poor body, whose whole head is sick and whose
 whole heart is faint; comforts such as mourn, wipes away
 the unavailing, tired tear, brings back the wanderer to


Page 133


1 the Father's house in which are many mansions, many
 welcomes, many pardons for the penitent.

3 Ofttimes I think of this in the great light of the present,
 the might and light of the present fulfilment. So shall
 all earth's children at last come to acknowledge God, and
6 be one; inhabit His holy hill, the God-crowned summit
 of divine Science; the church militant rise to the church
 triumphant, and Zion be glorified.



 A QUESTION ANSWERED


 My beloved church will not receive a Message from
 me this summer, for my annual Message is swallowed
12 up in sundries already given out. These crumbs and
 monads will feed the hungry, and the fragments gathered
 therefrom should waken the sleeper, β€” "dead in tres-
15 passes and sins," β€” set the captive sense free from self's
 sordid sequela; and one more round of old Sol give birth
 to the sowing of Solomon.

18    MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 May 11, 1903



 LETTER OF THE PASTOR EMERITUS, JUNE, 1903


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” I have a secret to tell you and
 a question to ask. Do you know how much I love you
24 and the nature of this love? No: then my sacred secret
 is incommunicable, and we live apart. But, yes: and
 this inmost something becomes articulate, and my book
27 is not all you know of me. But your knowledge with
 its magnitude of meaning uncovers my life, even as
 your heart has discovered it. The spiritual bespeaks


Page 134


1 our temporal history. Difficulty, abnegation, constant
 battle against the world, the flesh, and evil, tell my long-
3 kept secret — evidence a heart wholly in protest and
 unutterable in love.

 The unprecedented progress of Christian Science is pro-
6 verbial, and we cannot be too grateful nor too humble for
 this, inasmuch as our daily lives serve to enhance or to
 stay its glory. To triumph in truth, to keep the faith
9 individually and collectively, conflicting elements must
 be mastered. Defeat need not follow victory. Joy over
 good achievements and work well done should not
12 be eclipsed by some lost opportunity, some imperative
 demand not yet met.

 Truth, Life, and Love will never lose their claim on us.
15 And here let me add: β€”


 Truth happifies life in the hamlet or town;
 Life lessens all pride — its pomp and its frown β€”
18    Love comes to our tears like a soft summer shower,
 To beautify, bless, and inspire man's power.



 A LETTER FROM MRS. EDDY


21 At the Wednesday evening meeting of April 3, 1907,
 in The First Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston, the
 First Reader, Mr. William D. McCrackan, read the fol-
24 lowing letter from Mrs. Eddy. In announcing this letter,
 he said: β€”

 "Permission has been secured from our beloved Leader
27 to read you a letter from her to me. This letter is in
 Mrs. Eddy's own handwriting, with which I have been
 familiar for several years, and it shows her usual mental
30 and physical vigor."


Page 135


1      Mrs. Eddy's Letter


 Beloved Student: β€” The wise man has said, "When I
3 was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a child,
 I thought as a child: but when I became a man, I put
 away childish things." That this passage of Scripture
6 and its concluding declaration may be applied to old age,
 is a solace.

 Perhaps you already know that I have heretofore per-
9 sonally attended to my secular affairs, β€” to my income,
 investments, deposits, expenditures, and to my employ-
 ees. But the increasing demands upon my time and
12 labor, and my yearning for more peace in my advancing
 years, have caused me to select a Board of Trustees to
 take the charge of my property; namely, the Hon. Henry
15 M. Baker, Mr. Archibald McLellan, and Mr. Josiah E.
 Fernald.

 As you are the First Reader of my church in Boston,
18 of about forty thousand members, I inform you of this,
 the aforesaid transaction.

 Lovingly yours in Christ,
21       MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 March 22, 1907



 LETTER TO THE MOTHER CHURCH


 THE FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, BOSTON, MASS.


 My Beloved Church: β€” Your love and fidelity cheer my
27 advancing years. As Christian Scientists you under-
 stand the Scripture, "Fret not thyself because of evil-
 doers;" also you spiritually and scientifically understand
30 that God is divine Love, omnipotent, omnipresent, in-


Page 136


1 finite; hence it is enough for you and me to know that
 our "Redeemer liveth" and intercedeth for us.
3 At this period my demonstration of Christian Science
 cannot be fully understood, theoretically; therefore
 it is best explained by its fruits, and by the life of
6 our Lord as depicted in the chapter Atonement and
 Eucharist, in "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures."


 MARY BAKER EDDY


9 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 April 2, 1907



 CARD


 I am pleased to say that the following members con-
 stitute the Board of Trustees who own my property: β€”


15 1. The Hon. Henry M. Baker, who won a suit at
 law in Washington, D. C., for which it is alleged he
 was paid the highest fee ever received by a native of
18 New Hampshire.

 2. Archibald McLellan, editor-in-chief of the Christian
 Science periodicals, circulating in the five grand divisions
21 of our globe; also in Canada, Australia, etc.

 3. Josiah E. Fernald, justice of the peace and president
 of the National State Capital Bank, Concord, N. H.


24 To my aforesaid Trustees I have committed the hard
 earnings of my pen, β€” the fruits of honest toil, the labor
 that is known by its fruits, β€” benefiting the human race;
27 and I have so done that I may have more peace, and time
 for spiritual thought and the higher criticism.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

30 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 April 3, 1907


Page 137



 MRS. EDDY'S AFFIDAVIT


 The following affidavit, in the form of a letter from
3 Mrs. Eddy to Judge Robert N. Chamberlin of the Superior
 Court, was filed in the office of the Clerk of the Court,
 Saturday, May 18. The Boston Globe, referring to this
6 document, speaks of it as, "in the main, an example of
 crisp, clear, plain-speaking English." The entire letter is
 in Mrs. Eddy's own handwriting and is characteristic in
9 both substance and penmanship: β€”


 HON. JUDGE CHAMBERLIN, CONCORD, N. H.


 Respected Sir: β€” It is over forty years that I have
12 attended personally to my secular affairs, to my in-
 come, investments, deposits, expenditures, and to my
 employees. I have personally selected all my invest-
15 ments, except in one or two instances, and have paid for
 the same.
 The increasing demands upon my time, labors, and
18 thought, and yearning for more peace and to have my
 property and affairs carefully taken care of for the
 persons and purposes I have designated by my last will,
21 influenced me to select a Board of Trustees to take charge
 of my property; namely, the Hon. Henry M. Baker,
 Mr. Archibald McLellan, Mr. Josiah E. Fernald. I
24 had contemplated doing this before the present proceed-
 ings were brought or I knew aught about them, and I
 had consulted Lawyer Streeter about the method.

27 I selected said Trustees because I had implicit con-
 fidence in each one of them as to honesty and business
 capacity. No person influenced me to make this selec-
30 tion. I find myself able to select the Trustees I need


Page 138


1 without the help of others. I gave them my property to
 take care of because I wanted it protected and myself
3 relieved of the burden of doing this. They have agreed
 with me to take care of my property and I consider this
 agreement a great benefit to me already.

6 This suit was brought without my knowledge and is
 being carried on contrary to my wishes. I feel that it
 is not for my benefit in any way, but for my injury,
9 and I know it was not needed to protect my person or
 property. The present proceedings test my trust in
 divine Love. My personal reputation is assailed and
12 some of my students and trusted personal friends are
 cruelly, unjustly, and wrongfully accused.

 Mr. Calvin A. Frye and other students often ask me
15 to receive persons whom I desire to see but decline to
 receive solely because I find that I cannot "serve two
 masters." I cannot be a Christian Scientist except I
18 leave all for Christ.

 Trusting that I have not exceeded the bounds of pro-
 priety in the statements herein made by me,

21    I remain most respectfully yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
24    May 16, 1907


 STATE OF NEW HAMPSHIRE, Merrimack, ss.


 On this sixteenth day of May, 1907, personally appeared
27 Mary Baker Eddy and made oath that the statements
 contained in the annexed letter directed to Honorable
 Judge Chamberlin and dated May 16, 1907, are true.

30    Before me:       ALLEN HOLLIS,
 Justice of the Peace


Page 139



 NOTA BENE


 Beloved Students: β€” Rest assured that your Leader is
3 living, loving, acting, enjoying. She is neither dead nor
 plucked up by the roots, but she is keenly alive to the
 reality of living, and safely, soulfully founded upon
6 the rock, Christ Jesus, even the spiritual idea of Life,
 with its abounding, increasing, advancing footsteps of
 progress, primeval faith, hope, love.

9 Like the verdure and evergreen that flourish when
 trampled upon, the Christian Scientist thrives in adver-
 sity; his is a life-lease of hope, home, heaven; his idea
12 is nearing the Way, the Truth, and the Life, when mis-
 represented, belied, and trodden upon. Justice, honesty,
 cannot be abjured; their vitality involves Life, β€” calm,
15 irresistible, eternal.



 A WORD TO THE WISE


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” When I asked you to dispense
18 with the Executive Members' meeting, the purpose of my
 request was sacred. It was to turn your sense of worship
 from the material to the spiritual, the personal to the
21 impersonal, the denominational to the doctrinal, yea,
 from the human to the divine.

 Already you have advanced from the audible to the
24 inaudible prayer; from the material to the spiritual
 communion; from drugs to Deity; and you have been
 greatly recompensed. Rejoice and be exceedingly glad,
27 for so doth the divine Love redeem your body from dis-
 ease; your being from sensuality; your soul from sense;
 your life from death.


Page 140


1 Of this abounding and abiding spiritual understand-
 ing the prophet Isaiah said, "And I will bring the blind
3 by a way that they knew not; I will lead them in
 paths that they have not known: I will make dark-
 ness light before them, and crooked things straight.
6 These things will I do unto them, and not forsake
 them."

 MARY BAKER EDDY

9 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.



 [Boston Globe]


 ABOLISHING THE COMMUNION


12 In a letter addressed to Christian Scientists the Rev.
 Mary Baker Eddy explains that dropping the annual com-
 munion service of The First Church of Christ, Scientist,
15 in Boston, need not debar distant members from attend-
 ing occasionally The Mother Church. The following is
 Mrs. Eddy's letter: β€”


18 Beloved Christian Scientists: β€” Take courage. God is
 leading you onward and upward. Relinquishing a ma-
 terial form of communion advances it spiritually.
21 The material form is a "Suffer it to be so now," and
 is abandoned so soon as God's Way-shower, Christ,
 points the advanced step. This instructs us how to
24 be abased and how to abound.

 Dropping the communion of The Mother Church
 does not prevent its distant members from occasionally
27 attending this church.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
30    June 21, 1908


Page 141



1  [Boston Globe]


 COMMUNION SEASON IS ABOLISHED


3 The general communion service of the Christian Science
 denomination, held annually in The First Church of
 Christ, Scientist, in this city, has been abolished by
6 order of Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy. The services attended
 last Sunday [June 14] by ten thousand persons were thus
 the last to be held. Of late years members of the church
9 outside of Boston have not been encouraged to attend the
 communion seasons except on the triennial gatherings,
 the next of which would have been held next year.
12 The announcement in regard to the services was made
 last night [June 21] by Alfred Farlow of the publication
 committee as follows: β€”


15 The First Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston, has
 taken steps to abolish its famous communion seasons.
 In former years, the annual communion season of the
18 Boston church has offered an occasion for the gathering
 of vast multitudes of Christian Scientists from all parts
 of the world . According to the following statement, which
21 Mrs. Eddy has just given out to the press, these gather-
 ings will be discontinued: β€”


 "The house of The Mother Church seats only five thou-
24 sand people, and its membership includes forty-eight
 thousand communicants, hence the following: β€”

 "The branch churches continue their communion sea-
27 sons, but there shall be no more communion season in
 The Mother Church that has blossomed into spiritual
 beauty, communion universal and divine. 'For who


Page 142


1 hath known the mind of the Lord, that he may instruct
 him? But we have the mind of Christ.' (1 Corinthians,
3 2:16.) "

 [Mrs. Eddy has only abolished the disappointment of
 communicants who come long distances and then find no
6 seats in The Mother Church. β€” EDITOR Sentinel.]



 MRS EDDY'S REPLY


 JUDGE CLIFFORD P. SMITH, LL.B., C.S.B.,
9   First Reader, The Mother Church, Boston, Mass.


 Beloved Christian Scientist: β€” Accept my thanks for
 your approval of abolishing the communion season of
12 The Mother Church. I sought God's guidance in doing
 it, but the most important events are criticized.

 The Mother Church communion season was liter-
15 ally a communion of branch church communicants
 which might in time lose its sacredness and merge into
 a meeting for greetings. My beloved brethren may
18 some time learn this and rejoice with me, as they so
 often have done, over a step higher in their passage
 from sense to Soul.

21       Most truly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.
24    June 24, 1908



 THE CHRISTIAN SCIENCE BOARD OF DIRECTORS


 Beloved Students: β€” I thank you for your kind invi-
27 tation to be present at the annual meeting of The
 Mother Church on June 7, 1909. I will attend the


Page 143


1 meeting, but not in propria persona. Watch and pray
 that God directs your meetings and your lives, and your
3 Leader will then be sure that they are blessed in their
 results.

 Lovingly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

6 BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 June 5, 1909



 MRS. EDDY'S STATEMENTS


9 To Whom It May Concern: β€” I have the pleasure to
 report to one and all of my beloved friends and followers
 that I exist in the flesh, and am seen daily by the mem-
12 bers of my household and by those with whom I have
 appointments.

 Above all this fustian of either denying or asserting the
15 personality and presence of Mary Baker Eddy, stands
 the eternal fact of Christian Science and the honest history
 of its Discoverer and Founder. It is self-evident that
18 the discoverer of an eternal truth cannot be a temporal
 fraud.

 The Cause of Christian Science is prospering through-
21 out the world and stands forever as an eternal and de-
 monstrable Science, and I do not regard this attack upon
 me as a trial, for when these things cease to bless they
24 will cease to occur.

 "And we know that all things work together for good
 to them that love God, to them who are the called
27 according to His purpose . . . . What shall we then say
 to these things? If God be for us, who can be against
 us?"

30   MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.
 June 7, 1909


Page 144


1 Mrs. Eddy also sent the following letter to the mem-
 bers of her church in Concord, N. H.: β€”


3 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, CONCORD, N. H.


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Give yourselves no fear and
 spare not a moment's thought to lies afloat that I am sick,
6 helpless, or an invalid. The public report that I am in
 either of the aforesaid conditions is utterly false.

 With love, ever yours,
9    MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.
 June 7, 1909

CHAPTER V β€” CHRISTIAN SCIENCE HALL, CONCORD, N. H.

Page 145



 IN RETROSPECT


 MY DEAR EDITORS: β€” You are by this time ac-
3 quainted with the small item that in October, 1897,
 I proposed to one of Concord's best builders the plan for
 Christian Science Hall in Concord, N. H. He drew the
6 plan, showed it to me, and I accepted it. From that
 time, October 29, 1897, until the remodelling of the house
 was finished, I inspected the work every day, suggested
9 the details outside and inside from the foundations to
 the tower, and saw them carried out. One day the car-
 penters' foreman said to me: "I want to be let off for
12 a few days. I do not feel able to keep about. I am
 feeling an old ailment my mother had." I healed him
 on the spot. He remained at work, and the next morn-
15 ing said to Mr. George H. Moore of Concord, "I am as
 well as I ever was."

 Within the past year and two months, I have worked
18 even harder than usual, but I cannot go upon the plat-
 form and still be at home attending to the machinery
 which keeps the wheels revolving. This well-known
21 fact makes me the servant of the race — and gladly
 thus, if in this way I can serve equally my friends and
 my enemies.


Page 146


1 In explanation of my dedicatory letter to the Chicago
 church (see page 177), I will say: It is understood by all
3 Christians that Jesus spoke the truth. He said: "They
 shall take up serpents; and if they drink any deadly
 thing, it shall not hurt them." I believe this saying
6 because I understand it, but its verity has not been
 acknowledged since the third century.

 The statement in my letter to the church in Chicago,
9 in substance as follows, has been quoted and criticized:
 "If wisdom lengthens my sum of years to fourscore, I
 may then be even younger than now."

12 Few believe this saying. Few believe that Christian
 Science contains infinitely more than has been demon-
 strated, or that the altitude of its highest propositions has
15 not yet been reached. The heights of the great Naza-
 rene's sayings are not fully scaled. Yet his immortal
 words and my poor prophecy, if they are true at all, are
18 as true to-day as they will be to-morrow. I am convinced
 of the absolute truth of his sayings and of their present
 application to mankind, and I am equally sure that what
21 I wrote is true, although it has not been demonstrated
 in this age.

 Christian Scientists hold as a vital point that the beliefs
24 of mortals tip the scale of being, morally and physically,
 either in the right or in the wrong direction. Therefore
 a Christian Scientist never mentally or audibly takes
27 the side of sin, disease, or death. Others who take the
 side of error do it ignorantly or maliciously. The Chris-
 tian Scientist voices the harmonious and eternal, and
30 nothing else. He lays his whole weight of thought,
 tongue, and pen in the divine scale of being — for
 health and holiness.


Page 147



 SECOND SUNDAY SERVICE, DECEMBER 12, 1897


 Friends and Brethren: β€” There are moments when at
3 the touch of memory the past comes forth like a pageant
 and the present is prophetic. Over a half century ago,
 between the morning and afternoon services of the First
6 Congregational Church, the grand old elm on North State
 Street flung its foliage in kindly shelter over my child-
 hood's Sunday noons. And now, at this distant day, I
9 have provided for you a modest hall, in which to assemble
 as a sort of Christian Science kindergarten for teaching
 the "new tongue" of the gospel with "signs following,"
12 of which St. Mark prophesies.

 May this little sanctum be preserved sacred to the
 memory of this pure purpose, and subserve it. Let
15 the Bible and the Christian Science textbook preach the
 gospel which heals the sick and enlightens the people's
 sense of Christian Science. This ministry, reaching the
18 physical, moral, and spiritual needs of humanity, will,
 in the name of Almighty God, speak the truth that
 to-day, as in olden time, is found able to heal both sin
21 and disease.

 I have purchased a pleasant place for you, and prepared
 for your use work-rooms and a little hall, which are already
24 dedicated to Christ's service, since Christian Scientists
 never stop ceremoniously to dedicate halls. I shall be
 with you personally very seldom. I have a work to do
27 that, in the words of our Master, "ye know not of."
 From the interior of Africa to the utmost parts of the earth,
 the sick and the heavenly homesick or hungry hearts are
30 calling on me for help, and I am helping them. You have
 less need of me than have they, and you must not expect


Page 148


1 me further to do your pioneer work in this city. Faithfully
 and more than ever persistently, you are now, through
3 the providence of God, called to do your part wisely and
 to let your faith be known by your works. All that we
 ask of any people is to judge our doctrine by its fruits.
6 May the good folk of Concord have this opportunity,
 and may the God of all grace, truth, and love be and abide
 with you henceforth.



 ADDRESS TO THE CONCORD CHURCH, FEBRUARY, 1899


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” In the annals of our denomina-
 tion this church becomes historic, having completed
12 its organization February 22 β€” Washington's birthday.
 Memorable date, all unthought of till the day had passed!
 Then we beheld the omen, β€” religious liberty, β€” the
15 Father of the universe and the father of our nation in
 concurrence.

 To-day, with the large membership of seventy-four com-
18 municants, you have met to praise God. I, as usual at
 home and alone, am with you in spirit, joining in your
 rejoicing, and my heart is asking: What are the angels say-
21 ing or singing of this dear little flock, and what is each
 heart in this house repeating, and what is being recorded
 of this meeting as with the pen of an angel?

24 Bear in mind always that Christianity is not alone a
 gift, but that it is a growth Christward; it is not a creed
 or dogma, β€” a philosophical phantasm, β€” nor the opinions
27 of a sect struggling to gain power over contending sects
 and scourging the sect in advance of it. Christianity is
 the summons of divine Love for man to be Christlike β€”
30 to emulate the words and the works of our great Master.


Page 149


1 To attain to these works, men must know somewhat of
 the divine Principle of Jesus' life-work, and must prove
3 their knowledge by doing as he bade: "Go, and do thou
 likewise."

 We know Principle only through Science. The Prin-
6 ciple of Christ is divine Love, resistless Life and Truth.
 Then the Science of the Principle must be Christlike,
 or Christian Science. More than regal is the majesty
9 of the meekness of the Christ-principle; and its might is
 the ever-flowing tides of truth that sweep the universe,
 create and govern it; and its radiant stores of knowl-
12 edge are the mysteries of exhaustless being. Seek ye
 these till you make their treasures yours.

 When a young man vainly boasted, "I am wise, for I
15 have conversed with many wise men," Epictetus made
 answer, "And I with many rich men, but I am not rich."
 The richest blessings are obtained by labor. A vessel
18 full must be emptied before it can be refilled. Lawyers
 may know too much of human law to have a clear per-
 ception of divine justice, and divines be too deeply read
21 in scholastic theology to appreciate or to demonstrate
 Christian charity. Losing the comprehensive in the
 technical, the Principle in its accessories, cause in effect,
24 and faith in sight, we lose the Science of Christianity, β€”
 a predicament quite like that of the man who could not
 see London for its houses.

27 Clouds parsimonious of rain, that swing in the sky with
 dumb thunderbolts, are seen and forgotten in the same
 hour; while those with a mighty rush, which waken the
30 stagnant waters and solicit every root and every leaf with
 the treasures of rain, ask no praising. Remember, thou
 canst be brought into no condition, be it ever so severe,


Page 150


1 where Love has not been before thee and where its tender
 lesson is not awaiting thee. Therefore despair not nor
3 murmur, for that which seeketh to save, to heal, and to
 deliver, will guide thee, if thou seekest this guidance.

 Pliny gives the following description of the character of
6 true greatness: "Doing what deserves to be written, and
 writing what deserves to be read; and rendering the world
 happier and better for having lived in it." Strive thou
9 for the joy and crown of such a pilgrimage — the service
 of such a mission.

 A heart touched and hallowed by one chord of Christian
12 Science, can accomplish the full scale; but this heart must
 be honest and in earnest and never weary of struggling to
 be perfect — to reflect the divine Life, Truth, and Love.
15 Stand by the limpid lake, sleeping amid willowy banks
 dyed with emerald. See therein the mirrored sky and the
 moon ablaze with her mild glory. This will stir your
18 heart. Then, in speechless prayer, ask God to enable you
 to reflect God, to become His own image and likeness,
 even the calm, clear, radiant reflection of Christ's glory,
21 healing the sick, bringing the sinner to repentance, and
 raising the spiritually dead in trespasses and sins to life
 in God. Jesus said: "If ye abide in me, and my words
24 abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and it shall be
 done unto you."

 Beloved in Christ, what our Master said unto his
27 disciples, when he sent them forth to heal the sick and
 preach the gospel, I say unto you: "Be ye therefore wise
 as serpents, and harmless as doves." Then, if the wis-
30 dom you manifest causes Christendom or the disclaimer
 against God to call this "a subtle fraud," "let your peace
 return to you."


Page 151


1 I am patient with the newspaper wares and the
 present schoolboy epithets and attacks of a portion of
3 Christendom:

 (1) Because I sympathize with their ignorance of
 Christian Science:

6 (2) Because I know that no Christian can or does
 understand this Science and not love it:

 (3) Because these attacks afford opportunity for ex-
9 plaining Christian Science:

 (4) Because it is written: "The wrath of man shall
 praise Thee: the remainder of wrath shalt Thou restrain."

12 Rest assured that the injustice done by press and pulpit
 to this denomination of Christians will cease, when it no
 longer blesses this denomination. "This I know; for God
15 is for me" (Psalms). And in the words of St. Paul, "If
 God be for us, who can be against us?"


 "Pass ye the proud fane by,
18     The vaulted aisles by flaunting folly trod,
 And ’neath the temple of uplifted sky β€”
 Go forth, and worship God."



 MESSAGE, APRIL 19, 1899



 SUBJECT: β€œNOT MATTER, BUT SPIRIT”


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” We learn from the Scrip-
24 tures that the Baalites or sun-worshippers failed to
 look "through nature up to nature's God," thus missing
 the discovery of all cause and effect. They were content
27 to look no higher than the symbol. This departure from
 Spirit, this worshipping of matter in the name of nature,
 was idolatry then and is idolatry now. When human
30 thought discerned its idolatrous tendencies, it took a step


Page 152


1 higher; but it immediately turned to another form of
 idolatry, and, worshipping person instead of Principle,
3 anchored its faith in troubled waters. At that period,
 the touch of Jesus' robe and the handkerchief of St.
 Paul were supposed to heal the sick, and our Master
6 declared, "Thy faith hath made thee whole." The
 medicine-man, far lower in the scale of thought, said,
 "My material tonic has strengthened you." By reposing
9 faith in man and in matter, the human race has not
 yet reached the understanding of God, the conception
 of Spirit and its all-power.

12 The restoration of pure Christianity rests solely on
 spiritual understanding, spiritual worship, spiritual power.
 Ask thyself, Do I enter by the door and worship only
15 Spirit and spiritually, or do I climb up some other way?
 Do I understand God as Love, the divine Principle of all
 that really is, the infinite good, than which there is none
18 else and in whom is all? Unless this be so, the blind is
 leading the blind, and both will stumble into doubt and
 darkness, even as the ages have shown. To-day, if ye
21 would hear His voice, listen to His Word and serve no
 other gods. Then the divine Principle of good, that we
 call God, will be found an ever-present help in all things,
24 and Christian Science will be understood. It will also be
 seen that this God demands all our faith and love; that
 matter, man, or woman can never heal you nor pardon a
27 single sin; while God, the divine Principle of nature and
 man, when understood and demonstrated, is found to be
 the remote, predisposing, and present cause of all that is
30 rightly done.

 I have the sweet satisfaction of sending to you weekly
 flowers that my skilful florist has coaxed into loveliness


Page 153


1 despite our winter snows. Also I hear that the loving
 hearts and hands of the Christian Scientists in Concord
3 send these floral offerings in my name to the sick and
 suffering. Now, if these kind hearts will only do this in
 Christ's name, the power of Truth and Love will fulfil the
6 law in righteousness. The healing and the gospel ministry
 of my students in Concord have come to fulfil the whole
 law. Unto "the angel of the church in Philadelphia,"
9 the church of brotherly love, "these things saith He
 that is holy."

 To-day our great Master would say to the aged gentle-
12 man healed from the day my flowers visited his bedside:
 Thy faith hath healed thee. The flowers were imbued
 and associated with no intrinsic healing qualities from my
15 poor personality. The scientific, healing faith is a saving
 faith; it keeps steadfastly the great and first command-
 ment, "Thou shalt have no other gods before me" β€” no
18 other than the spiritual help of divine Love. Faith in
 aught else misguides the understanding, ignores the power
 of God, and, in the words of St. Paul, appeals to an un-
21 known power "whom therefore ye ignorantly worship."
 This trembling and blind faith, in the past as in the present,
 seeks personality for support, unmindful of the divine law
24 of Love, which can be understood, the Principle of which
 works intelligently as the divine Mind, not as matter,
 casting out evil and healing the sick.

27 Christian Science healing is "the Spirit and the bride,"
 β€” the Word and the wedding of this Word to all human
 thought and action, β€” that says: Come, and I will give
30 thee rest, peace, health, holiness. The sweet flowers
 should be to us His apostles, pointing away from matter
 and man up to the one source, divine Life and Love, in


Page 154


1 whom is all salvation from sin, disease, and death. The
 Science of all healing is based on Mindβ€”the power of
3 Truth over error. It is not the person who gives the
 drug nor the drug itself that heals, but it is the law of
 Life understood by the practitioner as transcending the
6 law of death.

 I shall scarcely venture to send flowers to this little hall
 if they can be made to infringe the divine law of Love
9 even in thought. Send flowers and all things fair and
 comforting to the dear sick, but remember it is not he
 who gives the flowers that confers the blessing, but
12 "my Spirit, saith the Lord;" for "in Him was life," and
 that life "was the light of men."



 FIRST ANNUAL MEETING, JANUARY 11, 1900


15 My Beloved Brethren: β€” At this, your first annual
 meeting, permit me to congratulate this little church in
 our city, weaving the new-old vesture in which to appear
18 and to clothe the human race. Carlyle wrote: "Wouldst
 thou plant for eternity, then plant into the deep infinite
 faculties of man. " " If the poor . . . toil that we have food,
21 must not the high and glorious toil for him in return, that
 he have light, . . . freedom, immortality?" I agree with
 him; and in our era of the world I welcome the means and
24 methods, light and truth, emanating from the pulpit and
 press. Altogether it makes the church militant, embodied
 in a visible communion, the foreshadowing of the church
27 triumphant. Communing heart with heart, mind with
 mind, soul with soul, wherein and whereby we are looking
 heavenward, is not looking nor gravitating earthward,
30 take it in whatever sense you may. Such communing


Page 155


1 uplifts man's being; it makes healing the sick and reform-
 ing the sinner a mutual aid society, which is effective here
3 and now.

 May this dear little church, nestled so near my heart
 and native hills, be steadfast in Christ, always abounding
6 in love and good works, having unfaltering faith in the
 prophecies, promises, and proofs of Holy Writ. May this
 church have one God, one Christ, and that one the God and
9 Saviour whom the Scriptures declare. May it catch the
 early trumpet-call, take step with the twentieth century,
 leave behind those things that are behind, lay down the
12 low laurels of vainglory, and, pressing forward in the on-
 ward march of Truth, run in joy, health, holiness, the
 race set before it, till, home at last, it finds the full fru-
15 ition of its faith, hope, and prayer.



 EASTER MESSAGE, 1902


 Beloved Brethren: β€” May this glad Easter morn find
18 the members of this dear church having a pure peace, a
 fresh joy, a clear vision of heaven here, β€” heaven within
 us, β€” and an awakened sense of the risen Christ. May
21 long lines of light span the horizon of their hope and
 brighten their faith with a dawn that knows no twilight
 and no night. May those who discourse music to-day,
24 sing as the angels heaven's symphonies that come to
 earth.

 May the dear Sunday School children always be gather-
27 ing Easter lilies of love with happy hearts and ripening
 goodness. To-day may they find some sweet scents and
 beautiful blossoms in their Leader's love, which she sends
30 to them this glad morn in the flowers and the cross from
 Pleasant View, smiling upon them.


Page 156



 ANNUAL MEETING, JANUARY 6, 1905


 Beloved Brethren: β€” You will accept my gratitude for
3 your dear letter, and allow me to reply in words of the
 Scripture: "I know whom I have believed, and am per-
 suaded that He is able" β€” "able to do exceeding abun-
6 dantly above all that we ask or think," "able to make
 all grace abound toward you; that ye, always hav-
 ing all sufficiency in all things, may abound to every
9 good work," "able to keep that which I have com-
 mitted unto Him against that day."

 When Jesus directed his disciples to prepare for the
12 material passover, which spiritually speaking is the pass-
 over from sense to Soul, he bade them say to the good-
 man of the house: "The Master saith unto thee, Where
15 is the guestchamber, where I shall eat the passover will
 my disciples? and he shall show you a large upper room
 furnished: there make ready."

18 In obedience to this command may these communicants
 come with the upper chambers of thought prepared for the
 reception of Truth — with hope, faith, and love ready to
21 partake of the bread that cometh down from heaven, and
 to "drink of his blood" β€” to receive into their affections
 and lives the inspiration which giveth victory over sin,
24 disease, and death.

CHAPTER VI β€” FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, CONCORD, N. H.

Page 157



1  [Concord (N. H.) Monitor]


 MRS. EDDY'S GIFT TO THE CONCORD CHURCH


3 "BELOVED TEACHER AND LEADER: β€” The members
 of the Concord church are filled with profound joy
 and deep gratitude that your generous gift of one hun-
6 dred thousand dollars is to be used at once to build a
 beautiful church edifice for your followers in the capital
 city of your native State. We rejoice that the prosperity
9 of the Cause in your home city, where, without regard
 to class or creed, you are so highly esteemed, makes
 necessary the commodious and beautiful church home
12 you have so freely bestowed. We thank you for this
 renewed evidence of your unselfish love."

 The church will be built of the same beautiful Concord
15 granite of which the National Library Building in Wash-
 ington is constructed. This is in accord with the ex-
 pressed wish of Mrs. Eddy, made known in her original
18 deed of trust, first announced in the Concord Monitor
 of March 19, 1898. In response to an inquiry from the
 editor of that paper, Mrs. Eddy made the following
21 statement: β€”

 On January 31, 1898, I gave a deed of trust to three
 individuals which conveyed to them the sum of one


Page 158


1 hundred thousand dollars to be appropriated in build-
 ing a granite church edifice for First Church of Christ,
3 Scientist, in this city.

 Very truly,
 MARY BAKER EDDY



 CORNER-STONE LAID AT CONCORD


 Beloved Brethren: β€” This day drops down upon the
 glories of summer; it is a glad day, in attune with faith's
9 fond trust. We live in an age of Love's divine adven-
 ture to be All-in-all. This day is the natal hour of my
 lone earth life; and for all mankind to-day hath its gloom
12 and glory: it endureth all things; it points to the new
 birth, heaven here, the struggle over; it profits by the
 past and joys in the present — to-day lends a new-born
15 beauty to holiness, patience, charity, love.

 Having all faith in Christian Science, we must have
 faith in whatever manifests love for God and man. The
18 burden of proof that Christian Science is Science rests
 on Christian Scientists. The letter without the spirit
 is dead: it is the Spirit that heals the sick and the
21 sinner — that makes the heart tender, faithful, true.
 Most men and women talk well, and some practise what
 they say.

24 God has blessed and will bless this dear band of brethren.
 He has laid the chief corner-stone of the temple which
 to-day you commemorate, to-morrow complete, and there-
27 after dedicate to Truth and Love. O may your temple
 and all who worship therein stand through all time for
 God and humanity!

30    MARY BAKER EDDY


Page 159



1 MESSAGE ON THE OCCASION OF THE
 DEDICATION OF MRS. EDDY'S GIFT, JULY 17, 1904


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” Never more sweet than to-day,
 seem to me, and must seem to thee, those words of
 our loved Lord, "Lo, I am with you alway, even unto
6 the end." Thus may it ever be that Christ rejoiceth
 and comforteth us. Sitting at his feet, I send to
 you the throbbing of every pulse of my desire for the
9 ripening and rich fruit of this branch of his vine, and
 I thank God who hath sent forth His word to heal
 and to save.

12 At this period, the greatest man or woman on earth
 stands at the vestibule of Christian Science, struggling to
 enter into the perfect love of God and man. The infinite
15 will not be buried in the finite; the true thought escapes
 from the inward to the outward, and this is the only
 right activity, that whereby we reach our higher
18 nature. Material theories tend to check spiritual at-
 traction — the tendency towards God, the infinite and
 eternal — by an opposite attraction towards the tem-
21 porary and finite. Truth, life, and love are the only
 legitimate and eternal demands upon man; they are
 spiritual laws enforcing obedience and punishing dis-
24 obedience.

 Even Epictetus, a heathen philosopher who held that
 Zeus, the master of the gods, could not control human
27 will, writes, "What is the essence of God? Mind." The
 general thought chiefly regards material things, and keeps


 Copyright, 1904, by Mary Baker G. Eddy. All rights
30 reserved.


Page 160


1 Mind much out of sight. The Christian, however, strives
 for the spiritual; he abides in a right purpose, as in laws
3 which it were impious to transgress, and follows Truth
 fearlessly. The heart that beats mostly for self is seldom
 alight with love. To live so as to keep human conscious-
6 ness in constant relation with the divine, the spiritual, and
 the eternal, is to individualize infinite power; and this is
 Christian Science.

9 It is of less importance that we receive from man-
 kind justice, than that we deserve it. Most of us
 willingly accept dead truisms which can be buried
12 at will; but a live truth, even though it be a sapling
 within rich soil and with blossoms on its branches,
 frightens people. The trenchant truth that cuts its
15 way through iron and sod, most men avoid until
 compelled to glance at it. Then they open their
 hearts to it for actual being, health, holiness, and im-
18 mortality.

 I am asked, "Is there a hell?" Yes, there is a hell for
 all who persist in breaking the Golden Rule or in dis-
21 obeying the commandments of God. Physical science
 has sometimes argued that the internal fires of our earth
 will eventually consume this planet. Christian Science
24 shows that hidden unpunished sin is this internal fire, β€”
 even the fire of a guilty conscience, waking to a true sense
 of itself, and burning in torture until the sinner is con-
27 sumed, β€” his sins destroyed. This may take millions of
 cycles, but of the time no man knoweth. The advanced
 psychist knows that this hell is mental, not material, and
30 that the Christian has no part in it. Only the makers of
 hell burn in their fire.

 Concealed crimes, the wrongs done to others, are mill-


Page 161


1 stones hung around the necks of the wicked. Christ Jesus
 paid our debt and set us free by enabling us to pay it;
3 for which we are still his debtors, washing the Way-shower's
 feet with tears of joy.

 The intentional destroyer of others would destroy him-
6 self eternally, were it not that his suffering reforms him,
 thus balancing his account with divine Love, which never
 remits the sentence necessary to reclaim the sinner.
9 Hence these words of Christ Jesus: "Depart from me, all
 ye workers of iniquity. There shall be weeping
 and gnashing of teeth, when ye shall see Abraham, and
12 Isaac, and Jacob, and all the prophets, in the kingdom of
 God, and you yourselves thrust out." (Luke 13 : 27, 28.)
 He who gains self-knowledge, self-control, and the king-
15 dom of heaven within himself, within his own conscious-
 ness, is saved through Christ, Truth. Mortals must
 drink sufficiently of the cup of their Lord and Master
18 to unself mortality and to destroy its erroneous claims.
 Therefore, said Jesus, "Ye shall drink indeed of my
 cup, and be baptized with the baptism that I am
21 baptized with."

 We cannot boast ourselves of to-morrow; sufficient unto
 each day is the duty thereof. Lest human reason becloud
24 spiritual understanding, say not in thy heart: Sickness is
 possible because one's thought and conduct do not afford
 a sufficient defence against it. Trust in God, and "He
27 shall direct thy paths." When evil was avenging itself on
 its destroyer, his preeminent goodness, the Godlike man
 said, "My burden is light." Only he who learns through
30 meekness and love the falsity of supposititious life and
 intelligence in matter, can triumph over their ultimatum,
 sin, suffering, and death.


Page 162


1 God's mercy for mortal ignorance and need is assured;
 then who shall question our want of more faith in His
3 "very present help in trouble"? Jesus said: "Suffer
 it to be so now: for thus it becometh us to fulfil all
 righteousness."

6 Strength is in man, not in muscles; unity and power are
 not in atom or in dust. A small group of wise
 thinkers is better than a wilderness of dullards and stronger than
9 the might of empires. Unity is spiritual cooperation,
 heart to heart, the bond of blessedness such as my beloved
 Christian Scientists all over the field, and the dear Sun-
12 day School children, have demonstrated in gifts to me
 of about eighty thousand dollars, to be applied to build-
 ing, embellishing, and furnishing our church edifice in
15 Concord, N. H.

 We read in Holy Writ: "This man began to build, and
 was not able to finish." This was spoken derisively.
18 But the love that rebukes praises also, and methinks the
 same wisdom which spake thus in olden time would say
 to the builder of the Christian Scientists' church edifice
21 in Concord: "Well done, good and faithful." Our proper
 reason for church edifices is, that in them Christians may
 worship God, β€” not that Christians may worship church
24 edifices!

 May the loving Shepherd of this feeble flock lead it
 gently into "green pastures . . . beside the still waters."
27 May He increase its members, and may their faith never
 falter — their faith in and their understanding of divine
 Love. This church, born in my nativity, may it build
30 upon the rock of ages against which the waves and winds
 beat in vain. May the towering top of its goodly temple
 β€” burdened with beauty, pointing to the heavens, bursting


Page 163


1 into the rapture of song — long call the worshipper to
 seek the haven of hope, the heaven of Soul, the sweet sense
3 of angelic song chiming chaste challenge to praise him who
 won the way and taught mankind to win through meekness
 to might, goodness to grandeur, from cross to crown,
6 from sense to Soul, from gleam to glory, from matter to
 Spirit.



 ANNOUNCEMENT


9 Not having the time to receive all the beloved ones who
 have so kindly come to the dedication of this church, I
 must not allow myself the pleasure of receiving any of
12 them. I always try to be just, if not generous; and I
 cannot show my love for them in social ways without
 neglecting the sacred demands on my time and attention
15 for labors which I think do them more good.



 A KINDLY GREETING


 Dear Editor: β€” When I removed from Boston in 1889
18 and came to Concord, N. H., it was that I might find
 retirement from many years of incessant labor for the
 Cause of Christian Science, and the opportunity in Con-
21 cord's quiet to revise our textbook, "Science and Health
 with Key to the Scriptures." Here let me add that,
 together with the retirement I so much coveted, I have
24 also received from the leading people of this pleasant city
 all and more than I anticipated. I love its people β€”
 love their scholarship, friendship, and granite char-
27 acter. I respect their religious beliefs, and thank their
 ancestors for helping to form mine. The movement of
 establishing in this city a church of our faith was far from


Page 165


1 my purpose, when I came here, knowing that such an
 effort would involve a lessening of the retirement I so
3 much desired. But the demand increased, and I con-
 sented, hoping thereby to give to many in this city a
 church home.



 ACKNOWLEDGMENT OF GIFTS



 To the Chicago Churches


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” I have yearned to express my
9 thanks for your munificent gift to First Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Concord, of ten thousand dollars. What is
 gratitude but a powerful camera obscura, a thing focus-
12 ing light where love, memory, and all within the human
 heart is present to manifest light.

 Is it not a joy to compare the beginning of Christian
15 Science in Chicago with its present prosperity? Now
 [1904] six dear churches are there, the members of which
 not only possess a sound faith, but that faith also possesses
18 them. A great sanity, a mighty something buried in the
 depths of the unseen, has wrought a resurrection among
 you, and has leaped into living love. What is this
21 something, this phoenix fire, this pillar by day, kindling,
 guiding, and guarding your way? It is unity, the bond
 of perfectness, the thousandfold expansion that will
24 engirdle the world, β€” unity, which unfolds the thought
 most within us into the greater and better, the sum of
 all reality and good.

27 This unity is reserved wisdom and strength. It builds
 upon the rock, against which envy, enmity, or malice
 beat in vain. Man lives, moves, and has his being in God,
30 Love. Then man must live, he cannot die; and Love


Page 165


1 must necessarily promote and pervade all his success.
 Of two things fate cannot rob us; namely, of choos-
3 ing the best, and of helping others thus to choose.
 But in doing this the Master became the servant. The
 grand must stoop to the menial. There is scarcely an
6 indignity which I have not endured for the cause of
 Christ, Truth, and I returned blessing for cursing. The
 best help the worst; the righteous suffer for the unright-
9 eous; and by this spirit man lives and thrives, and by
 it God governs.



 To First Church of Christ, Scientist, New York


12 Beloved Brethren: β€” I beg to thank the dear brethren of
 this church for the sum of ten thousand dollars presented
 to me for First Church of Christ, Scientist, in Concord,
15 N. H. Goodness never fails to receive its reward, for
 goodness makes life a blessing. As an active portion of
 one stupendous whole, goodness identifies man with
18 universal good. Thus may each member of this church
 rise above the oft-repeated inquiry, What am I? to the
 scientific response: I am able to impart truth, health, and
21 happiness, and this is my rock of salvation and my reason
 for existing.

 Human reason becomes tired and calls for rest. It has
24 a relapse into the common hope. Goodness and benevo-
 lence never tire. They maintain themselves and others
 and never stop from exhaustion. He who is afraid of
27 being too generous has lost the power of being magnani-
 mous. The best man or woman is the most unselfed.
 God grant that this church is rapidly nearing the maxi-
30 mum of might, β€” the means that build to the heavens,
 β€” that it has indeed found and felt the infinite source


Page 166


1 where is all, and from which it can help its neighbor.
 Then efforts to be great will never end in anarchy but
3 will continue with divine approbation. It is insincerity
 and a half-persuaded faith that fail to succeed and fall
 to the earth.

6 Religions may waste away, but the fittest survives;
 and so long as we have the right ideal, life is worth living
 and God takes care of our life.



9   To The Mother Church


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Your munificent gift of ten
 thousand dollars, with which to furnish First Church of
12 Christ, Scientist, of Concord, N. H., with an organ, is
 positive proof of your remembrance and love. Days of
 shade and shine may come and go, but we will live on and
15 never drift apart. Life's ills are its chief recompense;
 they develop hidden strength. Had I never suffered for
 The Mother Church, neither she nor I would be practising
18 the virtues that lie concealed in the smooth seasons and
 calms of human existence. When we are willing to help
 and to be helped, divine aid is near. If all our years were
21 holidays, sport would be more irksome than work. So,
 my dear ones, let us together sing the old-new song of
 salvation, and let our measure of time and joy be spiritual,
24 not material.



 To First Church of Christ, Scientist,


 New London, Conn.


27 Beloved Brethren: β€” I am for the first time informed of
 your gift to me of a beautiful cabinet, costing one hundred
 and seventy-five dollars, for my books, placed in my room
30 at First Church of Christ, Scientist, Concord, N. H.


Page 167


1 Accept my deep thanks therefor, and especially for the
 self-sacrifice it may have cost the dear donors.

3 The mysticism of good is unknown to the flesh, for
 goodness is "the fruit of the Spirit." The suppositional
 world within us separates us from the spiritual world,
6 which is apart from matter, and unites us to one another.
 Spirit teaches us to resign what we are not and to un-
 derstand what we are in the unity of Spirit — in that
9 Love which is faithful, an ever-present help in trouble,
 which never deserts us.

 I pray that heaven's messages of "on earth peace, good
12 will toward men," may fill your hearts and leave their
 loving benedictions upon your lives.



 THANKSGIVING DAY, 1904


15 Beloved Students: β€” May this, your first Thanksgiv-
 ing Day, according to time-tables, in our new church
 edifice, be one acceptable in His sight, and full of love,
18 peace, and good will for yourselves, your flock, and the
 race. Give to all the dear ones my love, and my
 prayer for their health, happiness, and holiness this
21 and every day.



 RELIGIOUS FREEDOM


 Beloved Brethren: β€” Allow me to send forth a paean
24 of praise for the noble disposal of the legislative question
 as to the infringement of rights and privileges guaran-
 teed to you by the laws of my native State. The con-
27 stituted religious rights in New Hampshire will, I trust,
 never be marred by the illegitimate claims of envy,
 jealousy, or persecution.

30 In our country the day of heathenism, illiberal views,


Page 168


1 or of an uncultivated understanding has passed. Free-
 dom to worship God according to the dictates of en-
3 lightened conscience, and practical religion in agreement
 with the demand of our common Christ, the Holy One
 of Israel, are forever the privileges of the people of my
6 dear old New Hampshire.

 Lovingly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

9 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 April 12, 1909

CHAPTER VII β€” PLEASANT VIEW AND CONCORD, N. H.

Page 169



1 INVITATION TO CONCORD, JULY 4, 1897


 MY BELOVED CHURCH: β€” I invite you, one and all,
3 to Pleasant View, Concord, N. H., on July 5, at
 12.30 P.M., if you would enjoy so long a trip for so small
 a purpose as simply seeing Mother.

6   My precious Busy Bees, under twelve years of age,
 are requested to visit me at a later date, which I hope
 soon to name to them.

9        With love, Mother,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
12    June 30, 1897



 [New York Journal]


 VISIT TO CONCORD, 1901


15 Please say through the New York Journal, to the
 Christian Scientists of New York City and of the world
 at large, that I was happy to receive at Concord, N. H.,
18 the call of about three thousand believers of my faith,
 and that I was rejoiced at the appropriate beauty of
 time and place which greeted them.


Page 170


1 I am especially desirous that it should be understood
 that this was no festal occasion, no formal church cere-
3 monial, but simply my acquiescence in the request of my
 church members that they might see the Leader of Chris-
 tian Science.

6 The brevity of my remarks was due to a desire on my
 part that the important sentiments uttered in my annual
 Message to the church last Sunday should not be confused
9 with other issues, but should be emphasized in the minds
 of all present here in Concord.



 ADDRESS AT PLEASANT VIEW, JUNE, 1903


12 Beloved Brethren: β€” Welcome home! To your home
 in my heart! Welcome to Pleasant View, but not
 to varying views. I would present a gift to you
15 to-day, only that this gift is already yours. God hath
 given it to all mankind. It is His coin, His currency;
 it has His image and superscription. This gift is a
18 passage of Scripture; it is my sacred motto, and it
 reads thus: β€”

 "Trust in the Lord, and do good; so shalt thou dwell
21 in in the land, and verily thou shalt be fed. Delight thyself
 also in the Lord; and He shall give thee the desires of thine
 heart. Commit thy way unto the Lord; trust also in
24 Him; and He shall bring it to pass. And He shall bring
 forth thy righteousness as the light, and thy judgment
 as the noonday."

27 Beloved, some of you have come long distances to kneel
 with us in sacred silence in blest communion — unity of
 faith, understanding, prayer, and praise — and to return
30 in joy, bearing your sheaves with you. In parting I


Page 171


1 repeat to these dear members of my church: Trust in
 Truth, and have no other trusts.

3 To-day is fulfilled the prophecy of Isaiah: "And the
 ransomed of the Lord shall return, and come to Zion
 with songs and everlasting joy upon their heads: they
6 shall obtain joy and gladness, and sorrow and sigh-
 ing shall flee away."



 VISIT TO CONCORD, 1904


9   Beloved Students: β€” The new Concord church is so
 nearly completed that I think you would enjoy seeing it.
 Therefore I hereby invite all my church communicants
12 who attend this communion, to come to Concord, and
 view this beautiful structure, at two o'clock in the after-
 noon, Monday, June 13, 1904.

15     Lovingly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
18    June 11, 1904



 The Day in Concord


 While on her regular afternoon drive Mrs. Eddy re-
21 sponded graciously to the silent greetings of the people
 who were assembled on the lawn of the Unitarian church
 and of the high school. Her carriage came to a stand-
24 still on North State Street, and she was greeted in behalf
 of the church by the President, Mr. E. P. Bates, to
 whom she presented as a love-token for the church a
27 handsome rosewood casket beautifully bound with bur-
 nished brass.

 The casket contained a gavel for the use of the


Page 172


1 President of The Mother Church. The wood of the head
 of the gavel was taken from the old Yale College Athe-
3 naeum, the first chapel of the college. It was built in
 1761, and razed in 1893 to make room for Vanderbilt
 Hall. The wood in the handle was grown on the farm
6 of Mark Baker, father of the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy,
 at Bow, N. H.

 In presenting this gavel to President Bates, Mrs. Eddy
9 spoke as follows to the members of her church, The First
 Church of Christ, Scientist, Boston, Mass.: β€”


 "My Beloved Brethren: β€” Permit me to present to you
12 a little gift that has no intrinsic value save that which it
 represents — namely, a material symbol of my spiritual
 call to this my beloved church of over thirty thousand
15 members; and this is that call: In the words of our great
 Master, 'Go ye into all the world,' 'heal the sick,' cast
 out evil, disease, and death; 'Freely ye have received,
18 freely give.' You will please accept my thanks for your
 kind, expert call on me."


 In reply Mr. Bates said, β€”


21 "I accept this gift in behalf of the church, and for
 myself and my successors in office."


 The box containing the gavel was opened the following
24 day in Boston at the annual meeting of The Mother
 Church of Christ, Scientist, and the enclosed note from
 Mrs. Eddy was read: β€”


27 "My Beloved Brethren: β€” You will please accept
 from me the accompanying gift as a simple token of
 love."


Page 173



 CARD OF THANKS


 The following letter appeared in the Concord (N. H.)
3 newspapers after the visit of the Christian Scientists in
 1904: β€”


 Dear Mr. Editor: β€” Allow me through your paper to
6 thank the citizens of Concord for the generous hospi-
 tality extended yesterday to the members of my church,
 The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston.

9 After the Christian Science periodicals had given notice
 that no preparations would be made for a large gathering
 at this annual meeting of The Mother Church, I scarcely
12 supposed that a note, sent at the last moment, would bring
 thousands here yesterday; but as many gifts had come
 from Christian Scientists everywhere to help furnish and
15 beautify our new church building in Concord, it came to
 me: Why not invite those who attend the communion
 in Boston to take a peep at this church edifice on the day
18 when there are no formal exercises at the denominational
 headquarters? The number of visitors, about four thou-
 sand, exceeded my expectation, and my heart welcomed
21 each and all. It was a glad day for me — sweet to observe
 with what unanimity my fellow-citizens vied with each
 other to make the Christian Scientists' short stay so
24 pleasant.

 Special thanks are due and are hereby tendered to his
 Honor, the Mayor, for arranging the details and allowing
27 the visitors to assemble on the green surrounding the high
 school; also to Mr. George D. Waldron, chairman of the
 prudential committee of the Unitarian church, and to his
30 colaborers on said committee and to the church itself,
 for their kindly foresight in granting permission, not only


Page 174


 to use the beautiful lawn surrounding their church build-
 ing, but also for throwing open their doors for the com-
3 fort and convenience of the Christian Scientists during
 the day. The wide-spreading elms and soft greensward
 proved an ideal meeting place. I greatly appreciate the
6 courtesy extended to my friends by the Wonolancet Club
 in again opening their spacious club-house to them on this
 occasion; and the courtesy of the efficient city marshal
9 and his staff of police extended to me throughout. And
 last but not least, I thank the distinguished editors in my
 home city for their reports of the happy occasion.



 TO FIRST CONGREGATIONAL CHURCH


 To the Rev. Franklin D. Ayer, D.D., Pastor Emeritus; the Rev.
 George H. Reed, Pastor of the First Congregational Church,
15 Concord, N. H., Edward A. Moulton, John C. Thorne, William P.
 Ballard, Henry K. Morrison, Deacons.


 Beloved Brethren: β€” I have the pleasure of thanking
18 you for your kind invitation to attend the one hun-
 dred and seventy-fifth anniversary of our time-honored
 First Congregational Church in Concord, N. H., where
21 my parents first offered me to Christ in infant baptism.
 For nearly forty years and until I had a church of my
 own, I was a member of the Congregational Church in
24 Tilton, N. H.

 To-day my soul can only sing and soar. An increas-
 ing sense of God's love, omnipresence, and omnipotence
27 enfolds me. Each day I know Him nearer, love Him
 more, and humbly pray to serve Him better. Thus
 seeking and finding (though feebly), finally may we not
30 together rejoice in the church triumphant?


Page 175


1 I would love to be with you at this deeply interesting
 anniversary, but my little church in Boston, Mass., of
3 thirty-six thousand communicants, together with the
 organizations connected therewith, requires my constant
 attention and time, with the exception of a daily drive.
6 Please accept the enclosed check for five hundred
 dollars, to aid in repairing your church building.

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
9   November 14, 1905



 GREETINGS


 Allow me to say to the good folk of Concord that the
12 growth and prosperity of our city cheer me. Its dear
 churches, reliable editors, intelligent medical faculty,
 up-to-date academies, humane institutions, provisions
15 for the army, and well-conducted jail and state prison, β€” if,
 indeed, such must remain with us a little longer, β€” speak
 for themselves. Our picturesque city, however, greatly
18 needs improved streets. May I ask in behalf of the public
 this favor of our city government; namely, to macadam-
 ize a portion of Warren Street and to macadamize North
21 State Street throughout?

 Sweeter than the balm of Gilead, richer than the
 diamonds of Golconda, dear as the friendship of those
24 we love, are justice, fraternity, and Christian charity.
 The song of my soul must remain so long as I remain.
 Let brotherly love continue.

27 I am sure that the counterfeit letters in circulation,
 purporting to have my signature, must fail to influence the
 minds of this dear people to conclusions the very opposite
30 of my real sentiments.


Page 176



 TO FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, WILMINGTON, N. C.


3 IN APPRECIATION OF A GIFT OF FIFTY DOLLARS IN GOLD TOWARDS
 THE CONCORD (N. H.) STREET FUND


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Long ago you of the dear
6 South paved the way to my forever gratitude, and now
 illustrate the past by your present love. God grant
 that such great goodness, pointing the path to heaven
9 within you, hallow your Palmetto home with palms of
 victory and songs of glory.

CHAPTER VIII β€” DEDICATORY MESSAGES TO BRANCH CHURCHES

Page 177



1 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,


 of CHICAGO, ILL.


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” Most happily would I com-
 ply with your cordial invitation and be with you on
 so interesting an occasion as the dedication of First
6 Church of Christ, Scientist, in Chicago. But daily duties
 attention elsewhere, and I am glad to say that
 there seems to be no special need of my personal pres-
9 ence at your religious jubilee. I am quite able to take
 the trip to your city, and if wisdom lengthens my sum
 of years to fourscore (already imputed to me), I shall
12 then be even younger and nearer the eternal meridian
 than now, for the true knowledge and proof of life is in
 putting off the limitations and putting on the possibilities
15 and permanence of Life.

 In your renowned city, the genesis of Christian Science
 was allied to that olden axiom: "The blood of the martyrs
18 is the seed of the Church;" but succeeding years show in
 livid lines that the great Shepherd has nurtured and
 nourished this church as a fatling of the flock. To-day
21 the glory of His presence rests upon it, the joy of many
 generations awaits it, and this prophecy of Isaiah is
 fulfilled among you: "I will direct their work in truth,
24 and I will make an everlasting covenant with them."


Page 178


1 Your Bible and your textbook, pastor and ethical
 tenets, do not mislead the seeker after Truth. These
3 unpretentious preachers cloud not the spiritual meaning
 of Holy Writ by material interpretations, nor lose the
 invincible process and purity of Christianity whereby
6 the sick are healed and sinners saved. The Science of
 Christianity is not generally understood, but it hastens
 hourly to this end. This Science is the essence of religion,
9 distilled in the laboratory of infinite Love and prepared
 for all peoples. And because Science is naturally divine,
 is this natural Science less profitable or scientific than
12 "counting the legs of insects"? The Scripture declares
 that God is All. Then all is Spirit and spiritual. The
 true sense of life is lost to those who regard being
15 as material. The Scripture pronounces all that God
 made "good;" therefore if evil exists, it exists without
 God. But this is impossible in reality, for He made
18 all "that was made." Hence the inevitable revelation
 of Christian Science — that evil is unreal; and this is
 the best of it.

21 On April 15, 1891, the Christian Science textbook lay
 on a table in a burning building. A Christian Scientist
 entered the house through a window and snatched this
24 book from the flames. Instantly the table sank a charred
 mass. The covers of the book were burned up, but not
 one word in the book was effaced. If the world were in
27 ashes, the contents of "Science and Health with Key to
 the Scriptures" would remain immortal.

 It is said that the nearest approach to the sayings of
30 the great Master is the Logia of Papias, written in A.D.
 145, and that all else reported as his sayings are transla-
 tions. The ancient Logia, or imputed sayings of Jesus


Page 179


1 by Papias, are undoubtedly the beginning of the gospel
 writings. The synoptic Scriptures, as set forth in the
3 first and second chapters of Genesis, were in two dis-
 tinct manuscripts. The first gave an account of the
 spiritual creation, and the second was an opposite story,
6 or allegory, of a material universe and man made of
 dust. In this allegorical document the power and pre-
 rogative of Spirit are submerged in matter. In other
9 words, soul enters non-intelligent dust and man becomes
 both good and evil, both mind and matter, mortal and
 immortal, β€” all of which divine Science shows to be an
12 impossibility.

 The Old and the New Testaments contain self-evident
 truths that cannot be lost, but being translations, the
15 Scriptures are criticized. Some dangerous skepticism ex-
 ists as to the verification of our Master's sayings. But
 Christians and Christian Scientists know that if the Old
18 Testament and gospel narratives had never been written,
 the nature of Christianity, as depicted in the life of our
 Lord, and the truth in the Scriptures, are sufficient to au-
21 thenticate Christ's Christianity as the perfect ideal. The
 character of the Nazarene Prophet illustrates the Prin-
 ciple and practice of a true divinity and humanity. The
24 different renderings or translations of Scripture in no
 wise affect Christian Science. Christianity and Science,
 being contingent on nothing written and based on the
27 divine Principle of being, must be, are, irrefutable and
 eternal.

 We are indeed privileged in having the untranslated
30 revelations of Christian Science. They afford such expo-
 sitions of the therapeutics, ethics, and Christianity of
 Christ as make even God demonstrable, the divine Love


Page 180


 practical, and so furnish rules whereby man can prove
 God's love, healing the sick and the sinner.

3 Whosoever understands Christian Science knows beyond
 a doubt that its life-giving truths were preached and
 practised in the first century by him who proved their
6 practicality, who uttered Christ's Sermon on the Mount,
 who taught his disciples the healing Christianity which
 applies to all ages, and who dated time. A spiritual
9 understanding of the Scriptures restores their origi-
 nal tongue in the language of Spirit, that primordial
 standard of Truth.

12 Christian Science contains no element whatever of hyp-
 notism or animal magnetism. It appeals alone to God, to
 the divine Principle, or Life, Truth, and Love, to whom
15 all things are possible; and this Principle heals sin, sick-
 ness, disease, and death. Christian Science meets error
 with Truth, death with Life, hate with Love, and thus,
18 and only thus, does it overcome evil and heal disease.
 The obstinate sinner, however, refuses to see this grand
 verity or to acknowledge it, for he knows not that in justice,
21 as well as in mercy, God is Love.

 In our struggles with sin and sinners, when we drop
 compliance with their desires, insist on what we know is
24 right, and act accordingly, the disguised or the self-
 satisfied mind, not ready to be uplifted, rebels, miscon-
 strues our best motives, and calls them unkind. But this
27 is the cross. Take it up, β€” it wins the crown; and in
 the spirit of our great Exemplar pray: "Father, forgive
 them; for they know not what they do."

30 No warfare exists between divine theology and Christian
 Science, for the latter solves the whence and why of the
 cosmos and defines noumenon and phenomena spiritually,


Page 181


1 not materially. The specific quest of Christian Science is
 to settle all points beyond cavil, on the Biblical basis that
3 God is All-in-all; whereas philosophy and so-called natural
 science, dealing with human hypotheses, or material cause
 and effect, are aided only at long intervals with elementary
6 truths, and ultimate in unsolved problems and outgrown,
 proofless positions.

 Progress is spiritual. Progress is the maturing concep-
9 tion of divine Love; it demonstrates the scientific, sinless
 life of man and mortal's painless departure from matter
 to Spirit, not through death, but through the true idea of
12 Life, β€” and Life not in matter but in Mind.

 The Puritans possessed the motive of true religion,
 which, demonstrated on the Golden Rule, would have
15 solved ere this the problem of religious liberty and human
 rights. It is "a consummation devoutly to be wished"
 that all nations shall speedily learn and practise the
18 intermediate line of justice between the classes and masses
 of mankind, and thus exemplify in all things the universal
 equity of Christianity.

21 Thirty years ago (1866) Christian Science was discovered
 in America. Within those years it is estimated that
 Chicago has gained from a population of 238,000 to the
24 number of 1,650,000 inhabitants.

 The statistics of mortality show that thirty years ago
 the death-rate was at its maximum. Since that time it
27 has steadily decreased. It is authentically said that one
 expositor of Daniel's dates fixed the year 1866 or 1867 for
 the return of Christ — the return of the spiritual idea to
30 the material earth or antipode of heaven. It is a marked
 coincidence that those dates were the first two years of
 my discovery of Christian Science.


Page 182


 Thirty years ago Chicago had few Congregational
 churches. To-day it is said to have a majority of these
3 churches over any other city in the United States. Thirty
 years ago at my request I received from the Congrega-
 tional Church a letter of dismissal and recommendation
6 to evangelical churches — thenceforth to exemplify my
 early love for this church and a membership of thirty
 years by establishing a new-old church, the foundations
9 of which are the same, even Christ, Truth, as the chief
 corner-stone.

 In 1884, I taught a class in Christian Science and
12 formed a Christian Scientist Association in Chicago.
 From this small sowing of the seed of Truth, which, when
 sown, seemed the least among seeds, sprang immortal
15 fruits through God's blessing and the faithful labor of
 loyal students, β€” the healing of the sick, the reforming
 of the sinner, and First Church of Christ, Scientist, with
18 its large membership and majestic cathedral.

 Humbly, gratefully, trustingly, I dedicate this beauti-
 ful house of worship to the God of Israel, the divine
21 Love that reigns above the shadow, that launched the
 earth in its orbit, that created and governs the universe β€”
 guarding, guiding, giving grace, health, and immortality
24 to man.

 May the wanderer in the wilderness of mortal beliefs
 and fears turn hither with satisfied hope. May the birds
27 of passage rest their weary wings amid the fair foliage of
 this vine of His husbanding, find shelter from the storm
 and a covert from the tempest. May this beloved
30 church adhere to its tenets, abound in the righteousness
 of Love, honor the name of Christian Science, prove the
 practicality of perfection, and press on to the infinite


Page 183


1 uses of Christ's creed, namely, β€” "Thou shalt love the
 Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul,
3 and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and
 thy neighbor as thyself." Thus may First Church of
 Christ, Scientist, in this great city of Chicago, verify what
6 John Robinson wrote in 1620 to our Pilgrim Fathers:
 "When Christ reigns, and not till then, will the world
 have rest."



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 LONDON, ENGLAND


 Beloved Brethren across the Sea: β€” To-day a nation is
12 born. Spiritual apprehension unfolds, transfigures, heals.
 With you be there no more sea, no ebbing faith, no night.
 Love be thy light upon the mountain of Israel. God
15 will multiply thee.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 BROOKLYN, N. Y.


18 Beloved Brethren: β€” I rejoice with you; the day has
 come when the forest becomes a fruitful field, and the deaf
 hear the words of the Book, and the eyes of the blind see
21 out of obscurity.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 DETROIT, MICH.


24 Beloved Students and Church: β€” Thanks for invitation
 to your dedication. Not afar off I am blending with
 thine my prayer and rejoicing. God is with thee. "Arise,
27 shine; for thy light is come, and the glory of the Lord is
 risen upon thee."


Page 184



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 TORONTO, CANADA


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” Have just received your des-
 patch. Since the world was, men have not heard with
 the ear, neither hath the eye seen, what God hath prepared
6 for them that wait upon Him and work righteousness.



 WHITE MOUNTAIN CHURCH


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” To-day I am privileged to
9 congratulate the Christian Scientists of my native State
 upon having built First Church of Christ, Scientist, at
 the the Mountains. Your kind card, inviting me to
12 be present at at dedication, came when I was so occu-
 pied that I omitted to wire an acknowledgment thereof
 and to return my cordial thanks at an earlier date. The
15 beautiful birch bark on which it was written pleased me;
 it was so characteristic of our Granite State, and I
 treasure it next to your compliments. That rustic scroll
18 brought back to me the odor of my childhood, a love
 which stays the shadows of years. God grant that this
 little church shall prove a historic gem on the glowing
21 records of Christianity, and lay upon its altars a sacrifice
 and service acceptable in God's sight.

 Your rural chapel is a social success quite sacred in its
24 results. The prosperity of Zion is very precious in the
 sight of divine Love, holding unwearied watch over a
 world. Isaiah said: "How beautiful upon the mountains
27 are the feet of him that bringeth good tidings, . . . that
 saith unto Zion, Thy God reigneth!" Surely, the Word
 that is God must at some time find utterance and accept-


Page 185


1 ance throughout the earth, for he that soweth shall reap.
 To such as have waited patiently for the appearing of
3 Truth, the day dawns and the harvest bells are ringing.


 "Let us, then, be up and doing,
 With a heart for any fate;
6 Still achieving, still pursuing,
 Learn to labor and to wait."


 The peace of Love is published, and the sword of the
9 Spirit is drawn; nor will it be sheathed till Truth shall
 reign triumphant over all the earth. Truth, Life, and
 Love are formidable, wherever thought, felt, spoken, or
12 written, β€” in the pulpit, in the court-room, by the way-
 side, or in our homes. They are the victors never to be
 vanquished. Love is the generic term for God. Love
15 formed this trinity, Truth, Life, Love, the trinity no man
 can sunder. Life is the spontaneity of Love, inseparable
 from Love, and Life is the "Lamb slain from the foun-
18 dation of the world," β€” even that which "was dead, and
 is alive again; and was lost, and is found;" for Life is
 Christ, and Christ, as aforetime, heals the sick, saves
21 sinners, and destroys the last enemy, death.

 In 1888 I visited these mountains and spoke to an
 attentive audience collected in the hall at the Fabyan
24 House. Then and there I foresaw this hour, and spoke
 of the little church to be in the midst of the mountains,
 closing my remarks with the words of Mrs. Hemans: β€”


27    For the strength of the hills, we bless Thee,
 Our God, our fathers' God!


 The sons and daughters of the Granite State are rich in
30 signs and symbols, sermons in stones, refuge in mountains,


Page 186


1 and good universal. The rocks, rills, mountains, meadows,
 fountains, and forests of our native State should be 3  prophetic of the finger divine that writes in living char-
 acters their lessons on our lives. May God's little ones
 cluster around this rock-ribbed church like tender nestlings
6 in the crannies of the rocks, and preen their thoughts for
 upward flight.

 Though neither dome nor turret tells the tale of your
9 little church, its song and sermon will touch the heart,
 point the path above the valley, up the mountain, and on
 to the celestial hills, echoing the Word welling up from
12 the infinite and swelling the loud anthem of one Father-
 Mother God, o'er all victorious! Rest assured that He
 in whom dwelleth all life, health, and holiness, will supply
15 all your needs according to His riches in glory.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 DULUTH, MINN.


18 First Church of Christ, Scientist, Duluth, Minn.: β€” May
 our God make this church the fold of flocks, and may
 those that plant the vineyard eat the fruit thereof. Here
21 let His promise be verified: "Before they call, I will
 answer; and while they are yet speaking, I will hear."



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 SALT LAKE CITY, UTAH


 Beloved Brethren: β€” Accept my thanks for your cordial
 card inviting me to be with you on the day of your church
27 dedication. It gives me great pleasure to know that
 you have erected a Church of Christ, Scientist, in your


Page 187


1 city. Surely, your fidelity, faith, and Christian zeal
 fairly indicate that, spiritually as well as literally, the
3 church in Salt Lake City hath not lost its saltness. I
 may at some near future visit your city, but am too busy
 to think of doing so at present.

6 May the divine light of Christian Science that lighteth
 every enlightened thought illumine your faith and under-
 standing, exclude all darkness or doubt, and signal the
9 perfect path wherein to walk, the perfect Principle whereby
 to demonstrate the perfect man and the perfect law of
 God. In the words of St. Paul: "Now the end of the
12 commandment is charity out of a pure heart, and of a
 good conscience, and of faith unfeigned;" and St. John
 says: "For this is the message that ye heard from the
15 beginning, that we should love one another."

 May the grace and love of God be and abide with
 you all.

18 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 November 16, 1898



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 ATLANTA, GEORGIA


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” You have met to conse-
 crate your beautiful temple to the worship of the only
24 true God. Since the day in which you were brought into
 the light and liberty of His children, it has been in the
 hearts of this people to build a house unto Him whose
27 name they would glorify in a new commandment β€”
 "that ye love one another." In this new recognition of
 the riches of His love and the majesty of His might you
30 have built this house — laid its foundations on the rock


Page 188


1 of Christ, and the stone which the builders rejected you
 have made the head of the corner. This house is hallowed
3 by His promise: "I have hallowed this house, which thou
 hast built, to put my name there forever; and mine eyes
 and mine heart shall be there perpetually." "Now mine
6 eyes shall be open, and mine ears attent unto the prayer
 that is made in this place." Your feast days will not be
 in commemoration, but in recognition of His presence;
9 your ark of the covenant will not be brought out of the
 city of David, but out of "the secret place of the most
 High," whereof the Psalmist sang, even the omniscience
12 of omnipotence; your tabernacle of the congregation will
 not be temporary, but a "house not made with hands,
 eternal in the heavens;" your oracle, under the wings of
15 the cherubim, is Truth's evangel, enunciating, "God is
 Love."

 In spirit I enter your inner sanctuary, your heart's
18 heart, breathing a benediction for God's largess. He
 surely will not shut me out from your presence, and the
 ponderous walls of your grand cathedral cannot prevent
21 me from entering where the heart of a Southron has
 welcomed me.

 Christian Science has a place in its court, in which, like
24 beds in hospitals, one man's head lies at another's feet.
 As you work, the ages win; for the majesty of Christian
 Science teaches the majesty of man. When it is learned
27 that spiritual sense and not the material senses convey all
 impressions to man, man will naturally seek the Science of
 his spiritual nature, and finding it, be God-endowed for
30 discipleship.

 When divine Love gains admittance to a humble heart,
 that individual ascends the scale of miracles and meets the


Page 189


1 warmest wish of men and angels. Clad in invincible
 armor, grasping the sword of Spirit, you have started in
3 this sublime ascent, and should reach the mount of revela-
 tion; for if ye would run, who shall hinder you? So dear,
 so due, to God is obedience, that it reaches high heaven
6 in the common walks of life, and it affords even me a
 perquisite of joy.

 You worship no distant deity, nor talk of unknown
9 love. The silent prayers of our churches, resounding
 through the dim corridors of time, go forth in waves of
 sound, a diapason of heart-beats, vibrating from one
12 pulpit to another and from one heart to another, till
 truth and love, commingling in one righteous prayer,
 shall encircle and cement the human race.

15 The government of divine Love derives its omnipotence
 from the love it creates in the heart of man; for love is
 allegiant, and there is no loyalty apart from love. When
18 the human senses wake from their long slumber to see how
 soon earth's fables flee and faith grows wearisome, then
 that which defies decay and satisfies the immortal cravings
21 is sought and found. In the twilight of the world's
 pageantry, in the last-drawn sigh of a glory gone, we are
 drawn towards God.

24 Beloved brethren, I cannot forget that yours is the first
 church edifice of our denomination erected in the sunny
 South — once my home. There my husband died, and
27 the song and the dirge, surging my being, gave expression
 to a poem written in 1844, from which I copy this verse: β€”


 Friends, why throng in pity round me?
30     Wherefore, pray, the bell did toll?
 Dead is he who loved me dearly:
 Am I not alone in soul?


Page 190


1 Did that midnight shadow, falling upon the bridal
 wreath, bring the recompense of human woe, which is the
3 merciful design of divine Love, and so help to evolve that
 larger sympathy for suffering humanity which is eman-
 cipating it with the morning beams and noonday glory of
6 Christian Science?

 The age is fast answering this question: Does Christian
 Science equal materia medica in healing the worst forms
9 of contagious and organic diseases? My experience in
 both practices β€” materia medica and the scientific meta-
 physical practice of medicine — shows the latter not only
12 equalling but vastly excelling the former.

 Christians who accept our Master as authority, regard
 his sayings as infallible. Jesus' students, failing to cure a
15 severe case of lunacy, asked their great Teacher, "Why
 could not we cast him out?" He answered, "This kind
 goeth not out but by prayer and fasting." This declara-
18 tion of our Master, as to the relative value, skill, and
 certainty of the divine laws of Mind over the human
 mind and above matter in healing disease, remains beyond
21 questioning a divine decision in behalf of Mind.

 Jesus gave his disciples (students) power over all manner
 of diseases; and the Bible was written in order that all
24 peoples, in all ages, should have the same opportunity to
 become students of the Christ, Truth, and thus become
 God-endued with power (knowledge of divine law) and
27 with "signs following." Jesus declared that his teaching
 and practice would remain, even as it did, "for them also
 which shall believe on me through their word." Then,
30 in the name of God, wherefore vilify His prophets to-day
 who are fulfilling Jesus' prophecy and verifying his last
 promise, "Lo, I am with you alway"? It were well for


Page 191


1 the world if there survived more of the wisdom of Nico-
 demus of old, who said, "No man can do these miracles
3 that thou doest, except God be with him."

 Be patient towards persecution. Injustice has not a
 tithe of the power of justice. Your enemies will advertise
6 for you. Christian Science is spreading steadily through-
 out the world. Persecution is the weakness of tyrants
 engendered by their fear, and love will cast it out. Con-
9 tinue steadfast in love and good works. Children of
 light, you are not children of darkness. Let your light
 shine. Keep in mind the foundations of Christian
12 Science — one God and one Christ. Keep personality
 out of sight, and Christ's "Blessed are ye" will seal your
 apostleship.

15 This glad Easter morning witnesseth a risen Saviour, a
 higher human sense of Life and Love, which wipes away
 all tears. With grave-clothes laid aside, Christ, Truth, has
18 come forth from the tomb of the past, clad in immortality.
 The sepulchres give up their dead. Spirit is saying unto
 matter: I am not there, am not within you. Behold the
21 place where they laid me; but human thought has risen!
 Mortality's thick gloom is pierced. The stone is rolled
 away. Death has lost its sting, and the grave its victory.
24 Immortal courage fills the human breast and lights the
 living way of Life.



 SECOND CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 CHICAGO, ILL.


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Your card of invitation to this
 feast of soul — the dedication of your church — was duly
30 received. Accept my thanks.


Page 192


1 Ye sit not in the idol's temple. Ye build not to an
 unknown God. Ye worship Him whom ye serve. Boast
3 not thyself, thou ransomed of divine Love, but press on
 unto the possession of unburdened bliss. Heal the sick,
 make spotless the blemished, raise the living dead, cast
6 out fashionable lunacy.

 The ideal robe of Christ is seamless. Thou hast touched
 its hem, and thou art being healed. The risen Christ is
9 thine. The haunting mystery and gloom of his glory
 rule not this century. Thine is the upspringing hope, the
 conquest over sin and mortality, that lights the living
12 way to Life, not to death.

 May the God of our fathers, the infinite Person whom
 we worship, be and abide with you. May the blessing of
15 divine Love rest with you. My heart hovers around your
 churches in Chicago, for the dove of peace sits smilingly
 on these branches and sings of our Redeemer.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 LOS ANGELES, CAL.


 Beloved Students: β€” Your kind letter, inviting me to
21 be present at the dedication of your church, was duly
 received. It would indeed give me pleasure to visit you,
 to witness your prosperity, and "rejoice with them that
24 do rejoice," but the constant recurring demands upon
 my time and attention pin me to my post. Of this,
 however, I can sing: My love can fly on wings of joy to
27 you and leave a leaf of olive; it can whisper to you of
 the divine ever-presence, answering your prayers, crown-
 ing your endeavors, and building for you a house "eternal
30 in the heavens."


Page 193


1 You will dedicate your temple in faith unfeigned, not to
 the unknown God, but unto Him whom to know aright
3 is life everlasting. His presence with you will bring to
 your hearts so much of heaven that you will not feel my
 absence. The privilege remains mine to watch and work
6 for all, from East to West, from the greensward and
 gorgeous skies of the Orient to your dazzling glory
 in the Occident, and to thank God forever "for His
9 goodness, and for His wonderful works to the children
 of men."

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
12    November 20, 1902



 SECOND CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 MINNEAPOLIS, MINN.


15 Beloved: β€” The spiritual dominates the temporal. Love
 gives nothing to take away. Nothing dethrones His
 house. You are dedicating yours to Him. Protesting
18 against error, you unite with all who believe in Truth.
 God guard and guide you.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 NEW YORK, N. Y.


 Beloved Brethren: β€” Carlyle writes, "Give a thing time;
 if it succeeds, it is a right thing." Here I aver that you
24 have grasped time and labor, taking the first by the fore-
 lock and the last by love. In this lofty temple, dedicated
 to God and humanity, may the prophecy of Isaiah be
27 fulfilled: "Fear not: . . . I have called thee by thy
 name; thou art mine." Within its sacred walls may


Page 194


1 song and sermon generate only that which Christianity
 writes in broad facts over great continents — sermons
3 that fell forests and remove mountains, songs of joy
 and gladness.

 The letter of your work dies, as do all things material,
6 but the spirit of it is immortal. Remember that a temple
 but foreshadows the idea of God, the "house not made
 with hands, eternal in the heavens," while a silent, grand
9 man or woman, healing sickness and destroying sin,
 builds that which reaches heaven. Only those men and
 women gain greatness who gain themselves in a complete
12 subordination of self.

 The tender memorial engraven on your grand edifice
 stands for human self lost in divine light, melted into the
15 radiance of His likeness. It stands for meekness and
 might, for Truth as attested by the Founder of your
 denomination and emblazoned on the fair escutcheon of
18 your church.


 Beloved Students: β€” Your telegram, in which you pre-
 sent to me the princely gift of your magnificent church
21 edifice in New York City, is an unexpected token of your
 gratitude and love. I deeply appreciate it, profoundly
 thank you for it, and gratefully accept the spirit of it;
24 but I must decline to receive that for which you have
 sacrificed so much and labored so long. May divine
 Love abundantly bless you, reward you according to
27 your works, guide and guard you and your church
 through the depths; and may you


 "Who stood the storm when seas were rough,
30    Ne'er in a sunny hour fall off."


Page 195



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 CLEVELAND, OHIO


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” You will pardon my delay in
 acknowledging your card of invitation to the dedicatory
 services of your church. Adverse circumstances, loss of
6 help, new problems to be worked out for the field, etc,.
 have hitherto prevented my reply. However, it is never
 too late to repent, to love more, to work more, to watch
9 and pray; but those privileges I have not had time to
 express, and so have submitted to necessity, letting the
 deep love which I cherished for you be hidden under an
12 appearance of indifference.

 We must resign with good grace what we are denied, and
 press on with what we are, for we cannot do more than we
15 are nor understand what is not ripening in us. To do
 good to all because we love all, and to use in God's service
 the one talent that we all have, is our only means of
18 adding to that talent and the best way to silence a deep
 discontent with our shortcomings.

 Christian Science is at length learned to be no miserable
21 piece of ideal legerdemain, by which we poor mortals ex-
 pect to live and die, but a deep-drawn breath fresh from
 God, by whom and in whom man lives, moves, and has
24 deathless being. The praiseworthy success of this church,
 and its united efforts to build an edifice in which to worship
 the infinite, sprang from the temples erected first in the
27 hearts of its members — the unselfed love that builds
 without hands, eternal in the heaven of Spirit. God
 grant that this unity remain, and that you continue to
30 build, rebuild, adorn, and fill these spiritual temples with
 grace, Truth, Life, and Love.


Page 196



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 PITTSBURGH, PA.


3 My Beloved Brethren: β€” I congratulate you upon erect-
 ing the first edifice of our denomination in the Keystone
 State, a State whose metropolis is called the "city of
6 brotherly love." May this dear church militant accept
 my tender counsel in these words of the Scripture, to be
 engrafted in church and State: β€”

9 "Let every man be swift to hear, slow to speak, slow to
 wrath." "He that is slow to anger is better than the
 mighty; and he that ruleth his spirit than he that taketh
12 a city." "If any man offend not in word, the same is
 a perfect man, and able also to bridle the whole body."
 "By thy words thou shalt be condemned." "Love thy
15 neighbor as thyself."

 "Christ also suffered for us, leaving us an example,
 that [we] should follow his steps: . . . who, when he was
18 reviled, reviled not again; when he suffered, he threatened
 not; but committed himself to Him that judgeth right-
 eously." "Consider him that endured such contradiction
21 of sinners against himself, lest ye be wearied and faint in
 your minds."



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 ST. LOUIS, MO.


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” The good in being, even the
 spiritually indispensable, is your daily bread. Work and
27 pray for it. The poor toil for our bread, and we should
 work for their health and holiness. Over the glaciers of
 winter the summer glows. The beauty of holiness comes


Page 197


1 with the departure of sin. Enjoying good things is
 not evil, but becoming slaves to pleasure is. That error
3 is most forcible which is least distinct to conscience.
 Attempt nothing without God's help.

 May the beauty of holiness be upon this dear people,
6 and may this beloved church be glorious, without spot
 or blemish.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 SAN JOSE, CAL.


 Beloved Students: β€”Words are inadequate to express
 my deep appreciation of your labor and success in com-
12 pleting and dedicating your church edifice, and of the
 great hearts and ready hands of our far Western students,
 the Christian Scientists.

15 Comparing such students with those whose words
 are but the substitutes for works, we learn that the
 translucent atmosphere of the former must illumine the
18 midnight of the latter, else Christian Science will dis-
 appear from among mortals.

 I thank divine Love for the hope set before us in the
21 Word and in the doers thereof, "for of such is the kingdom
 of heaven."



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 WILMINGTON, N. C.


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” At this dedicatory season of
 your church edifice in the home of my heart, I send lov-
27 ing congratulations, join with you in song and sermon.
 God will bless the work of your hearts and hands.

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
30    July 27, 1907


Page 198



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 LONDON, ENGLAND


3 Beloved Students and Brethren: β€” Your letters of May 1
 and June 19, informing me of the dedication of your
 magnificent church edifice, have been received with many
6 thanks to you and great gratitude to our one Father.
 May God grant not only the continuance of His favors, but their abundant and
 ripened fruit.

9 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
 June 26, 1909

Chapter IX β€” Letters to Branch Churches

Page 199



1 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 PHILADELPHIA, PA.


3 MY BELOVED STUDENTS AND BRETHREN: β€” I rejoice
 with thee. Blessed art thou. In place of dark-
 ness, light hath sprung up. The reward of thy hands
6 is given thee to-day. May God say this of the church
 in Philadelphia: I have naught against thee.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 WASHINGTON, D. C.


 Beloved Brethren: β€” The Board of Directors and
 Trustees of this church will please accept my grateful
12 acknowledgment of the receipt of their Christian canon
 pertaining to the hour. The joint resolutions contained
 therein show explicitly the attitude of this church in our
15 capital towards me and towards the Cause of Christian
 Science, so dear to our hearts and to all loyal lovers of
 God and man.

18 This year, standing on the verge of the twentieth cen-
 tury, has sounded the tocsin of a higher hope, of strength-
 ened hands, of unveiled hearts, of fourfold unity between
21 the churches of our denomination in this and in other


Page 200


1 lands. Religious liberty and individual rights under the
 Constitution of our nation are rapidly advancing, avow-
3 ing and consolidating the genius of Christian Science.

 Heaven be praised for the signs of the times. Let "the
 heathen rage, and the people imagine a vain thing;" our
6 trust is in the Almighty God, who ruleth in heaven and
 upon earth, and none can stay His hand or say, "What
 doest thou?"



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 LONDON, ENGLAND


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” The chain of Christian unity,
12 unbroken, stretches across the sea and rises upward to the
 realms of incorporeal Life — even to the glorious beati-
 tudes of divine Love. Striving to be good, to do good, and
15 to love our neighbor as ourself, man's soul is safe; man
 emerges from mortality and receives his rights inalienable
 β€” the love of God and man. What holds us to the Chris-
18 tian life is the seven-fold shield of honesty, purity, and
 unselfed love. I need not say this to you, for you know
 the way in Christian Science.

21 Pale, sinful sense, at work to lift itself on crumbling
 thrones of justice by pulling down its benefactors,
 will tumble from this scheme into the bottomless
24 abyss of self-damnation, there to relinquish its league
 with evil. Wide yawns the gap between this course
 and Christian Science.

27 God spare this plunge, lessen its depths, save sin-
 ners and fit their being to recover its connection with
 its divine Principle, Love. For this I shall continue to
30 pray.


Page 201


1 God is blessing you, my beloved students and breth-
 ren. Press on towards the high calling whereunto
3 divine Love has called us and is fast fulfilling the
 promises.

 Satan is unchained only for a season, as the Revelator
6 foresaw, and love and good will to man, sweeter than a
 sceptre, are enthroned now and forever.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, NEW YORK, N. Y.


 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Your Soul-full words and song
 repeat my legacies in blossom. Such elements of friend-
12 ship, faith, and hope repossess us of heaven. I thank
 you out of a full heart. Even the crown of thorns, which
 mocked the bleeding brow of our blessed Lord, was over-
15 crowned with a diadem of duties done. So let us meekly
 meet, mercifully forgive, wisely ponder, and lovingly
 scan the convulsions of mortal mind, that its sudden
18 sallies may help us, not to a start, but to a tenure of
 unprecarious joy. Rich hope have I in him who says in
 his heart: β€”


21    I will listen for Thy voice,
 Lest my footsteps stray;
 I will follow and rejoice
24    All the rugged way.



 SECOND CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, NEW YORK, N. Y.


27 Beloved Brethren: β€” Please accept a line from me in lieu
 of my presence on the auspicious occasion of the open-
 ing of your new church edifice. Hope springs exultant


Page 202


1 on this blest morn. May its white wings overshadow this
 white temple and soar above it, pointing the path from
3 earth to heaven — from human ambition, fear, or distrust
 to the faith, meekness, and might of him who hallowed
 this Easter morn.

6 Now may his salvation draw near, for the night is far
 spent and the day is at hand. In the words of St. Paul:
 "Render therefore to all their dues: tribute to whom
9 tribute is due; custom to whom custom; . . . honor to
 whom honor. Owe no man any thing, but to love one
 another: for he that loveth another hath fulfilled the
12 law."

 May the benediction of "Well done, good and faithful,"
 rest worthily on the builders of this beautiful temple, and
15 the glory of the resurrection morn burst upon the spiritual
 sense of this people with renewed vision, infinite mean-
 ings, endless hopes, and glad victories in the onward and
18 upward chain of being.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, OAKLAND, CAL.


21 Beloved Brethren: β€” I thank you for the words of cheer
 and love in your letter. The taper unseen in sunlight
 cheers the darkness. My work is reflected light, β€” a
24 drop from His ocean of love, from the underived glory,
 the divine Esse. From the dear tone of your letter,
 you must be bringing your sheaves into the store-
27 house. Press on. The way is narrow at first, but it
 expands as we walk in it. "Herein is my Father glori-
 fied, that ye bear much fruit." God bless this vine of
30 His planting.


Page 203



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, WASHINGTON, D. C.


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” I have nothing new to communi-
 cate; all is in your textbooks. Pray aright and demon-
 strate your prayer; sing in faith. Know that religion
6 should be distinct in our consciousness and life, but not
 clamorous for worldly distinction. Church laws which
 are obeyed without mutiny are God's laws. Goodness
9 and philanthropy begin with work and never stop working.
 All that is worth reckoning is what we do, and the best of
 everything is not too good, but is economy and riches.
12 Be great not as a grand obelisk, nor by setting up to be
 great, β€” only as good. A spiritual hero is a mark for
 gamesters, but he is unutterably valiant, the summary of
15 suffering here and of heaven hereafter. Our thoughts
 beget our actions; they make us what we are. Dis-
 honesty is a mental malady which kills its possessor; it
18 is a sure precursor that its possessor is mortal. A deep
 sincerity is sure of success, for God takes care of it. God
 bless this dear church, and I am sure that He will if it is
21 ready for the blessing.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, LONDON, ENGLAND


24 Beloved Students: β€” You have laid the corner-stone of
 your church edifice impressively, and buried immortal
 truths in the bosom of earth safe from all chance of being
27 challenged.

 You whose labors are doing so much to benefit mankind
 will not be impatient if you have not accomplished all you


Page 204


1 desire, nor will you be long in doing more. My faith in
 God and in His followers rests in the fact that He is infinite
3 good, and that He gives His followers opportunity to use
 their hidden virtues, to put into practice the power which
 lies concealed in the calm and which storms awaken to
6 vigor and to victory.

 It is only by looking heavenward that mutual friend-
 ships such as ours can begin and never end. Over sea
9 and over land, Christian Science unites its true followers
 in one Principle, divine Love, that sacred ave and essence
 of Soul which makes them one in Christ.



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, COLUMBUS, OHIO


 IN REPLY TO A LETTER ANNOUNCING THE PURPOSE OF THE
15 CHRISTIAN SCIENTISTS TO PRACTISE WITHOUT FEES IN COM-
 PLIANCE WITH THE STATE LAWS


 Beloved Brethren: β€” I congratulate you tenderly on the
18 decision you have made as to the present practice of
 Christian Science in your State, and thoroughly recom-
 mend it under the circumstances. I practised gratui-
21 tously when starting this great Cause, which was then the
 scoff of the age.

 The too long treatment of a disease, the charging of
24 the sick whom you have not healed a full fee for treat-
 ment, the suing for payment, hypnotism, and the resent-
 ing of injuries, are not the fruits of Christian Science,
27 while returning good for evil, loving one's enemies, and
 overcoming evil with good, β€” these are its fruits;
 and its therapeutics, based as aforetime on this divine
30 Principle, heals all disease.


Page 205


1 We read in the Scriptures: "There is therefore now no
 condemnation to them which are in Christ Jesus, who walk
3 not after the flesh, but after the Spirit." "Stand fast
 therefore in the liberty wherewith Christ hath made us
 free." "Be ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless
6 as doves."

 Wisdom is won through faith, prayer, experience; and
 God is the giver.


9   "God moves in a mysterious way
 His wonders to perform;
 He plants His footsteps in the sea
12    And rides upon the storm."



 THIRD CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, LONDON, ENGLAND


15 Beloved Brethren: β€” Love and unity are hieroglyphs of
 goodness, and their philosophical impetus, spiritual
 Γ†sculapius and Hygeia, saith, "As the thought is, so is the
18 deed; as the thing made is good or bad, so is its maker."
 This idealism connects itself with spiritual understanding,
 and so makes God more supreme in consciousness, man
21 more His likeness, friends more faithful, and enemies
 harmless. Scholastic theology at its best touches but the
 hem of Christian Science, shorn of all personality, wholly
24 apart from human hypotheses, matter, creed and dogma,
 the lust of the flesh and the pride of power. Christian
 Science is the full idea of its divine Principle, God; it is
27 forever based on Love, and it is demonstrated by perfect
 rules; it is unerring. Hence health, holiness, immortality,
 are its natural effects. The practitioner may fail, but the
30 Science never.


Page 206


1 Philosophical links, which would unite dead mat-
 ter with animate, Spirit with matter and material
3 means, prayer with power and pride of position, hinder
 the divine influx and lose Science,β€” lose the Principle
 of divine metaphysics and the tender grace of spiritual
6 understanding, that love-linked holiness which heals
 and saves.

 Schisms, imagination, and human beliefs are not
9 parts of Christian Science; they darken the discern-
 ment of Science; they divide Truth's garment and cast
 lots for it.

12 Seeing a man in the moon, or seeing a person in the
 picture of Jesus, or believing that you see an individual
 who has passed through the shadow called death, is
15 not seeing the spiritual idea of God; but it is seeing
 a human belief, which is far from the fact that portrays
 Life, Truth, Love.

18 May these words of the Scriptures comfort you: "The
 Lord shall be unto thee an everlasting light, and thy God
 thy glory." "The city had no need of the sun, neither
21 of the moon, to shine in it: for the glory of God did
 lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof." "Ye
 are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood, an holy
24 nation, a peculiar people; that ye should show forth the
 praises of Him who hath called you out of darkness into
 His marvellous light." "Giving thanks unto the Father,
27 which hath made us meet to be partakers of the inherit-
 ance of the saints in light: who hath delivered us from
 the power of darkness, and hath translated us into the
30 kingdom of His dear Son." "Ye were sometimes dark-
 ness, but now are ye light in the Lord: walk as children
 of light."


Page 207



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, MILWAUKEE, WIS.


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” Your communication is gratefully
 received. Press on! The wrath of men shall praise God,
 and the remainder thereof He will restrain.



 A TELEGRAM AND MRS. EDDY'S REPLY


 Beloved Leader: β€” The representatives of churches and
 societies of Christian Science in Missouri, in annual
9 conference assembled, unite in loving greetings to you,
 and pledge themselves to strive more earnestly, day
 by day, for the clearer understanding and more perfect
12 manifestation of the truth which you have unfolded to
 the world, and by which sin and sickness are destroyed
 and life and immortality brought to light.

15    Yours in loving obedience,
 CHURCHES AND SOCIETIES OF CHRISTIAN
 SCIENCE IN MISSOURI

18 ST. JOSEPH, MISSOURI,
 January 5, 1909


 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


21 "Well done, thou good and faithful servant: . . . enter
 thou into the joy of thy lord" β€” the satisfaction of
 meeting and mastering evil and defending good, thus
24 predicating man upon divine Science. (See Science
 and Health, p. 227.)


 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS,
27    January 6, 1909


Page 208



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, SYDNEY, AUSTRALIA


3 Beloved Brethren: β€” Accept my deep thanks for your
 highly interesting letter. It would seem as if the whole
 import of Christian Science had been mirrored forth by
6 your loving hearts, to reflect its heavenly rays over all the
 earth.


 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
9   July 15, 1909



 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, EDINBURGH, SCOTLAND


12 Beloved Christian Scientists: β€” Like the gentle dews of
 heaven and the refreshing breeze of morn, comes your
 dear letter to my waiting heart, β€” waiting in due expec-
15 tation of just such blessedness, crowning the hope and
 hour of divine Science, than which nothing can exceed
 its ministrations of God to man.

18 I congratulate you on the prospect of erecting a church
 building, wherein to gather in praise and prayer for the
 whole human family.


21 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 November 2, 1909



 THE COMMITTEES IN CONFERENCE, CHICAGO, ILL.


24 The Committees: β€” God bless the courageous, far-seeing
 committees in conference for their confidence in His
 ways and means of reaching the very acme of Christian
27 Science.


Page 209



 COMMENT ON LETTER FROM
 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, OTTAWA, ONTARIO


3 God will abundantly bless this willing and obedient
 church with the rich reward of those that seek and serve
 Him. No greater hope have we than in right thinking
6 and right acting, and faith in the blessing of fidelity,
 courage, patience, and grace.

Chapter X β€” Admonition and Counsel

Page 210



1 WHAT OUR LEADER SAYS


 BELOVED Christian Scientists, keep your minds so
3 filled with Truth and Love, that sin, disease, and
 death cannot enter them. It is plain that nothing can
 be added to the mind already full. There is no door
6 through which evil can enter, and no space for evil to fill
 in a mind filled with goodness. Good thoughts are an
 impervious armor; clad therewith you are completely
9 shielded from the attacks of error of every sort. And not
 only yourselves are safe, but all whom your thoughts rest
 upon are thereby benefited.

12 The self-seeking pride of the evil thinker injures him
 when he would harm others. Goodness involuntarily
 resists evil. The evil thinker is the proud talker and
15 doer. The right thinker abides under the shadow of the
 Almighty. His thoughts can only reflect peace, good will
 towards men, health, and holiness.(1)



 WAYS THAT ARE VAIN


 Certain individuals entertain the notion that Chris-
 tian Science Mind-healing should be two-sided, and only
21 denounce error in general, β€” saying nothing, in particu-


 (1) Copyright, 1909, by Mary Baker Eddy. Renewed, 1937.


Page 211


1 lar, of error that is damning men. They are sticklers
 for a false, convenient peace, straining at gnats and
3 swallowing camels. The unseen wrong to individuals
 and society they are too cowardly, too ignorant, or too
 wicked to uncover, and excuse themselves by denying
6 that this evil exists. This mistaken way, of hiding sin
 in order to maintain harmony, has licensed evil, allowing
 it first to smoulder, and then break out in devouring
9 flames. All that error asks is to be let alone; even as
 in Jesus' time the unclean spirits cried out, "Let us
 alone; what have we to do with thee?"

12 Animal magnetism, in its ascending steps of evil,
 entices its victim by unseen, silent arguments. Revers-
 ing the modes of good, in their silent allurements to
15 health and holiness, it impels mortal mind into error of
 thought, and tempts into the committal of acts foreign
 to the natural inclinations. The victims lose their
18 individuality, and lend themselves as willing tools to
 carry out the designs of their worst enemies, even those
 who would induce their self-destruction. Animal mag-
21 netism fosters suspicious distrust where honor is due, fear
 where courage should be strongest, reliance where there
 should be avoidance, a belief in safety where there is
24 most danger; and these miserable lies, poured constantly
 into his mind, fret and confuse it, spoiling that indi-
 vidual's disposition, undermining his health, and sealing
27 his doom, unless the cause of the mischief is found out
 and destroyed.

 Other minds are made dormant by it, and the victim
30 is in a state of semi-individuality, with a mental hazi-
 ness which admits of no intellectual culture or spiritual
 growth. The state induced by this secret evil influence


Page 212


1 is a species of intoxication, in which the victim is led to
 believe and do what he would never, otherwise, think
3 or do voluntarily.

 This intricate method of animal magnetism is the
 essence, or spirit, of evil, which makes mankind drunken.
5 In this era it is taking the place of older and more open
 sins, and other forms of intoxication. A harder fight
 will be necessary to expose the cause and effects of
9 this evil influence, than has been required to put down
 the evil effects of alcohol. The alcoholic habit is the
 use of higher forms of matter, wherewith to do evil;
12 whereas animal magnetism is the highest form of mental
 evil, wherewith to complete the sum total of sin.

 The question is often asked, Why is there so much
15 dissension among mental practitioners? We answer,
 Because they do not practise in strict accordance with
 the teaching of Christian Science Mind-healing. If they
18 did, there would be unity of action. Being like the
 disciples of old, "with one accord in one place," they
 would receive a spiritual influx impossible under other
21 conditions, and so would recognize and resist the
 animal magnetism by which they are being deceived
 and misled.

24 The mental malpractitioner, interfering with the
 rights of Mind, destroys the true sense of Science, and
 loses his own power to heal. He tries to compensate
27 himself for his own loss by hindering in every way con-
 ceivable the success of others. You will find this prac-
 titioner saying that animal magnetism never troubles
30 him, but that Mrs. Eddy teaches animal magnetism;
 and he says this to cover his crime of mental malprac-
 tice, in furtherance of unscrupulous designs.


Page 213


1 The natural fruits of Christian Science Mind-healing
 are harmony, brotherly love, spiritual growth and
3 activity. The malicious aim of perverted mind-power,
 or animal magnetism, is to paralyze good and give
 activity to evil. It starts factions and engenders envy
6 and hatred, but as activity is by no means a right of
 evil and its emissaries, they ought not to be encouraged
 in it. Because this age is cursed with one rancorous
9 and lurking foe to human weal, those who are the
 truest friends of mankind, and conscientious in their
 desire to do right and to live pure and Christian lives,
12 should be more zealous to do good, more watchful and
 vigilant. Then they will be proportionately successful
 and bring out glorious results.

15 Unless one's eyes are opened to the modes of mental
 malpractice, working so subtly that we mistake its sug-
 gestions for the impulses of our own thought, the victim
18 will allow himself to drift in the wrong direction with-
 out knowing it. Be ever on guard against this enemy.
 Watch your thoughts, and see whether they lead you
21 to God and into harmony with His true followers.
 Guard and strengthen your own citadel more strongly.
 Thus you will grow wiser and better through every
24 attack of your foe, and the Golden Rule will not rust
 for lack of use or be misinterpreted by the adverse
 influence of animal magnetism.



 ONLY ONE QUOTATION


 The following three quotations from "Science and
 Health with Key to the Scriptures" are submitted
30 to the dear Churches of Christ, Scientist. From these


Page 214


1 they may select one only to place on the walls of their
 church. Otherwise, as our churches multiply, promiscu-
3 ous selections would write your textbook on the walls of
 your churches.

 Divine Love always has met and always will meet every
6 human need.

 MARY BAKER EDDY


 Christianity is again demonstrating the Life that is
9 Truth, and the Truth that is Life.

 MARY BAKER EDDY


 Jesus' three days' work in the sepulchre set the seal
12 of eternity on time. He proved Life to be deathless and
 Love to be the master of hate.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 THE LABORER AND HIS HIRE


 In reply to letters questioning the consistency of
 Christian Scientists taking pay for their labors, and with
18 the hope of relieving the questioners' perplexity, I will say:
 Four years after my discovery of Christian Science, while
 taking no remuneration for my labors, and for healing all
21 manner of diseases, I was confronted with the fact that I
 had no monetary means left wherewith to hire a hall in
 which to speak, or to establish a Christian Science home
24 for indigent students, which I yearned to do, or even to
 meet my own current expenses. I therefore halted from
 necessity.

27 I had cast my all into the treasury of Truth, but where
 were the means with which to carry on a Cause? To
 desert the Cause never occurred to me, but nobody


Page 215


1 then wanted Christian Science, or gave it a halfpenny.
 Though sorely oppressed, I was above begging and
3 knew well the priceless worth of what had been bestowed
 without money or price. Just then God stretched forth
 His hand. He it was that bade me do what I did,
6 and it prospered at every step. I wrote "Science and
 Health with Key to the Scriptures," taught students for
 a tuition of three hundred dollars each, though I seldom
9 taught without having charity scholars, sometimes a
 dozen or upward in one class. Afterwards, with touch-
 ing tenderness, those very students sent me the full
12 tuition money. However, I returned this money with
 love; but it was again mailed to me in letters begging
 me to accept it, saying, "Your teachings are worth much
15 more to me than money can be."

 It was thus that I earned the means with which to start
 a Christian Science home for the poor worthy student, to
18 establish a Metaphysical College, to plant our first maga-
 zine, to purchase the site for a church edifice, to give my
 church The Christian Science Journal, and to keep "the
21 wolves in sheep's clothing," preying upon my pearls, from
 clogging the wheels of Christian Science.

 When the great Master first sent forth his students, he
24 bade them take no scrip for their journey, saying, "The
 laborer is worthy of his hire." Next, on the contrary,
 he bade them take scrip. Can we find a better example
27 for our lives than that of our Master? Why did he send
 forth his students first without, and then with, provision
 for their expenses? Doubtless to test the effect of both
30 methods on mankind. That he preferred the latter is
 evident, since we have no hint of his changing this direc-
 tion; and that his divine wisdom should temper human


Page 216


1 affairs, is plainly set forth in the Scriptures. Till Christian
 Scientists give all their time to spiritual things, live without
3 eating, and obtain their money from a fish's mouth, they
 must earn it in order to help mankind with it. All sys-
 tems of religion stand on this basis.

6 The law and the gospel, β€” Christian, civil, and educa-
 tional means, β€” manufacture, agriculture, tariff, and
 revenue subsist on demand and supply, regulated by a
9 government currency, by which each is provided for and
 maintained. What, then, can a man do with truth
 and without a cent to sustain it? Either his life must
12 be a miracle that frightens people, or his truth not
 worth a cent.



 THE CHILDREN CONTRIBUTORS


15 My Beloved Children: β€” Tenderly thanking you for
 your sweet industry and love on behalf of the room
 of the Pastor Emeritus in The First Church of Christ,
18 Scientist, Boston, I say: The purpose of God to you-
 ward indicates another field of work which I present to
 your thought, work by which you can do much good and
21 which is adapted to your present unfolding capacity. I
 request that from this date you disband as a society,
 drop the insignia of "Busy Bees," work in your own sev-
24 eral localities, and no longer contribute to The Mother
 Church flower fund.

 As you grow older, advance in the knowledge of self-
27 support, and see the need of self-culture, it is to be expected
 you will feel more than at present that charity begins at
 home, and that you will want money for your own uses.
30 Contemplating these important wants, I see that you
 should begin now to earn for a purpose even higher, the


Page 217


1 money that you expend for flowers. You will want it for
 academics, for your own school education, or, if need be,
3 to help your parents, brothers, or sisters.

 Further to encourage your early, generous incentive
 for action, and to reward your hitherto unselfish toil, I
6 have deeded in trust to The Mother Church of Christ,
 Scientist, in Boston, the sum of four thousand dollars
 to be invested in safe municipal bonds for my dear chil-
9 dren contributors to the room of the Pastor Emeritus.
 This sum is to remain on interest till it is disbursed in
 equal shares to each contributor. This disbursal will
12 take place when the contributors shall have arrived at
 legal age, and each contributor will receive his divi-
 dend with interest thereon up to date, provided he has
15 complied with my request as above named.



 A CORRECTION


 In the last Sentinel [Oct. 12, 1899] was the following
18 question: "If all matter is unreal, why do we deny the
 existence of disease in the material body and not the body
 itself?"

21 We deny first the existence of disease, because we can
 meet this negation more readily than we can negative all
 that the material senses affirm. It is written in "Science
24 and Health with Key to the Scriptures": "An improved
 belief is one step out of error, and aids in taking the
 next step and in understanding the situation in Christian
27 Science" (p. 296).

 Thus it is that our great Exemplar, Jesus of Nazareth,
 first takes up the subject. He does not require the last
30 step to be taken first. He came to the world not to
 destroy the law of being, but to fulfil it in righteousness.


Page 218


1 He restored the diseased body to its normal action,
 functions, and organization, and in explanation of his
3 deeds he said, "Suffer it to be so now: for thus it be-
 cometh us to fulfil all righteousness." Job said, "In
 my flesh shall I see God." Neither the Old nor the New
6 Testament furnishes reasons or examples for the destruc-
 tion of the human body, but for its restoration to life
 and health as the scientific proof of "God with us."
9 The power and prerogative of Truth are to destroy all
 disease and to raise the dead — even the self-same
 Lazarus. The spiritual body, the incorporeal idea, came
12 with the ascension.

 Jesus demonstrated the divine Principle of Christian
 Science when he presented his material body absolved
15 from death and the grave. The introduction of pure
 abstractions into Christian Science, without their correl-
 atives, leaves the divine Principle of Christian Science
18 unexplained, tends to confuse the mind of the reader, and
 ultimates in what Jesus denounced, namely, straining
 at gnats and swallowing camels.



 QUESTION ANSWERED


 A fad of belief is the fool of mesmerism. The belief
 that an individual can either teach or heal by proxy is a
24 false faith that will end bitterly. My published works are
 teachers and healers. My private life is given to a serv-
 itude the fruit of which all mankind may share. Such
27 labor is impartial, meted out to one no more than to
 another. Therefore an individual should not enter the
 Massachusetts Metaphysical College with the expecta-
30 tion of receiving instruction from me, other than that


Page 219


1 which my books afford, unless I am personally present.
 Nor should patients anticipate being helped by me through
3 some favored student. Such practice would be erro-
 neous, and such an anticipation on the part of the sick a
 hindrance rather than help.

6 My good students have all the honor of their success
 in teaching or in healing. I by no means would pluck
 their plumes. Human power is most properly used in
9 preventing the occasion for its use; otherwise its use
 is abuse.



 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE HEALING


12 To say that it is sin to ride to church on an electric
 car, would not be more preposterous than to believe
 that man's Maker is not equal to the destruction of disease
15 germs. Christ, Truth, the ever-present spiritual idea,
 who raises the dead, is equal to the giving of life and health
 to man and to the healing, as aforetime, of all manner of
18 diseases. I would not charge Christians with doubting
 the Bible record of our great Master's life of healing, since
 Christianity must be predicated of what Christ Jesus
21 taught and did; but I do say that Christian Science cannot
 annul nor make void the laws of the land, since Christ,
 the great demonstrator of Christian Science, said, "Think
24 not that I am come to destroy the law, or the prophets:
 I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil."

 I have expressed my opinion publicly as to the pre-
27 cautions against the spread of so-called infectious and
 contagious diseases in the following words: β€”

 "Rather than quarrel over vaccination, I recommend, if
30 the law demand, that an individual submit to this process,
 that he obey the law, and then appeal to the gospel to


Page 220


1 save him from bad physical results. Whatever changes
 come to this century or to any epoch, we may safely
3 submit to the providence of God, to common justice, to
 the maintenance of individual rights, and to govern-
 mental usages. This statement should be so interpreted
6 as to apply, on the basis of Christian Science, to the
 reporting of a contagious case to the proper authorities
 when the law so requires. When Jesus was questioned
9 concerning obedience to human law, he replied: 'Render
 to CΓ¦sar the things that are CΓ¦sar's,' even while you
 render 'to God the things that are God's.' "

12 I believe in obeying the laws of the land. I practise and
 teach this obedience, since justice is the moral signification
 of law. Injustice denotes the absence of law. Each day
15 I pray for the pacification of all national difficulties, for
 the brotherhood of man, for the end of idolatry and
 infidelity, and for the growth and establishment of
18 Christian religion β€” Christ's Christianity. I also have
 faith that my prayer availeth, and that He who is
 overturning will overturn until He whose right it is shall
21 reign. Each day I pray: "God bless my enemies; make
 them Thy friends; give them to know the joy and the
 peace of love."

24 Past, present, or future philosophy or religion, which
 departs from the instructions and example of the great
 Galilean Prophet, cannot be Christlike. Jesus obeyed
27 human laws and fell a victim to those laws. But nineteen
 centuries have greatly improved human nature and
 human statutes. That the innocent should suffer for the
30 guilty, seems less divine, and that humanity should share
 alike liberty of conscience, seems more divine to-day than
 it did yesterday.


Page 221


1 The earthly price of spirituality in religion and medicine
 in a material age is persecution, and the moral distance
3 between Christianity and materialism precludes Jesus'
 doctrine, now as then, from finding favor with certain
 purely human views. The prophets of old looked for
6 something higher than the systems and practices of their
 times. They foresaw the new dispensation of Truth
 and the demonstration of God in His more infinite
9 meanings, β€” the demonstration which was to destroy sin,
 disease, and death, establish the definition of omnipotence,
 and illustrate the Science of Mind. Earth has not known
12 another so great and good as Christ Jesus. Then can
 we find a better moral philosophy, a more complete,
 natural, and divine Science of medicine, or a better
15 religion than his?

 God is Spirit. Then modes of healing, other than the
 spiritual and divine, break the First Commandment of
18 the Decalogue, "Thou shalt have no other gods before
 me." There are no other heaven-appointed means than
 the spiritual with which to heal sin and disease. Our
21 Master conformed to this law, and instructed his follow-
 ers, saying, "He that believeth on me, the works that I
 do shall he do also." This is enough.

24 All issues of morality, of Christianity, of pleasure, or of
 pain must come through a correct or incorrect state
 of thought, since matter is not conscious; then, like a
27 watchman forsaking his post, shall we have no faith in
 God, in the divine Mind, thus throwing the door wide
 open to the intruding disease, forgetting that the divine
30 Mind, Truth and Life, can guard the entrance?

 We earnestly ask: Shall we not believe the Scripture,
 "The prayer of faith shall save the sick"? In the seven-


Page 222


1 teenth chapter of the Gospel according to St. Matthew,
 we read that even the disciples of Jesus once failed mentally
3 to cure by their faith and understanding a violent case of
 lunacy. And because of this Jesus rebuked them, saying:
 "O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be
6 with you ? how long shall I suffer you? bring him hither to
 me." When his disciples asked him why they could not
 heal that case, Jesus, the master Metaphysician, answered,
9 "Because of your unbelief" (lack of faith); and then
 continued: "If ye have faith as a grain of mustard
 seed, ye shall say unto this mountain, Remove hence
12 to yonder place; and it shall remove." Also he added:
 "This kind goeth not out but by prayer and fasting"
 (refraining from admitting the claims of the senses).
15 Even in those dark days Jesus was not arrested and
 executed (for "insanity") because of his faith and
 his great demands on the faith of his followers, but
18 he was arrested because, as was said, "he stirreth
 up the people." Be patient, O Christian Scientist!
 It is well that thou canst unloose the sandals of thy
21 Master's feet.

 The Constitution of the United States does not provide
 that materia medica shall make laws to regulate man's
24 religion; rather does it imply that religion shall permeate
 our laws. Mankind will be God-governed in proportion
 as God's government becomes apparent, the Golden Rule
27 utilized, and the rights of man and the liberty of conscience
 held sacred. Meanwhile, they who name the name of
 Christian Science will assist in the holding of crime in
30 check, will aid the ejection of error, will maintain law
 and order, and will cheerfully await the end — justice and
 judgment.


Page 223



 RULES OF CONDUCT


 I hereby notify the public that no comers are received
3 at Pleasant View without previous appointment by letter.
 Also that I neither listen to complaints, read letters, nor
 dictate replies to letters which pertain to church diffi-
6 culties outside of The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist,
 or to any class of individual discords. Letters from the
 sick are not read by me or by my secretaries. They
9 should be sent to the Christian Science practitioners
 whose cards are in The Christian Science Journal.


 Letters and despatches from individuals with whom I
12 have no acquaintance and of whom I have no knowl-
 edge, containing questions about secular affairs, I do
 not answer. First, because I have not sufficient time to
15 waste on them; second, because I do not consider myself
 capable of instructing persons in regard to that of which
 I know nothing. All such questions are superinduced by
18 wrong motives or by "evil suggestions," either of which
 I do not entertain.


 All inquiries, coming directly or indirectly from a
21 member of The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, which
 relate in any manner to the keeping or the breaking
 of one of the Church By-laws, should be addressed to
24 the Christian Science Board of Directors and not to the
 Pastor Emeritus.



 A WORD TO THE WISE


27 The hour is imminent. Upon it lie burdens that
 time will remove. Just now divine Love and wisdom
 saith, "Be still, and know that I am God." Do all Chris-


Page 224


1 tian Scientists see or understand the importance of that
 demand at the moment, when human wisdom is inade-
3 quate to meet the exigencies of the hour and when they
 should wait on the logic of events?

 I respectfully call your attention to this demand, know-
6 ing a little, as I ought, the human need, the divine com-
 mand, the blessing which follows obedience and the bane
 which follows disobedience. Hurried conclusions as to
9 the public thought are not apt to be correctly drawn. The
 public sentiment is helpful or dangerous only in proportion
 to its right or its wrong concept, and the forward footsteps
12 it impels or the prejudice it instils. This prejudice the
 future must disclose and dispel. Avoid for the immediate
 present public debating clubs. Also be sure that you are
15 not caught in some author's net, or made blind to his
 loss of the Golden Rule, of which Christian Science is the
 predicate and postulate, when he borrows the thoughts,
18 words, and classification of one author without quotation-
 marks, at the same time giving full credit to another more
 fashionable but less correct.

21 My books state Christian Science correctly. They may
 not be as taking to those ignorant of this Science as
 books less correct and therefore less profound. But it is
24 not safe to accept the latter as standards. We would not
 deny their authors a hearing, since the Scripture declares,
 "He that is not against us is on our part." And we should
27 also speak in loving terms of their efforts, but we cannot
 afford to recommend any literature as wholly Christian
 Science which is not absolutely genuine.

30 Beloved students, just now let us adopt the classic
 saying, "They also serve who only stand and wait."
 Our Cause is growing apace under the present persecution


Page 225


1 thereof. This is a crucial hour, in which the coward and
 the hypocrite come to the surface to pass off, while the
3 loyal at heart and the worker in the spirit of Truth are
 rising to the zenith of success, β€” the "Well done, good
 and faithful," spoken by our Master.



 CAPITALIZATION


 A correct use of capital letters in composition caps the
 climax of the old "new tongue. " Christian Science is not
9 understood by the writer or the reader who does not com-
 prehend where capital letters should be used in writing
 about Christian Science.

12 In divine Science all belongs to God, for God is All;
 hence the propriety of giving unto His holy name
 due deference, β€” the capitalization which distinguishes
15 it from all other names, thus obeying the leading of our
 Lord's Prayer.

 The coming of Christ's kingdom on earth begins in the
18 minds of men by honoring God and sacredly holding His
 name apart from the names of that which He creates.
 Mankind almost universally gives to the divine Spirit
21 the name God. Christian Science names God as divine
 Principle, Love, the infinite Person. In this, as in all
 that is right, Christian Scientists are expected to stick
24 to their text, and by no illogical conclusion, either in
 speaking or in writing, to forget their prayer, "Hallowed
 be Thy name."

27 In their textbook it is clearly stated that God is divine
 Principle and that His synonyms are Love, Truth, Life,
 Spirit, Mind, Soul, which combine as one. The divine
30 Principle includes them all. The word Principle, when
 referring to God, should not be written or used as a


Page 226


1 common noun or in the plural number. To avoid using
 this word incorrectly, use it only where you can substi-
3 tute the word God and make sense. This rule strictly
 observed will preserve an intelligent usage of the word
 and convey its meaning in Christian Science.

6 What are termed in common speech the principle of har-
 monious vibration, the principle of conservation of num-
 ber in geometry, the principle of the inclined plane in
9 mechanics, etc., are but an effect of one universal cause, β€”
 an emanation of the one divine intelligent Principle that
 holds the earth in its orbit by evolved spiritual power,
12 that commands the waves and the winds, that marks the
 sparrow's fall, and that governs all from the infinitesimal
 to the infinite, β€” namely, God. Withdraw God, divine
15 Principle, from man and the universe, and man and the
 universe would no longer exist. But annihilate matter,
 and man and the universe would remain the forever fact,
18 the spiritual "substance of things hoped for;" and the
 evidence of the immortality of man and the cosmos is
 sustained by the intelligent divine Principle, Love.

21 Beloved students, in this you learn to hallow His name,
 even as you value His all-power, all-presence, all-Science,
 and depend on Him for your existence.



 WHEREFORE?


 Our faithful laborers in the field of Science have
 been told by the alert editor-in-chief of the Christian
27 Science Sentinel and Journal that "Mrs. Eddy advises,
 until the public thought becomes better acquainted with
 Christian Science, that Christian Scientists decline to
30 doctor infectious or contagious diseases."


Page 227


1 The great Master said, "For which of those works do
 ye stone me?" He said this to satisfy himself regarding
3 that which he spake as God's representative — as one who
 never weakened in his own personal sense of righteousness
 because of another's wickedness or because of the minify-
6 ing of his own goodness by another. Charity is quite as
 rare as wisdom, but when charity does appear, it is known
 by its patience and endurance.

9 When, under the protection of State or United States
 laws, good citizens are arrested for manslaughter because
 one out of three of their patients, having the same disease
12 and in the same family, dies while the others recover, we
 naturally turn to divine justice for support and wait on
 God. Christian Scientists should be influenced by their
15 own judgment in taking a case of malignant disease.
 They should consider well their ability to cope with the
 claim, and they should not overlook the fact that there
18 are those lying in wait to catch them in their sayings;
 neither should they forget that in their practice, whether
 successful or not, they are not specially protected by law.
21 The above quotation by the editor-in-chief stands for this:
 Inherent justice, constitutional individual rights, self-
 preservation, and the gospel injunction, "Neither cast
24 ye your pearls before swine, lest they trample them under
 their feet, and turn again and rend you."

 And it stands side by side with Christ's command,
27 "Whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to
 him the other also." I abide by this rule and triumph by
 it. The sinner may sneer at this beatitude, for "the fool
30 hath said in his heart, There is no God." Statistics show
 that Christian Science cures a larger per cent of malignant
 diseases than does materia medica.


Page 228


1 I call disease by its name and have cured it thus; so
 there is nothing new on this score. My book Science and
3 Health names disease, and thousands are healed by
 learning that so-called disease is a sensation of mind, not
 of matter. Evil minds signally blunder in divine meta-
6 physics; hence I am always saying the unexpected to
 them. The evil mind calls it "skulking," when to me it
 is wisdom to "overcome evil with good." I fail to know
9 how one can be a Christian and yet depart from Christ's
 teachings.



 SIGNIFICANT QUESTIONS


12 Who shall be greatest? Referring to John the Baptist,
 of whom he said none greater had been born of women,
 our Master declared: "He that is least in the kingdom of
15 heaven is greater than he." That is, he that hath the
 kingdom of heaven, the reign of holiness, in the least in his
 heart, shall be greatest.

18 Who shall inherit the earth? The meek, who sit at the
 feet of Truth, bathing the human understanding with
 tears of repentance and washing it clean from the taints of
21 self-righteousness, hypocrisy, envy, β€” they shall inherit
 the earth, for "wisdom is justified of her children."
 "Who shall dwell in Thy holy hill? He that walketh
24 uprightly, and worketh righteousness, and speaketh the
 truth in his heart."

 Who shall be called to Pleasant View? He who strives,
27 and attains; who has the divine presumption to say: "For
 I know whom I have believed, and am persuaded that
 he is able to keep that which I have committed unto him
30 against that day" (St. Paul). It goes without saying that
 such a one was never called to Pleasant View for penance


Page 229


1 or for reformation; and I call none but genuine Christian
 Scientists, unless I mistake their calling. No mesmerist
3 nor disloyal Christian Scientist is fit to come hither. I
 have no use for such, and there cannot be found at Pleasant
 View one of this sort. "For all that do these things are
6 an abomination unto the Lord: and because of these
 abominations the Lord thy God doth drive them out from
 before thee." (Deuteronomy 18: 12.)

9 It is true that loyal Christian Scientists, called to the
 home of the Discoverer and Founder of Christian Science,
 can acquire in one year the Science that otherwise might
12 cost them a half century. But this should not be the
 incentive for going thither. Better far that Christian
 Scientists go to help their helper, and thus lose all selfish-
15 ness, as she has lost it, and thereby help themselves and
 the whole world, as she has done, according to this saying
 of Christ Jesus: "And whosoever doth not bear his cross,
18 and come after me, cannot be my disciple."



 MENTAL DIGESTION


 Will those beloved students, whose growth is taking in
21 the Ten Commandments and scaling the steep ascent of
 Christ's Sermon on the Mount, accept profound thanks for
 their swift messages of rejoicing over the twentieth cen-
24 tury Church Manual? Heaps upon heaps of praise con-
 front me, and for what? That which I said in my heart
 would never be needed, β€” namely, laws of limitation for a
27 Christian Scientist. Thy ways are not as ours. Thou
 knowest best what we need most, β€” hence my disap-
 pointed hope and grateful joy. The redeemed should be
30 happier than the elect. Truth is strong with destiny;
 it takes life profoundly; it measures the infinite against


Page 230


1 the finite. Notwithstanding the sacrilegious moth of time,
 eternity awaits our Church Manual, which will maintain
3 its rank as in the past, amid ministries aggressive and
 active, and will stand when those have passed to rest.

 Scientific pathology illustrates the digestion of spiritual
6 nutriment as both sweet and bitter, β€” sweet in expectancy
 and bitter in experience or during the senses' assimilation
 thereof, and digested only when Soul silences the dyspepsia
9 of sense. This church is impartial. Its rules apply not
 to one member only, but to one and all equally. Of this
 I am sure, that each Rule and By-law in this Manual will
12 increase the spirituality of him who obeys it, invigorate his
 capacity to heal the sick, to comfort such as mourn, and
 to awaken the sinner.



 TEACHING IN THE SUNDAY SCHOOL


 TO THE SUPERINTENDENT AND TEACHERS OF THE
 MOTHER CHURCH SUNDAY SCHOOL


18 Beloved Students: β€” I read with pleasure your approval
 of the amendments to Article XIX, Sections 5 and 6, (1)
 in our Church Manual. Be assured that fitness and
21 fidelity such as thine in the officials of my church give
 my solitude sweet surcease. It is a joy to know that
 they who are faithful over foundational trusts, such as
24 the Christian education of the dear children, will reap
 the reward of rightness, rise in the scale of being, and
 realize at last their Master's promise, "And they shall be
27 all taught of God."

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 November 14, 1904


30 (1) Article XX, Sections 2 and 3 in 89th edition.


Page 231



 CHARITY AND INVALIDS


 Mrs. Eddy endeavors to bestow her charities for such
3 purposes only as God indicates. Giving merely in com-
 pliance with solicitations or petitions from strangers,
 incurs the liability of working in wrong directions. As
6 a rule, she has suffered most from those whom she has
 labored much to benefit — also from the undeserving
 poor to whom she has given large sums of money, worse
9 than wasted. She has, therefore, finally resolved to
 spend no more time or money in such uncertain, un-
 fortunate investments. She has qualified students for
12 healing the sick, and has ceased practice herself in order
 to help God's work in other of its highest and infinite
 meanings, as God, not man, directs. Hence, letters from
15 invalids demanding her help do not reach her. They are
 committed to the waste-basket by her secretaries.

 "Charity suffereth long and is kind," but wisdom must
18 govern charity, else love's labor is lost and giving is un-
 kind. As it is, Mrs. Eddy is constantly receiving more
 important demands on her time and attention than one
21 woman is sufficient to supply. It would therefore be as
 unwise for her to undertake new tasks, as for a landlord
 who has not an empty apartment in his house, to receive
24 more tenants.



 LESSONS IN THE SUNDAY SCHOOL


 TO THE OFFICERS OF THE SUNDAY SCHOOL OF SECOND CHURCH
27    OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, NEW YORK


 Beloved Brethren: β€”You will accept my thanks for your
 interesting report regarding the By-law, "Subject for
30 Lessons" (Article XX, Section 3 of Church Manual).


Page 232


1 It rejoices me that you are recognizing the proper course,
 unfurling your banner to the breeze of God, and sailing
3 over rough seas with the helm in His hands. Steering
 thus, the waiting waves will weave for you their winning
 webs of life in looms of love that line the sacred shores.
6 The right way wins the right of way, even the way of
 Truth and Love whereby all our debts are paid, mankind
 blessed, and God glorified.



 WATCHING versus WATCHING OUT


 COMMENT ON AN EDITORIAL WHICH APPEARED IN THE CHRISTIAN
 SCIENCE SENTINEL, SEPTEMBER 23, 1905


12 Our Lord and Master left to us the following sayings as
 living lights in our darkness: "What I say unto you I say
 unto all, Watch" (Mark 13: 37); and, "If the goodman
15 of the house had known what hour the thief would come,
 he would have watched, and not have suffered his house
 to be broken through." (Luke 12: 39.)

18 Here we ask: Are Christ's teachings the true authority
 for Christian Science? They are. Does the textbook of
 Christian Science, "Science and Health with Key to the
21 Scriptures," read on page 252, "A knowledge of error
 and of its operations must precede that understanding
 of Truth which destroys error, until the entire mortal,
24 material error finally disappears, and the eternal verity,
 man created by and of Spirit, is understood and recog-
 nized as the true likeness of his Maker"? It does. If
27 so-called watching produces fear or exhaustion and no
 good results, does that watch accord with Jesus' saying?
 It does not. Can watching as Christ demands harm
30 you? It cannot. Then should not "watching out"
 mean, watching against a negative watch, alias, no


Page 233


1 watch, and gaining the spirit of true watching, even the
 spirit of our Master's command? It must mean that.

3 Is there not something to watch in yourself, in your
 daily life, since "by their fruits ye shall know them,"
 which prevents an effective watch? Otherwise, where-
6 fore the Lord's Prayer, "Deliver us from evil"? And
 if this something, when challenged by Truth, frightens
 you, should you not put that out instead of putting
9 out your watch? I surely should. Then are you not
 made better by watching? I am. Which should we
 prefer, ease or dis-ease in sin? Is not discomfort from
12 sin better adapted to deliver mortals from the effects of
 belief in sin than ease in sin? and can you demonstrate
 over the effects of other people's sins by indifference
15 thereto? I cannot.

 The Scriptures say, "They have healed also the hurt
 of the daughter of my people slightly, saying, Peace,
18 peace; when there is no peace" (Jeremiah 6: 14), thus
 taking the name of God in vain. Ignorance of self is the
 most stubborn belief to overcome, for apathy, dishonesty,
21 sin, follow in its train. One should watch to know what
 his errors are; and if this watching destroys his peace in
 error, should one watch against such a result? He should
24 not. Our Master said, "He that taketh not his cross,
 and followeth after me, is not worthy of me . . . and he
 that loseth his life [his false sense of life] for my sake shall
27 find it." (Matthew 10: 38, 39.)



 PRINCIPLE OR PERSON?


 Do Christian Scientists love God as much as they love
30 mankind? Aye, that's the question. Let us examine it
 for ourselves. Thinking of person implies that one is not


Page 234


1 thinking of Principle, and fifty telegrams per holiday sig-
 nalize the thinking of person. Are the holidays blest by
3 absorbing one's time writing or reading congratulations?
 I cannot watch and pray while reading telegrams; they
 only cloud the clear sky, and they give the appearance of
6 personal worship which Christian Science annuls. Did
 the dear students know how much I love them, and how
 I need every hour wherein to express this love in labor
9 for them, they would gladly give me the holidays for this
 work and not task themselves with mistaken means.
 But God will reward their kind motives, and guide them
12 every step of the way from human affection to spiritual
 understanding, from faith to achievement, from light to
 Love, from sense to Soul.



 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE AND CHINA


 Beloved Student: β€” The report of the success of Christian
 Science in benighted China, when regarded on one side
18 only, is cheering, but to look at both sides of the great
 question of introducing Christian Science into a heathen
 nation gives the subject quite another aspect. I believe
21 that all our great Master's sayings are practical and
 scientific. If the Dowager Empress could hold her
 nation, there would be no danger in teaching Christian
24 Science in her country. But a war on religion in
 China would be more fatal than the Boxers' rebellion.
 Silent prayer in and for a heathen nation is just what
27 is needed. But to teach and to demonstrate Christian
 Science before the minds of the people are prepared
 for it, and when the laws are against it, is fraught with
30 danger.


Page 235



 INCONSISTENCY


 To teach the truth of life without using the word
3 death, the suppositional opposite of life, were as impos-
 sible as to define truth and not name its opposite, error.
 Straining at gnats, one may swallow camels.

6 The tender mother, guided by love, faithful to her in-
 stincts, and adhering to the imperative rules of Science,
 asks herself: Can I teach my child the correct numer-
9 ation of numbers and never name a cipher? Knowing
 that she cannot do this in mathematics, she should know
 that it cannot be done in metaphysics, and so she should
12 definitely name the error, uncover it, and teach truth
 scientifically.



 SIGNS OF THE TIMES


15 Is God infinite? Yes. Did God make man? Yes.
 Did God make all that was made? He did. Is God
 Spirit? He is. Did infinite Spirit make that which is
18 not spiritual? No. Who or what made matter? Matter
 as substance or intelligence never was made. Is mortal
 man a creator, is he matter or spirit ? Neither one. Why?
21 Because Spirit is God and infinite; hence there can be
 no other creator and no other creation. Man is but His
 image and likeness.

24 Are you a Christian Scientist? I am. Do you adopt
 as truth the above statements? I do. Then why this
 meaningless commemoration of birthdays, since there are
27 none?

 Had I known what was being done in time to have
 prevented it, that which commemorated in deed or in
30 word what is not true, would never have entered into the


Page 236


1 history of our church buildings. Let us have no more of
 echoing dreams. Will the beloved students accept my
3 full heart's love for them and their kind thoughts.



 NOTA BENE


 My Beloved Christian Scientists: β€” Because I suggested
6 the name for one central Reading Room, and this name
 continues to be multiplied, you will permit me to make
 the amende honorable β€” notwithstanding "incompetence"
9 β€” and to say, please adopt generally for your name,
 Christian Science Reading Room. An old axiom says:
 Too much of one thing spoils the whole. Too many
12 centres may become equivalent to no centre.

 Here I have the joy of knowing that Christian Scientists
 will exchange the present name for the one which I sug-
15 gest, with the sweet alacrity and uniformity with which
 they accepted the first name.

 Merely this appellative seals the question of unity, and
18 opens wide on the amplitude of liberty and love a far-
 reaching motive and success, of which we can say, the
 more the better.

21 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.
 JULY 8, 1907



 TAKE NOTICE


24 I request the Christian Scientists universally to read
 the paragraph beginning at line 30 of page 442 in the
 edition of Science and Health which will be issued Febru-
27 ary 29 [1908]. I consider the information there given to
 be of great importance at this stage of the workings of
 animal magnetism, and it will greatly aid the students in
30 their individual experiences.


Page 237


1 The contemplated reference in Science and Health to
 the "higher criticism" announced in the Sentinel a few
3 weeks ago, I have since decided not to publish.



 TAKE NOTICE


 What I wrote on Christian Science some twenty-five
6 years ago I do not consider a precedent for a present
 student of this Science. The best mathematician has
 not attained the full understanding of the principle
9 thereof, in his earliest studies or discoveries. Hence, it
 were wise to accept only my teachings that I know to
 be correct and adapted to the present demand.



 TAKE NOTICE


 To Christian Scientists: β€” See Science and Health, page
 442, line 30, and give daily attention thereto.



 PRACTITIONERS' CHARGES


 Christian Science practitioners should make their
 charges for treatment equal to those of reputable phy-
18 sicians in their respective localities.
 BROOKLINE, MASS., December 24, 1909



 TAKE NOTICE


21 The article on the Church Manual by Blanche Hersey
 Hogue, in the Sentinel of September 10 [1910] is practi-
 cal and scientific, and I recommend its careful study to all
24 Christian Scientists.

CHAPTER XI β€” QUESTIONS ANSWERED

Page 238



1 QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS


 Will the Bible, if read and practised, heal as effectually
3 as your book, "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures"?


 THE exact degree of comparison between the effects
6 produced by reading the above-named books can
 only be determined by personal proof. Rightly to read
 and to practise the Scriptures, their spiritual sense must
9 be discerned, understood, and demonstrated. God being
 Spirit, His language and meaning are wholly spiritual.
 Uninspired knowledge of the translations of the Scriptures
12 has imparted little power to practise the Word. Hence
 the revelation, discovery, and presentation of Christian
 Science — the Christ Science, or "new tongue" of which
15 St. Mark prophesied — became requisite in the divine
 order. On the swift pinions of spiritual thought man
 rises above the letter, law, or morale of the inspired Word
18 to the spirit of Truth, whereby the Science is reached
 that demonstrates God. When the Bible is thus read
 and practised, there is no possibility of misinterpreta-
21 tion. God is understandable, knowable, and applicable
 to every human need. In this is the proof that Chris-
 tian Science is Science, for it demonstrates Life, not


Page 239


1 death; health, not disease; Truth, not error; Love, not
 hate. The Science of the Scriptures coexists with God;
3 and "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures"
 relegates Christianity to its primitive proof, wherein
 reason, revelation, the divine Principle, rules, and prac-
6 tice of Christianity acquaint the student with God. In
 the ratio that Christian Science is studied and under-
 stood, mankind will, as aforetime, imbibe the spirit and
9 prove the practicality, validity, and redemptive power of
 Christianity by healing all manner of disease, by over-
 coming sin and death.


12 Must mankind wait for the ultimate of the millennium β€”
 until every man and woman comes into the knowledge of
 Christ and all are taught of God and see their apparent
15 identity as one man and one woman — for God to be
 represented by His idea or image and likeness?


 God is one, and His idea, image, or likeness, man, is one.
18 But God is infinite and so includes all in one. Man is the
 generic term for men and women. Man, as the idea or
 image and likeness of the infinite God, is a compound, com-
21 plex idea or likeness of the infinite one, or one infinite,
 whose image is the reflection of all that is real and eternal
 in infinite identity. Gender means a kind. Hence man-
24 kind — in other words, a kind of man who is identi-
 fied by sex — is the material, so-called man born of the
 flesh, and is not the spiritual man, created by God,
27 Spirit, who made all that was made. The millennium
 is a state and stage of mental advancement, going
 on since ever time was. Its impetus, accelerated by
30 the advent of Christian Science, is marked, and will


Page 240


1 increase till all men shall know Him (divine Love) from
 the least to the greatest, and one God and the brother-
3 hood of man shall be known and acknowledged through-
 out the earth.



 THE HIGHER CRITICISM


6 An earnest student writes to me: "Would it be asking
 too much of you to explain more fully why you call Chris-
 tian Science the higher criticism?"

9 I called Christian Science the higher criticism in my
 dedicatory Message to The Mother Church, June 10,
 1906, when I said, "This Science is a law of divine Mind,
12 . . . an ever-present help. Its presence is felt, for it
 acts and acts wisely, always unfolding the highway of
 hope, faith, understanding."

15 I now repeat another proof, namely, that Christian
 Science is the higher criticism because it criticizes evil,
 disease, and death — all that is unlike God, good — on a
18 Scriptural basis, and approves or disapproves according
 to the word of God. In the next edition of Science and
 Health I shall refer to this.

21 MARY BAKER EDDY



 CLASS TEACHING


 Mrs. Eddy thus replies, through her student, Mr.
24 Adam Dickey, to the question, Does Mrs. Eddy approve
 of class teaching: β€”


 Yes! She most assuredly does, when the teaching is
27 done by those who are duly qualified, who have received
 certificates from the Massachusetts Metaphysical
 College or the Board of Education, and who have the


Page 241


1 necessary moral and spiritual qualifications to perform
 this important work. Class teaching will not be abol-
3 ished until it has accomplished that for which it was
 established; viz., the elucidation of the Principle and
 rule of Christian Science through the higher meaning
6 of the Scriptures. Students who are ready for this
 step should beware the net that is craftily laid and cun-
 ningly concealed to prevent their advancement in this
9 direction.



 INSTRUCTION BY MRS. EDDY


 We are glad to have the privilege of publishing an ex-
12 tract from a letter to Mrs. Eddy, from a Christian Scien-
 tist in the West, and Mrs. Eddy's reply thereto. The
 issue raised is an important one and one upon which
15 there should be absolute and correct teaching. Christian
 Scientists are fortunate to receive instruction from their
 Leader on this point. The question and Mrs. Eddy's
18 reply follow.


 "Last evening I was catechized by a Christian Science
 practitioner because I referred to myself as an immortal
21 idea of the one divine Mind. The practitioner said that
 my statement was wrong, because I still lived in my
 flesh. I replied that I did not live in my flesh, that
24 my flesh lived or died according to the beliefs I enter-
 tained about it; but that, after coming to the light of
 Truth, I had found that I lived and moved and had
27 my being in God, and to obey Christ was not to know
 as real the beliefs of an earthly mortal. Please give the
 truth in the Sentinel, so that all may know it."


Page 242



 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


 You are scientifically correct in your statement about
3 yourself. You can never demonstrate spirituality until you
 declare yourself to be immortal and understand that
 you are so. Christian Science is absolute; it is neither
6 behind the point of perfection nor advancing towards
 it; it is at this point and must be practised therefrom.
 Unless you fully perceive that you are the child
9 of God, hence perfect, you have no Principle to demon-
 strate and no rule for its demonstration. By this I
 do not mean that mortals are the children of God, β€”
12 far from it. In practising Christian Science you must
 state its Principle correctly, or you forfeit your ability
 to demonstrate it.



 TAKE NOTICE


 I hereby announce to the Christian Science field that
 all inquiries or information relating to Christian Science
18 practice, to publication committee work, reading-room
 work, or to Mother Church membership, should be sent
 to the Christian Science Board of Directors of The
21 Mother Church; and I have requested my secretary
 not to make inquiries on these subjects, nor to reply to
 any received, but to leave these duties to the Clerk of
24 The Mother Church, to whom they belong.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 September 28, 1910

CHAPTER XII β€” READERS, TEACHERS, LECTURERS

Page 243



1 THE NEW YORK CHURCHES


 MY BELOVED STUDENTS: β€” According to reports, the
3 belief is springing up among you that the several
 churches in New York City should come together and
 form one church. This is a suggestion of error, which
6 should be silenced at its inception. You cannot have lost
 sight of the rules for branch churches as published in our
 Church Manual. The Empire City is large, and there
9 should be more than one church in it.

 The Readers of The Church of Christ, Scientist, hold
 important, responsible offices, and two individuals would
12 meet meagrely the duties of half a dozen or more of the
 present incumbents. I have not yet had the privilege of
 knowing two students who are adequate to take charge
15 of three or more churches. The students in New York
 and elsewhere will see that it is wise to remain in their
 own fields of labor and give all possible time and attention
18 to caring for their own flocks.



 THE NOVEMBER CLASS, 1898


 Beloved Christian Scientists: β€” Your prompt presence in
21 Concord at my unexplained call witnesses your fidelity
 to Christian Science and your spiritual unity with your


Page 244


1 Leader. I have awaited your arrival before informing
 you of my purpose in sending for you, in order to avoid
3 the stir that might be occasioned among those who wish
 to share this opportunity and to whom I would gladly
 give it at this time if a larger class were advantageous
6 to the students.

 You have been invited hither to receive from me one or
 more lessons on Christian Science, prior to conferring on
9 any or all of you who are ready for it, the degree of C.S.D.,
 of the Massachusetts Metaphysical College. This oppor-
 tunity is designed to impart a fresh impulse to our spiritual
12 attainments, the great need of which I daily discern.
 I have awaited the right hour, and to be called of God
 to contribute my part towards this result.

15 The "secret place," whereof David sang, is unquestion-
 ably man's spiritual state in God's own image and like-
 ness, even the inner sanctuary of divine Science, in which
18 mortals do not enter without a struggle or sharp experi-
 ence, and in which they put off the human for the divine.
 Knowing this, our Master said: "Many are called, but few
21 are chosen." In the highest sense of a disciple, all loyal
 students of my books are indeed my students, and your
 wise, faithful teachers have come so to regard them.
24 What I have to say may not require more than one
 lesson. This, however, must depend on results. But
 the lessons will certainly not exceed three in number.
27 No charge will be made for my services.



 MASSACHUSETTS METAPHYSICAL COLLEGE


 The Massachusetts Metaphysical College of Boston,
30 Massachusetts, was chartered A.D. 1881. As the people
 observed the success of this Christian system of heal-


Page 245


1 ing all manner of disease, over and above the approved
 schools of medicine, they became deeply interested
3 in it. Now the wide demand for this universal bene-
 fice is imperative, and it should be met as heretofore,
 cautiously, systematically, scientifically. This Chris-
6 tian educational system is established on a broad and
 liberal basis. Law and order characterize its work
 and secure a thorough preparation of the student for
9 practice.

 The growth of human inquiry and the increasing pop-
 ularity of Christian Science, I regret to say, have called
12 out of their hiding-places those poisonous reptiles and de-
 vouring beasts, superstition and jealousy. Towards the
 animal elements manifested in ignorance, persecution,
15 and lean glory, and to their Babel of confusion worse
 confounded, let Christian Scientists be charitable. Let
 the voice of Truth and Love be heard above the dire
18 din of mortal nothingness, and the majestic march of
 Christian Science go on ad infinitum, praising God,
 doing the works of primitive Christianity, and enlighten-
21 ing the world.

 To protect the public, students of the Massachusetts
 Metaphysical College have received certificates, and these
24 credentials are still required of all who claim to teach
 Christian Science.

 Inquiries have been made as to the precise significa-
27 tion of the letters of degrees that follow the names of
 Christian Scientists. They indicate, respectively, the
 degrees of Bachelor and Doctor of Christian Science,
30 conferred by the President or Vice-President of the
 Massachusetts Metaphysical College. The first degree
 (C.S.B.) is given to students of the Primary class; the


Page 246


1 second degree (C.S.D.) is given to those who, after
 receiving the first degree, continue for three years as
3 practitioners of Christian Science in good and regular
 standing.

 Students who enter the Massachusetts Metaphys-
6 ical College, or are examined under its auspices by
 the Board of Education, must be well educated and
 have practised Christian Science three years with good
9 success.



 THE BOARD OF EDUCATION


 In the year 1889, to gain a higher hope for the race, I
12 closed my College in the midst of unprecedented pros-
 perity, left Boston, and sought in solitude and silence a
 higher understanding of the absolute scientific unity which
15 must exist between the teaching and letter of Christianity
 and the spirit of Christianity, dwelling forever in the
 divine Mind or Principle of man's being and revealed
18 through the human character.

 While revising "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures," the light and might of the divine concur-
21 rence of the spirit and the Word appeared, and the
 result is an auxiliary to the College called the Board of
 Education of The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist,
24 in Boston, Mass.

 Our Master said: "What I do thou knowest not now;
 but thou shalt know hereafter;" and the spirit of his
27 mission, the wisdom of his words, and the immortal-
 ity of his works are the same to-day as yesterday and
 forever.

30 The Magna Charta of Christian Science means much,


Page 247


1 multum in parvo, β€” all-in-one and one-in-all. It stands
 for the inalienable, universal rights of men. Essentially
3 democratic, its government is administered by the
 common consent of the governed, wherein and whereby
 man governed by his creator is self-governed. The
6 church is the mouthpiece of Christian Science, β€” its
 law and gospel are according to Christ Jesus; its rules
 are health, holiness, and immortality, β€” equal rights and
9 privileges, equality of the sexes, rotation in office.



 TO A FIRST READER


 Beloved Student: β€” Christ is meekness and Truth
12 enthroned. Put on the robes of Christ, and you will
 be lifted up and will draw all men unto you. The
 little fishes in my fountain must have felt me when I
15 stood silently beside it, for they came out in orderly
 line to the rim where I stood. Then I fed these
 sweet little thoughts that, not fearing me, sought their
18 food of me.

 God has called you to be a fisher of men. It is not a
 stern but a loving look which brings forth mankind to
21 receive your bestowal, β€” not so much eloquence as tender
 persuasion that takes away their fear, for it is Love alone
 that feeds them.

24 Do you come to your little flock so filled with divine
 food that you cast your bread upon the waters? Then
 be sure that after many or a few days it will return
27 to you.

 The little that I have accomplished has all been
 done through love, β€” self-forgetful, patient, unfaltering
30 tenderness.


Page 248



 THE CHRISTIAN SCIENCE BOARD OF LECTURESHIP


 Beloved Students: β€” I am more than satisfied with your
3 work: its grandeur almost surprises me. Let your watch-
 word always be:


 "Great, not like CΓ¦sar, stained with blood,
6     But only great as I am good."


 You are not setting up to be great; you are here for the
 purpose of grasping and defining the demonstrable, the
9 eternal. Spiritual heroes and prophets are they whose
 new-old birthright is to put an end to falsities in a wise
 way and to proclaim Truth so winningly that an honest,
12 fervid affection for the race is found adequate for the
 emancipation of the race.

 You are the needed and the inevitable sponsors for the
15 twentieth century, reaching deep down into the univer-
 sal and rising above theorems into the transcendental,
 the infinite — yea, to the reality of God, man, nature,
18 the universe. No fatal circumstance of idolatry can fold
 or falter your wings. No fetishism with a symbol can
 fetter your flight. You soar only as uplifted by God's
21 power, or you fall for lack of the divine impetus. You
 know that to conceive God aright you must be good.

 The Christ mode of understanding Life — of extermi-
24 nating sin and suffering and their penalty, death β€” I
 have largely committed to you, my faithful witnesses.
 You go forth to face the foe with loving look and with the
27 religion and philosophy of labor, duty, liberty, and love,
 to challenge universal indifference, chance, and creeds.
 Your highest inspiration is found nearest the divine
30 Principle and nearest the scientific expression of Truth.


Page 249


1 You may condemn evil in the abstract without harming
 any one or your own moral sense, but condemn persons
3 seldom, if ever. Improve every opportunity to correct
 sin through your own perfectness. When error strives to
 be heard above Truth, let the "still small voice" produce
6 God's phenomena. Meet dispassionately the raging ele-
 ment of individual hate and counteract its most gigantic
 falsities.

9 The moral abandon of hating even one's enemies ex-
 cludes goodness. Hate is a moral idiocy let loose for
 one's own destruction. Unless withstood, the heat of
12 hate burns the wheat, spares the tares, and sends forth a
 mental miasma fatal to health, happiness, and the morals
 of mankind, β€” and all this only to satiate its loathing of
15 love and its revenge on the patience, silence, and lives
 of saints. The marvel is, that at this enlightened period
 a respectable newspaper should countenance such evil
18 tendencies.

 Millions may know that I am the Founder of Chris-
 tian Science. I alone know what that means.



 READERS IN CHURCH


 The report that I prefer to have a man, rather than
 a woman, for First Reader in The Church of Christ,
24 Scientist, I desire to correct. My preference lies with
 the individual best fitted to perform this important
 function. If both the First and Second Readers are my
27 students, then without reference to sex I should prefer
 that student who is most spiritually-minded. What our
 churches need is that devout, unselfed quality of thought
30 which spiritualizes the congregation.


Page 250



 WORDS FOR THE WISE


 The By-law of The Mother Church of Christ, Scientist,
3 relative to a three years' term for church Readers, was
 entitled to and has received profound attention. Rotation
 in office promotes wisdom, quiets mad ambition, satisfies
6 justice, and crowns honest endeavors.

 The best Christian Scientists will be the first to adopt
 this By-law in their churches, and their Readers will
9 retire ex officio, after three years of acceptable service as
 church Readers, to higher usefulness in this vast vineyard
 of our Lord.

12 The churches who adopt this By-law will please send
 to the Editor of our periodicals notice of their action.



 AFTERGLOW


15 Beloved Students: β€” The By-law of The Mother
 Church of Christ, Scientist, stipulating three years as
 the term for its Readers, neither binds nor compels the
18 branch churches to follow suit; and the By-law applies
 only to Christian Science churches in the United States
 and Canada. Doubtless the churches adopting this
21 By-law will discriminate as regards its adaptability to
 their conditions. But if now is not the time, the branch
 churches can wait for the favored moment to act on this
24 subject.

 I rest peacefully in knowing that the impulsion of this
 action in The Mother Church was from above. So I have
27 faith that whatever is done in this direction by the branch
 churches will be blest. The Readers who have filled this
 sacred office many years, have beyond it duties and


Page 251


1 attainments beckoning them. What these are I cannot
 yet say. The great Master saith: "What I do thou
3 knowest not now; but thou shalt know hereafter."



 TEACHERS OF CHRISTIAN SCIENCE


 I reply to the following question from unknown ques-
6 tioners:

 "Are the students, whom I have taught, obliged to
 take both Primary and Normal class instruction in the
9 Board of Education in order to become teachers of Pri-
 mary classes?"

 No, not if you and they are loyal Christian Scientists,
12 and not if, after examination in the Board of Education,
 your pupils are found eligible to enter the Normal class,
 which at present is taught in the Board of Education
15 only.

 There is evidently some misapprehension of my meaning
 as to the mode of instruction in the Board of Education.
18 A Primary student of mine can teach pupils the prac-
 tice of Christian Science, and after three years of good
 practice, my Primary student can himself be examined in
21 the Board of Education, and if found eligible, receive a
 certificate of the degree C.S.D.



 THE GENERAL ASSOCIATION OF TEACHERS, 1903


24 My Beloved Students: β€” I call you mine, for all is Thine
 and mine. What God gives, elucidates, armors, and tests
 in His service, is ours; and we are His. You have con-
27 vened only to convince yourselves of this grand verity:
 namely, the unity in Christian Science. Cherish stead-
 fastly this fact. Adhere to the teachings of the Bible,


Page 252


1 Science and Health, and our Manual, and you will obey
 the law and gospel. Have one God and you will
3 have no devil. Keep yourselves busy with divine Love.
 Then you will be toilers like the bee, always distributing
 sweet things which, if bitter to sense, will be salutary as
6 Soul; but you will not be like the spider, which weaves
 webs that ensnare.

 Rest assured that the good you do unto others you do
9 to yourselves as well, and the wrong you may commit
 must, will, rebound upon you. The entire purpose of
 true education is to make one not only know the truth
12 but live it — to make one enjoy doing right, make one
 not work in the sunshine and run away in the storm, but
 work midst clouds of wrong, injustice, envy, hate; and
15 wait on God, the strong deliverer, who will reward right-
 eousness and punish iniquity. "As thy days, so shall thy
 strength be."



 THE LONDON TEACHERS' ASSOCIATION, 1903


 Beloved Students: β€” Your letter and dottings are an
 oasis in my wilderness. They point to verdant pastures,
21 and are already rich rays from the eternal sunshine of
 Love, lighting and leading humanity into paths of peace
 and holiness.

24 Your "Thanksgiving Day," instituted in England on
 New Year's Day, was a step in advance. It expressed
 your thanks, and gave to the "happy New Year" a higher
27 hint. You are not aroused to this action by the allure-
 ments of wealth, pride, or power; the impetus comes from
 above — it is moral, spiritual, divine. All hail to this
30 higher hope that neither slumbers nor is stilled by the
 cold impulse of a lesser gain!


Page 253


1 It rejoices me to know that you know that healing
 the sick, soothing sorrow, brightening this lower sphere
3 with the ways and means of the higher and everlasting
 harmony, brings to light the perfect original man and uni-
 verse. What nobler achievement, what greater glory can
6 nerve your endeavor? Press on! My heart and hope
 are with you.


 "Thou art not here for ease or pain,
9   But manhood's glorious crown to gain."



 THE GENERAL ASSOCIATION OF TEACHERS, 1904


 Beloved Brethren: β€” I thank you. Jesus said: "The
12 world hath not known Thee: but I have known Thee,
 and these have known that Thou hast sent me."



 THE CANADIAN TEACHERS, 1904


15 Beloved Brethren: β€” Accept my love and these words
 of Jesus: "Holy Father, keep through Thine own name
 those whom Thou hast given me, that they may be one,
18 as we are."



 STUDENTS IN THE BOARD OF EDUCATION, DECEMBER, 1904


21 Beloved Students: β€” You will accept my profound
 thanks for your letter and telegram. If wishing is wise,
 I send with this a store of wisdom in three words: God
24 bless you. If faith is fruition, you have His rich blessing
 already and my joy therewith.

 We understand best that which begins in ourselves
27 and by education brightens into birth. Dare to be
 faithful to God and man. Let the creature become


Page 254


1 one with his creator, and mysticism departs, heaven
 opens, right reigns, and you have begun to be a Chris-
3 tian Scientist.



 THE MAY CLASS, 1905


 Beloved: β€” I am glad you enjoy the dawn of Christian
6 Science; you must reach its meridian. Watch, pray,
 demonstrate. Released from materialism, you shall run
 and not be weary, walk and not faint.



 THE DECEMBER CLASS, 1905


 Beloved Students: β€” Responding to your kind letter,
 let me say: You will reap the sure reward of right think-
12 ing and acting, of watching and praying, and you will
 find the ever-present God an ever-present help. I
 thank the faithful teacher of this class and its dear
15 members.



 "ROTATION IN OFFICE"


 Dear Leader: β€” May we have permission to print, as
18 a part of the preamble to our By-laws, the following
 extract from your article "Christian Science Board of
 Education" in the June Journal of 1904, page 184: β€”


21 "The Magna Charta of Christian Science means
 much, multum in parvo, β€” all-in-one and one-in-all. It
 stands for the inalienable, universal rights of men.
24 Essentially democratic, its government is administered
 by the common consent of the governed, wherein and
 whereby man governed by his creator is self-governed.
27 The church is the mouthpiece of Christian Science,
 β€” its law and gospel are according to Christ Jesus;


Page 255


1 its rules are health, holiness, and immortality, β€” equal
 rights and privileges, equality of the sexes, rotation
3 in office."



 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


 Christian Science churches have my consent to publish
6 the foregoing in their By-laws. By "rotation in office"
 I do not mean that minor officers who are filling their
 positions satisfactorily should be removed every three
9 years, or be elevated to offices for which they are not
 qualified.

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,

12   March 6, 1909

CHAPTER XIII β€” CHRISTMAS

Page 256



1 EARLY CHIMES, DECEMBER, 1898


 BEFORE the Christmas bells shall ring, allow me
3 to improvise some new notes, not specially musi-
 cal to be sure, but admirably adapted to the key of my
 feeling and emphatically phrasing strict observance or
6 note well.

 This year, my beloved Christian Scientists, you must
 grant me my request that I be permitted total exemption
9 from Christmas gifts. Also I beg to send to you all a
 deep-drawn, heartfelt breath of thanks for those things
 of beauty and use forming themselves in your thoughts
12 to send to your Leader. Thus may I close the door of
 mind on this subject, and open the volume of Life on
 the pure pages of impersonal presents, pleasures, achieve-
15 ments, and aid.



 CHRISTMAS, 1900


 Again loved Christmas is here, full of divine benedic-
18 tions and crowned with the dearest memories in human
 history — the earthly advent and nativity of our Lord
 and Master. At this happy season the veil of time
21 springs aside at the touch of Love. We count our bless-
 ings and see whence they came and whither they tend.
 Parents call home their loved ones, the Yule-fires burn,
24 the festive boards are spread, the gifts glow in the dark


Page 257


1 green branches of the Christmas-tree. But alas for the
 broken household band! God give to them more of
3 His dear love that heals the wounded heart.

 To-day the watchful shepherd shouts his welcome over
 the new cradle of an old truth. This truth has traversed
6 night, through gloom to glory, from cradle to crown. To
 the awakened consciousness, the Bethlehem babe has left
 his swaddling-clothes (material environments) for the
9 form and comeliness of the divine ideal, which has passed
 from a corporeal to the spiritual sense of Christ and is
 winning the heart of humanity with ineffable tenderness.
12 The Christ is speaking for himself and for his mother,
 Christ's heavenly origin and aim. To-day the Christ is,
 more than ever before, "the way, the truth, and the
15 life," β€” "which lighteth every man that cometh into the
 world," healing all sorrow, sickness, and sin. To this
 auspicious Christmastide, which hallows the close of the
18 nineteenth century, our hearts are kneeling humbly. We
 own his grace, reviving and healing. At this immortal
 hour, all human hate, pride, greed, lust should bow and
21 declare Christ's power, and the reign of Truth and Life
 divine should make man's being pure and blest.



 CHRISTMAS GIFTS


24 Beloved Students: β€” For your manifold Christmas memo-
 rials, too numerous to name, I group you in one benison
 and send you my Christmas gift, two words enwrapped,
27 β€” love and thanks.

 To-day Christian Scientists have their record in the
 monarch's palace, the Alpine hamlet, the Christian trav-
30 eller's resting-place. Wherever the child looks up in


Page 258


1 prayer, or the Book of Life is loved, there the sinner is
 reformed and the sick are healed. Those are the "signs
3 following." What is it that lifts a system of religion to
 deserved fame? Nothing is worthy the name of religion
 save one lowly offering — love.

6 This period, so fraught with opposites, seems illumi-
 nated for woman's hope with divine light. It bids her
 bind the tenderest tendril of the heart to all of holiest
9 worth. To the woman at the sepulchre, bowed in strong
 affection's anguish, one word, "Mary," broke the gloom
 with Christ's all-conquering love. Then came her resurrec-
12 tion and task of glory, to know and to do God's will, β€”
 in the words of St. Paul: "Looking unto Jesus the author
 and finisher of our faith; who for the joy that was set be-
15 fore him endured the cross, despising the shame, and is
 set down at the right hand of the throne of God."

 The memory of the Bethlehem babe bears to mortals
18 gifts greater than those of Magian kings, β€” hopes that
 cannot deceive, that waken prophecy, gleams of glory,
 coronals of meekness, diadems of love. Nor should they
21 who drink their Master's cup repine over blossoms that
 mock their hope and friends that forsake. Divinely
 beautiful are the Christmas memories of him who sounded
24 all depths of love, grief, death, and humanity.

 To the dear children let me say: Your Christmas gifts
 are hallowed by our Lord's blessing. A transmitted
27 charm rests on them. May this consciousness of God's
 dear love for you give you the might of love, and may
 you move onward and upward, lowly in its majesty.

30 To the children who sent me that beautiful statuette
 in alabaster — a child with finger on her lip reading a book
 β€” I write: Fancy yourselves with me; take a peep into


Page 259


1 my studio; look again at your gift, and you will see the
 sweetest sculptured face and form conceivable, mounted
3 on its pedestal between my bow windows, and on either
 side lace and flowers. I have named it my white student.
 From First Church of Christ, Scientist, in London,
6 Great Britain, I received the following cabled message: β€”


 REV. MRS. EDDY, PLEASANT VIEW,
 Concord, N. H.

9 Loving, grateful Christmas greetings from members
 London, England, church.

 December 24, 1901


12 To this church across the sea I return my heart's wire-
 less love. All our dear churches' Christmas telegrams to
 me are refreshing and most pleasing Christmas presents,
15 for they require less attention than packages and give me
 more time to think and work for others. I hope that in
 1902 the churches will remember me only thus. Do not
18 forget that an honest, wise zeal, a lowly, triumphant
 trust, a true heart, and a helping hand constitute man,
 and nothing less is man or woman.



21    [New York World]


 THE SIGNIFICANCE OF CHRISTMAS


 Certain occasions, considered either collectively or
24 individually and observed properly, tend to give the
 activity of man infinite scope; but mere merry-making
 or needless gift-giving is not that in which human capac-
27 ities find the most appropriate and proper exercise.
 Christmas respects the Christ too much to submerge
 itself in merely temporary means and ends. It represents
30 the eternal informing Soul recognized only in harmony,


Page 260


1 in the beauty and bounty of Life everlasting, β€” in the
 truth that is Life, the Life that heals and saves man-
3 kind. An eternal Christmas would make matter an alien
 save as phenomenon, and matter would reverentially
 withdraw itself before Mind. The despotism of material
6 sense or the flesh would flee before such reality, to make
 room for substance, and the shadow of frivolity and the
 inaccuracy of material sense would disappear.

9 In Christian Science, Christmas stands for the real, the
 absolute and eternal, β€” for the things of Spirit, not of mat-
 ter. Science is divine; it hath no partnership with human
12 means and ends, no half-way stations. Nothing condi-
 tional or material belongs to it. Human reason and phi-
 losophy may pursue paths devious, the line of liquids, the
15 lure of gold, the doubtful sense that falls short of sub-
 stance, the things hoped for and the evidence unseen.

 The basis of Christmas is the rock, Christ Jesus; its
18 fruits are inspiration and spiritual understanding of joy
 and rejoicing, β€” not because of tradition, usage, or cor-
 poreal pleasures, but because of fundamental and de-
21 monstrable truth, because of the heaven within us. The
 basis of Christmas is love loving its enemies, returning
 good for evil, love that "suffereth long, and is kind." The
24 true spirit of Christmas elevates medicine to Mind; it
 casts out evils, heals the sick, raises the dormant facul-
 ties, appeals to all conditions, and supplies every need of
27 man. It leaves hygiene, medicine, ethics, and religion
 to God and His Christ, to that which is the Way, in word
 and in deed, β€” the Way, the Truth, and the Life.

30 There is but one Jesus Christ on record. Christ is
 incorporeal. Neither the you nor the I in the flesh can
 be or is Christ.


Page 261



 CHRISTMAS FOR THE CHILDREN


 Methinks the loving parents and guardians of youth
3 ofttimes query: How shall we cheer the children's Christ-
 mas and profit them withal? The wisdom of their elders,
 who seek wisdom of God, seems to have amply provided
6 for this, according to the custom of the age and to the full
 supply of juvenile joy. Let it continue thus with one
 exception: the children should not be taught to believe
9 that Santa Claus has aught to do with this pastime. A
 deceit or falsehood is never wise. Too much cannot be
 done towards guarding and guiding well the germinating
12 and inclining thought of childhood. To mould aright
 the first impressions of innocence, aids in perpetu-
 ating purity and in unfolding the immortal model, man
15 in His image and likeness. St. Paul wrote, "When I
 was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a
 child, . . . but when I became a man, I put away
18 childish things."

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 December 28, 1905


21    [Ladies' Home Journal]



 WHAT CHRISTMAS MEANS TO ME


 To me Christmas involves an open secret, understood
24 by few — or by none — and unutterable except in Chris-
 tian Science. Christ was not born of the flesh. Christ
 is the Truth and Life born of God — born of Spirit and
27 not of matter. Jesus, the Galilean Prophet, was born
 of the Virgin Mary's spiritual thoughts of Life and its
 manifestation.


Page 262


1 God creates man perfect and eternal in His own image.
 Hence man is the image, idea, or likeness of perfection
3 β€” an ideal which cannot fall from its inherent unity
 with divine Love, from its spotless purity and original
 perfection.

6 Observed by material sense, Christmas commemorates
 the birth of a human, material, mortal babe — a babe
 born in a manger amidst the flocks and herds of a Jewish
9 village.

 This homely origin of the babe Jesus falls far short
 of my sense of the eternal Christ, Truth, never born and
12 never dying. I celebrate Christmas with my soul, my
 spiritual sense, and so commemorate the entrance into
 human understanding of the Christ conceived of Spirit,
15 of God and not of a womanβ€”as the birth of Truth, the
 dawn of divine Love breaking upon the gloom of matter
 and evil with the glory of infinite being.

18 Human doctrines or hypotheses or vague human phi-
 losophy afford little divine effulgence, deific presence or
 power. Christmas to me is the reminder of God's great
21 gift, β€” His spiritual idea, man and the universe, β€”
 a gift which so transcends mortal, material, sensual giv-
 ing that the merriment, mad ambition, rivalry, and
24 ritual of our common Christmas seem a human mock-
 ery in mimicry of the real worship in commemoration
 of Christ's coming.

27 I love to observe Christmas in quietude, humility,
 benevolence, charity, letting good will towards man, elo-
 quent silence, prayer, and praise express my conception
30 of Truth's appearing.

 The splendor of this nativity of Christ reveals infinite
 meanings and gives manifold blessings. Material gifts


Page 263


1 and pastimes tend to obliterate the spiritual idea in con-
 sciousness, leaving one alone and without His glory.



 MRS. EDDY'S CHRISTMAS MESSAGE


 MY HOUSEHOLD


 Beloved: β€” A word to the wise is sufficient. Mother
6 wishes you all a happy Christmas, a feast of Soul and a
 famine of sense.

 Lovingly thine,
9    MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 December 25, 1909

Chapter XIV β€” Contributions to Newspapers and Magazines

Page 264



1    [Boston Herald, May 5, 1900]

 A WORD IN DEFENCE


3 I EVEN hope that those who are kind enough to
 speak well of me may do so honestly and not too
 earnestly, and this seldom, until mankind learn more of
6 my meaning and can speak justly of my living.


 [Boston Globe, November 29, 1900]



 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE THANKS


9 On the threshold of the twentieth century, will you
 please send through the Globe to the people of New
 England, which is the birthplace of Thanksgiving Day, a
12 sentiment on what the last Thanksgiving Day of the
 nineteenth century should signify to all mankind?



 Mrs. Eddy's Response


15 New England's last Thanksgiving Day of this century
 signifies to the minds of men the Bible better understood
 and Truth and Love made more practical; the First
18 Commandment of the Decalogue more imperative, and


Page 265


1 "Love thy neighbor as thyself" more possible and
 pleasurable.

3 It signifies that love, unselfed, knocks more loudly than
 ever before at the heart of humanity and that it finds
 admittance; that revelation, spiritual voice and vision,
6 are less subordinate to material sight and sound and more
 apparent to reason; that evil flourishes less, invests less
 in trusts, loses capital, and is bought at par value; that
9 the Christ-spirit will cleanse the earth of human gore;
 that civilization, peace between nations, and the brother-
 hood of man should be established, and justice plead not
12 vainly in behalf of the sacred rights of individuals, peoples,
 and nations.

 It signifies that the Science of Christianity has dawned
15 upon human thought to appear full-orbed in millennial
 glory; that scientific religion and scientific therapeutics
 are improving the morals and increasing the longevity
18 of mankind, are mitigating and destroying sin, disease,
 and death; that religion and materia medica should be
 no longer tyrannical and proscriptive; that divine Love,
21 impartial and universal, as understood in divine Sci-
 ence, forms the coincidence of the human and divine,
 which fulfils the saying of our great Master, "The king-
24 dom of God is within you;" that the atmosphere of the
 human mind, when cleansed of self and permeated with
 divine Love, will reflect this purified subjective state in
27 clearer skies, less thunderbolts, tornadoes, and extremes of
 heat and cold; that agriculture, manufacture, commerce,
 and wealth should be governed by honesty, indus-
30 try, and justice, reaching out to all classes and peoples.
 For these signs of the times we thank our Father-
 Mother God.


Page 266



 [New York World, December, 1900]


 INSUFFICIENT FREEDOM


3 To my sense, the most imminent dangers confronting
 the coming century are: the robbing of people of life and
 liberty under the warrant of the Scriptures; the claims of
6 politics and of human power, industrial slavery, and insuf-
 ficient freedom of honest competition; and ritual, creed,
 and trusts in place of the Golden Rule, "Whatsoever ye
9 would that men should do to you, do ye even so to them."



 [Concord (N. H.) Monitor, July, 1902]


 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE AND THE TIMES


12 Your article on the decrease of students in the semi-
 naries and the consequent vacancies occurring in the
 pulpits, points unmistakably to the "signs of the times"
15 of which Jesus spoke. This flux and flow in one direc-
 tion, so generally apparent, tends in one ultimate — the
 final spiritualization of all things, of all codes, modes,
18 hypotheses, of man and the universe. How can it be
 otherwise, since God is Spirit and the origin of all that
 really is, and since this great fact is to be verified by the
21 spiritualization of all?

 Since 1877, these special "signs of the times" have in-
 creased year by year. My book, "Science and Health
24 with Key to the Scriptures," was published in 1875.
 Note, if you please, that many points in theology and
 materia medica, at that date undisturbed, are now agitated,
27 modified, and disappearing, and the more spiritual modes
 and significations are adopted.

 It is undoubtedly true that Christian Science is destined


Page 267


1 to become the one and the only religion and therapeutics
 on this planet. And why not, since Christianity is fully
3 demonstrated to be divine Science? Nothing can be cor-
 rect and continue forever which is not divinely scientific,
 for Science is the law of the Mind that is God, who is
6 the originator of all that really is. The Scripture reads:
 "All things were made by Him; and without Him was
 not any thing made that was made." Here let us re-
9 member that God is not the Alpha and Omega of man
 and the universe; He is supreme, infinite, the great for-
 ever, the eternal Mind that hath no beginning and no
12 end, no Alpha and no Omega.



 [New York American, February, 1905]


 HEAVEN


15 Is heaven spiritual?

 Heaven is spiritual. Heaven is harmony, β€” infinite,
 boundless bliss. The dying or the departed enter heaven
18 in proportion to their progress, in proportion to their fit-
 ness to partake of the quality and the quantity of heaven.
 One individual may first awaken from his dream of life
21 in matter with a sense of music; another with that of
 relief from fear or suffering, and still another with a bit-
 ter sense of lost opportunities and remorse. Heaven is
24 the reign of divine Science. Material thought tends to
 obscure spiritual understanding, to darken the true con-
 ception of man's divine Principle, Love, wherein and
27 whereby soul is emancipate and environed with ever-
 lasting Life. Our great Teacher hath said: "Behold, the
 kingdom of God is within you" β€” within man's spiritual
30 understanding of all the divine modes, means, forms, ex-
 pression, and manifestation of goodness and happiness.


Page 268



 [Boston Herald, March 5, 1905]


 PREVENTION AND CURE OF DIVORCE


3 The nuptial vow should never be annulled so long as
 the morale of marriage is preserved. The frequency of
 divorce shows that the imperative nature of the mar-
6 riage relation is losing ground, β€” hence that some funda-
 mental error is engrafted on it. What is this error?
 If the motives of human affection are right, the affec-
9 tions are enduring and achieving. What God hath joined
 together, man cannot sunder.
 Divorce and war should be exterminated according to
12 the Principle of law and gospel, β€” the maintenance of
 individual rights, the justice of civil codes, and the power
 of Truth uplifting the motives of men. Two command-
15 ments of the Hebrew Decalogue, "Thou shalt not commit
 adultery" and "Thou shalt not kill," obeyed, will elimi-
 nate divorce and war. On what hath not a "Thus saith
18 the Lord," I am as silent as the dumb centuries without
 a living Divina.
 This time-world flutters in my thought as an unreal
21 shadow, and I can only solace the sore ills of mankind by
 a lively battle with "the world, the flesh and the devil,"
 in which Love is the liberator and gives man the victory
24 over himself. Truth, canonized by life and love, lays
 the axe at the root of all evil, lifts the curtain on the
 Science of being, the Science of wedlock, of living and of
27 loving, and harmoniously ascends the scale of life. Look
 high enough, and you see the heart of humanity warming
 and winning. Look long enough, and you see male and
30 female one — sex or gender eliminated; you see the des-
 ignation man meaning woman as well, and you see the


Page 269


1 whole universe included in one infinite Mind and reflected
 in the intelligent compound idea, image or likeness, called
3 man, showing forth the infinite divine Principle, Love,
 called God, β€” man wedded to the Lamb, pledged to inno-
 cence, purity, perfection. Then shall humanity have
6 learned that "they which shall be accounted worthy to
 obtain that world, and the resurrection from the dead,
 neither marry, nor are given in marriage: neither can
9 they die any more: for they are equal unto the angels;
 and are the children of God." (Luke 20: 35, 36.) This,
 therefore, is Christ's plan of salvation from divorce.


12    All are but parts of one stupendous whole,
 Whose body nature is, and God the Soul.
 β€” POPE



15    [The Independent, November, 1906]


 HARVEST


 God hath thrust in the sickle, and He is separating the
18 tares from the wheat. This hour is molten in the furnace
 of Soul. Its harvest song is world-wide, world-known,
 world-great. The vine is bringing forth its fruit; the
21 beams of right have healing in their light. The windows
 of heaven are sending forth their rays of reality — even
 Christian Science, pouring out blessing for cursing, and
24 rehearsing: "I will rebuke the devourer for your sakes,
 and he shall not destroy the fruits of your ground."
 "Prove me now herewith, saith the Lord of hosts, if I
27 will not open you the windows of heaven, and pour you
 out a blessing, that there shall not be room enough to
 receive it."

30 The lie and the liar are self-destroyed. Truth is im-


Page 270


1 mortal. "Rejoice, and be exceeding glad: . . . for so
 persecuted they the prophets which were before you."
3 The cycle of good obliterates the epicycle of evil.

 Because of the magnitude of their spiritual import, we
 repeat the signs of these times. In 1905, the First Con-
6 gregational Church, my first religious home in this capital
 city of Concord, N. H., kindly invited me to its one hun-
 dred and seventy-fifth anniversary; the leading editors
9 and newspapers of my native State congratulate me; the
 records of my ancestry attest honesty and valor. Divine
 Love, nearer my consciousness than before, saith: I am
12 rewarding your waiting, and "thy people shall be my
 people."

 Let error rage and imagine a vain thing. Mary Baker
15 Eddy is not dead, and the words of those who say that she
 is are the father of their wish. Her life is proven under
 trial, and evidences "as thy days, so shall thy strength be."
18 Those words of our dear, departing Saviour, breathing
 love for his enemies, fill my heart: "Father, forgive them;
 for they know not what they do." My writings heal the
21 sick, and I thank God that for the past forty years I
 have returned good for evil, and that I can appeal to
 Him as my witness to the truth of this statement.

24 What we love determines what we are. I love the
 prosperity of Zion, be it promoted by Catholic, by Prot-
 estant, or by Christian Science, which anoints with
27 Truth, opening the eyes of the blind and healing the sick.
 I would no more quarrel with a man because of his religion
 than I would because of his art. The divine Principle of
30 Christian Science will ultimately be seen to control both
 religion and art in unity and harmony. God is Spirit,
 and "they that worship Him must worship Him in spirit


Page 271


1 and in truth." If, as the Scriptures declare, God, Spirit,
 is infinite, matter and material sense are null, and there
3 are no vertebrata, mollusca, or radiata.

 When I wrote "Science and Health with Key to the
 Scriptures," I little understood all that I indited; but
6 when I practised its precepts, healing the sick and reform-
 ing the sinner, then I learned the truth of what I had
 written. It is of comparatively little importance what a
9 man thinks or believes he knows; the good that a man does
 is the one thing needful and the sole proof of rightness.



 [The Evening Press, Grand Rapids, Mich., August, 1907]


 MRS. EDDY DESCRIBES HER HUMAN IDEAL


 In a modest, pleasantly situated home in the city of
 Concord, N. H., lives at eighty-six years of age the most
15 discussed woman in all the world. This lady with sweet
 smile and snowy hair is Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy, Founder
 and Leader of Christian Science, beloved of thousands
18 of believers and followers of the thought that has made
 her famous. It was to this aged woman of world-wide
 renown that the editor of The Evening Press addressed
21 this question, requesting the courtesy of a reply: β€”

 "What is nearest and dearest to your heart to-day?"

 Mrs. Eddy's reply will be read with deep interest by all
24 Americans, who, whatever their religious beliefs, cannot
 fail to be impressed by the personality of this remarkable
 woman.



 Mrs. Eddy's Answer


 Editor of The Evening Press: β€” To your courtesy and
 to your question permit me to say that, insomuch as I
30 know myself, what is "nearest and dearest" to my heart


Page 272


1 is an honest man or woman — one who steadfastly and
 actively strives for perfection, one who leavens the loaf
3 of life with justice, mercy, truth, and love.

 Goodness is greatness, and the logic of events pushes
 onward the centuries; hence the Scripture, "The law of
6 the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus hath made me [man] free
 from the law of sin and death."

 This predicate and ultimate of scientific being presents,
9 however, no claim that man is equal to God, for the finite
 is not the altitude of the infinite.

 The real man was, is, and ever shall be the divine ideal,
12 that is, God's image and likeness; and Christian Science
 reveals the divine Principle, the example, the rule, and
 the demonstration of this idealism.

15    Sincerely yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY


 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.



 [Cosmopolitan, November, 1907]


 YOUTH AND YOUNG MANHOOD


 EDITOR'S NOTE. β€” The Cosmopolitan presents this month to its
21 readers a facsimile of an article sent to us by Mrs. Eddy, with the
 corrections on the manuscript reproduced in her own handwriting.
 Not only Mrs. Eddy's own devoted followers, but the public gen-
24 erally, will be interested in this communication from the extraordi-
 nary woman who, nearly eighty-seven years of age, plays so great
 a part in the world and leads with such conspicuous success her very
27 great following.

 Mrs. Eddy writes very rarely for any publications outside of the
 Christian Science periodicals, and our readers will be interested in
30 this presentation of the thought of a mind that has had so much
 influence on this generation.

 The Cosmopolitan gives no editorial indorsement to the teachings


Page 273


1 of Christian Science, it has no religious opinions or predilections to
 put before its readers. This manuscript is presented simply as an
3 interesting and remarkable proof of Mrs. Eddy's ability in old age
 to vindicate in her own person the value of her teachings.

 Certainly, Christian Scientists, enthusiastic in their belief, are
6 fortunate in being able to point to a Leader far beyond the allotted
 years of man, emerging triumphantly from all attacks upon her, and
 guiding with remarkable skill, determination, and energy a very
9 great organization that covers practically the civilized world.

 King David, the Hebrew bard, sang, "I have been
 young, and now am old; yet have I not seen the right-
12 eous forsaken, nor his seed begging bread."

 I for one accept his wise deduction, his ultimate or
 spiritual sense of thinking, feeling, and acting, and its
15 reward. This sense of rightness acquired by experience
 and wisdom, should be early presented to youth and to
 manhood in order to forewarn and forearm humanity.

18 The ultimatum of life here and hereafter is utterly
 apart from a material or personal sense of pleasure, pain,
 joy, sorrow, life, and death. The truth of life, or life in
21 truth, is a scientific knowledge that is portentous; and
 is won only by the spiritual understanding of Life as God,
 good, ever-present good, and therefore life eternal.

24 You will agree with me that the material body is mortal,
 but Soul is immortal; also that the five personal senses
 are perishable: they lapse and relapse, come and go, until
27 at length they are consigned to dust. But say you,
 "Man awakes from the dream of death in possession of
 the five personal senses, does he not?" Yes, because
30 death alone does not awaken man in God's image
 and likeness. The divine Science of Life alone gives

 Copyright, 1907, by Mary Baker G. Eddy. Renewed, 1935.


Page 274


1 the true sense of life and of righteousness, and demon-
 strates the Principle of life eternal; even the Life that
3 is Soul apart from the so-called life of matter or the
 material senses.

 Death alone does not absolve man from a false material
6 sense of life, but goodness, holiness, and love do this, and
 so consummate man's being with the harmony of heaven;
 the omnipotence, omnipresence, and omniscience of Life,
9 even its all-power, all-presence, all-Science.

 Dear reader, right thinking, right feeling, and right
 acting — honesty, purity, unselfishness — in youth tend
12 to success, intellectuality, and happiness in manhood.

 To begin rightly enables one to end rightly, and thus it is
 that one achieves the Science of Life, demonstrates health,
15 holiness, and immortality.



 [Boston Herald, April, 1908]


 MRS. EDDY SENDS THANKS


18 Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy has sent the following to the
 Herald: β€”
 Will the dear Christian Scientists accept my thanks
21 for their magnificent gifts, and allow me to say that I am
 not fond of an abundance of material presents; but I
 am cheered and blessed when beholding Christian healing,
24 unity among brethren, and love to God and man; this
 is my crown of rejoicing, for it demonstrates Christian
 Science.

27 The Psalmist sang, "That thy way may be known
 upon earth, thy saving health among all nations."


Page 275



1     [Minneapolis (Minn.) News]


 UNIVERSAL FELLOWSHIP


3 Christian Science can and does produce universal
 fellowship. As the sequence of divine Love it explains
 love, it lives love, it demonstrates love. The human,
6 material, so-called senses do not perceive this fact until
 they are controlled by divine Love; hence the Scripture,
 "Be still, and know that I am God."


9 BROOKLINE, MASS.,


 May 1, 1908



 [New York Herald]


 MRS. EDDY'S OWN DENIAL THAT SHE IS ILL
 Permit me to say, the report that I am sick (and I
 trust the desire thereof) is dead, and should be buried.
15 Whereas the fact that I am well and keenly alive to the
 truth of being — the Love that is Life — is sure and stead-
 fast. I go out in my carriage daily, and have omitted
18 my drive but twice since I came to Massachusetts.
 Either my work, the demands upon my time at home, or
 the weather, is all that prevents my daily drive.

21 Working and praying for my dear friends' and my dear
 enemies' health, happiness, and holiness, the true sense
 of being goes on.

24 Doing unto others as we would that they do by us, is
 immortality's self. Intrepid, self-oblivious love fulfils the
 law and is self-sustaining and eternal. With white-winged
27 charity brooding over all, spiritually understood and de-
 monstrated, let us unite in one Te Deum of praise.


 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
30    May 15, 1908


Page 276



 [Christian Science Sentinel, May 16, 1908]


 TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN


3 Since Mrs. Eddy is watched, as one watches a criminal
 or a sick person, she begs to say, in her own behalf, that
 she is neither; therefore to be criticized or judged by
6 either a daily drive or a dignified stay at home, is super-
 fluous. When accumulating work requires it, or because
 of a preference to remain within doors she omits her
9 drive, do not strain at gnats or swallow camels over
 it, but try to be composed and resigned to the shock-
 ing fact that she is minding her own business, and rec-
12 ommends this surprising privilege to all her dear friends
 and enemies.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



15    [Boston Post, November, 1908]


 POLITICS


 Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy has always believed that those
18 who are entitled to vote should do so, and she has also
 believed that in such matters no one should seek to dictate
 the actions of others.

21 In reply to a number of requests for an expression of
 her political views, she has given out this statement: β€”


 I am asked, "What are your politics?" I have none, in
24 reality, other than to help support a righteous government;
 to love God supremely, and my neighbor as myself.

Chapter XV β€” Peace and War

Page 277



1     [Boston Herald, March, 1898]


 OTHER WAYS THAN BY WAR


3 IN reply to your question, "Should difficulties between
 the United States and Spain be settled peacefully by
 statesmanship and diplomacy, in a way honorable and
6 satisfactory to both nations?" I will say I can see no
 other way of settling difficulties between individuals and
 nations than by means of their wholesome tribunals,
9 equitable laws, and sound, well-kept treaties.

 A bullet in a man's heart never settles the question of
 his life. The mental animus goes on, and urges that the
12 answer to the sublime question as to man's life shall come
 from God and that its adjustment shall be according to
 His laws. The characters and lives of men determine the
15 peace, prosperity, and life of nations. Killing men is
 not consonant with the higher law whereby wrong and
 injustice are righted and exterminated.

18 Whatever weighs in the eternal scale of equity and
 mercy tips the beam on the right side, where the immortal
 words and deeds of men alone can settle all questions
21 amicably and satisfactorily. But if our nation's rights or
 honor were seized, every citizen would be a soldier and
 woman would be armed with power girt for the hour.


Page 278


1 To coincide with God's government is the proper in-
 centive to the action of all nations. If His purpose for
3 peace is to be subserved by the battle's plan or by the
 intervention of the United States, so that the Cubans
 may learn to make war no more, this means and end
6 will be accomplished.

 The government of divine Love is supreme. Love rules
 the universe, and its edict hath gone forth: "Thou shalt
9 have no other gods before me," and "Love thy neighbor
 as thyself." Let us have the molecule of faith that
 removes mountains, β€” faith armed with the understand-
12 ing of Love, as in divine Science, where right reigneth.
 The revered President and Congress of our favored land
 are in God's hands.



15    [Boston Globe, December, 1904]


 HOW STRIFE MAY BE STILLED


 Follow that which is good.

18 A Japanese may believe in a heaven for him who dies
 in defence of his country, but the steadying, elevating
 power of civilization destroys such illusions and should
21 overcome evil with good.

 Nothing is gained by fighting, but much is lost.

 Peace is the promise and reward of rightness. Gov-
24 ernments have no right to engraft into civilization the
 burlesque of uncivil economics. War is in itself an evil,
 barbarous, devilish. Victory in error is defeat in Truth.
27 War is not in the domain of good; war weakens power
 and must finally fall, pierced by its own sword.

 The Principle of all power is God, and God is Love.
30 Whatever brings into human thought or action an ele-


Page 279


1 ment opposed to Love, is never requisite, never a neces-
 sity, and is not sanctioned by the law of God, the law
3 of Love. The Founder of Christianity said: "My
 peace I give unto you: not as the world giveth, give
 I unto you."

6 Christian Science reinforces Christ's sayings and doings.
 The Principle of Christian Science demonstrates peace.
 Christianity is the chain of scientific being reappearing in
9 all ages, maintaining its obvious correspondence with the
 Scriptures and uniting all periods in the design of God.
 The First Commandment in the Hebrew Decalogue β€”
12 "Thou shalt have no other gods before me" β€” obeyed,
 is sufficient to still all strife. God is the divine Mind.
 Hence the sequence: Had all peoples one Mind, peace
15 would reign.

 God is Father, infinite, and this great truth, when
 understood in its divine metaphysics, will establish the
18 brotherhood of man, end wars, and demonstrate "on
 earth peace, good will toward men."



 [Christian Science Sentinel, June 17, 1905]


 THE PRAYER FOR PEACE


 Dearly Beloved: β€” I request that every member of The
 Mother Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston, pray each
24 day for the amicable settlement of the war between
 Russia and Japan; and pray that God bless that great
 nation and those islands of the sea with peace and
27 prosperity.

 MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 June 13, 1905


Page 280


1 REV. MARY BAKER EDDY,
 Pleasant View, Concord, N. H.
3 Beloved Leader: β€” We acknowledge with rejoicing the
 receipt of your message, which again gives assurance of
 your watchful care and guidance in our behalf and of your
6 loving solicitude for the welfare of the nations and the
 peaceful tranquillity of the race. We rejoice also in this
 new reminder from you that all the things which make for
9 the establishment of a universal, loving brotherhood on
 earth may be accomplished through the righteous prayer
 which availeth much.

12       WILLIAM B. JOHNSON, Clerk
 BOSTON, MASS., June 13, 1905



 [Christian Science Sentinel, July 1, 1905]


 "HEAR, O ISRAEL: THE LORD OUR GOD IS ONE LORD"


 I now request that the members of my church cease
 special prayer for the peace of nations, and cease in full
18 faith that God does not hear our prayers only because of
 oft speaking, but that He will bless all the inhabitants
 of the earth, and none can stay His hand nor say unto
21 Him, What doest Thou? Out of His allness He must
 bless all with His own truth and love.

 MARY BAKER EDDY
24 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 June 27, 1905



 [Christian Science Sentinel, July 22, 1905]


 AN EXPLANATION


 In no way nor manner did I request my church to cease
 praying for the peace of nations, but simply to pause in
30 special prayer for peace. And why this asking? Because


Page 281


1 a spiritual foresight of the nations' drama presented
 itself and awakened a wiser want, even to know how
3 to pray other than the daily prayer of my church, β€”
 "Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done in earth, as it
 is in heaven."

6 I cited, as our present need, faith in God's disposal of
 events. Faith full-fledged, soaring to the Horeb height,
 brings blessings infinite, and the spirit of this orison is the
9 fruit of rightness, β€” "on earth peace, good will toward
 men." On this basis the brotherhood of all peoples is
 established; namely, one God, one Mind, and "Love thy
12 neighbor as thyself," the basis on which and by which
 the infinite God, good, the Father-Mother Love, is ours
 and we are His in divine Science.



15    [Boston Globe, August, 1905]


 PRACTISE THE GOLDEN RULE


 [Telegram]


18 "Official announcement of peace between Russia and
 Japan seems to offer an appropriate occasion for the ex-
 pression of congratulations and views by representative
21 persons. Will you do us the kindness to wire a sentiment
 on some phase of the subject, on the ending of the war,
 the effect on the two parties to the treaty of Portsmouth,
24 the influence which President Roosevelt has exerted for
 peace, or the advancement of the cause of arbitration."
 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


27 TO THE EDITOR OF THE Globe:


 War will end when nations are ripe for progress. The
 treaty of Portsmouth is not an executive power, although


Page 282


1 its purpose is good will towards men. The government of
 a nation is its peace maker or breaker.

3 I believe strictly in the Monroe doctrine, in our Con-
 stitution, and in the laws of God. While I admire the
 faith and friendship of our chief executive in and for all
6 nations, my hope must still rest in God, and the Scrip-
 tural injunction, β€” "Look unto me, and be ye saved, all
 the ends of the earth."

9 The Douma recently adopted in Russia is no uncer-
 tain ray of dawn. Through the wholesome chastise-
 ments of Love, nations are helped onward towards
12 justice, righteousness, and peace, which are the land-
 marks of prosperity. In order to apprehend more,
 we must practise what we already know of the Golden
15 Rule, which is to all mankind a light emitting light.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 MRS. EDDY AND THE PEACE MOVEMENT


18 MR. HAYNE DAVIS, American Secretary,
 International Conciliation Committee,
 542 Fifth Avenue, New York City


21 Dear Mr. Davis: β€” Deeply do I thank you for the
 interest you manifest in the success of the Association
 for International Conciliation. It is of paramount im-
24 portance to every son and daughter of all nations under
 the sunlight of the law and gospel.

 May God guide and prosper ever this good endeavor.

27     Most truly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
30    April 3, 1907


Page 283



 MRS. EDDY'S ACKNOWLEDGMENT OF APPOINTMENT
 AS FONDATEUR OF THE ASSOCIATION FOR
3     INTERNATIONAL CONCILIATION


 FIRST CHURCH OP CHRIST, SCIENTIST, NEW YORK CITY,
 MR. JOHN D. HIGGINS, Clerk


6 My Beloved Brethren: β€” Your appointment of me as
 Fondateur of the Association for International Concilia-
 tion is most gracious.

9 To aid in this holy purpose is the leading impetus of
 my life. Many years have I prayed and labored for the
 consummation of "on earth peace, good will toward
12 men." May the fruits of said grand Association, preg-
 nant with peace, find their birthright in divine Science.

 Right thoughts and deeds are the sovereign remedies
15 for all earth's woe. Sin is its own enemy. Right has its
 recompense, even though it be betrayed. Wrong may be
 a man's highest idea of right until his grasp of goodness
18 grows stronger. It is always safe to be just.

 When pride, self, and human reason reign, injustice is
 rampant.

21 Individuals, as nations, unite harmoniously on the basis
 of justice, and this is accomplished when self is lost in
 Love — or God's own plan of salvation. "To do justly,
24 and to love mercy, and to walk humbly" is the stand-
 ard of Christian Science.

 Human law is right only as it patterns the divine.
27 Consolation and peace are based on the enlightened sense
 of God's government.

 Lured by fame, pride, or gold, success is danger-
30 ous, but the choice of folly never fastens on the good


Page 284


1 or the great. Because of my rediscovery of Chris-
 tian Science, and honest efforts (however meagre)
3 to help human purpose and peoples, you may have
 accorded me more than is deserved, β€” but ’tis sweet
 to be remembered.

6     Lovingly yours,
 MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
9   April 22, 1907


 [Concord (N. H.) Daily Patriot]



 A CORRECTION


12 Dear Editor: β€” In the issue of your good paper, the
 Patriot, May 21, when referring to the Memorial service
 of the E. E. Sturtevant Post held in my church building,
15 it read, "It is said to be the first time in the history of
 the church in this country that such an event has oc-
 curred." In your next issue please correct this mistake.
18 Since my residence in Concord, 1889, the aforesaid
 Memorial service has been held annually in some church
 in Concord, N. H.

21 When the Veterans indicated their desire to assemble
 in my church building, I consented thereto only as other
 churches had done. But here let me say that I am
24 absolutely and religiously opposed to war, whereas I do
 believe implicitly in the full efficacy of divine Love to
 conciliate by arbitration all quarrels between nations
27 and peoples.

 MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
30    May 28, 1907


Page 285



 TO A STUDENT


 Dear Student: β€” Please accept my thanks for your
3 kind invitation, on behalf of the Civic League of San
 Francisco, to attend the Industrial Peace Conference,
 and accept my hearty congratulations.

6 I cannot spare the time requisite to meet with you;
 but I rejoice with you in all your wise endeavors for
 industrial, civic, and national peace. Whatever adorns
9 Christianity crowns the great purposes of life and demon-
 strates the Science of being. Bloodshed, war, and op-
 pression belong to the darker ages, and shall be relegated
12 to oblivion.

 It is a matter for rejoicing that the best, bravest, most
 cultured men and women of this period unite with us in
15 the grand object embodied in the Association for Inter-
 national Conciliation.

 In Revelation 2: 26, St. John says: "And he that
18 overcometh, and keepeth my works unto the end, to
 him will I give power over the nations." In the words
 of St. Paul, I repeat: β€”

21 "And they neither found me in the temple disputing
 with any man, neither raising up the people, neither
 in the synagogues, nor in the city: neither can they
24 prove the things whereof they now accuse me. But
 this I confess unto thee, that after the way which
 they call heresy, so worship I the God of my fathers,
27 believing all things which are written in the law and in
 the prophets."

 Most sincerely yours,
30       MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.


Page 286



 [The Christian Science Journal, May, 1908]


 WAR


3 For many years I have prayed daily that there be
 no more war, no more barbarous slaughtering of our
 fellow-beings; prayed that all the peoples on earth and
6 the islands of the sea have one God, one Mind; love
 God supremely, and love their neighbor as themselves.
 National disagreements can be, and should be, arbi-
9 trated wisely, fairly; and fully settled.

 It is unquestionable, however, that at this hour
 the armament of navies is necessary, for the purpose
12 of preventing war and preserving peace among nations.

Chapter XVI β€” Tributes

Page 287



1   [New York Mail and Express]


 MONUMENT TO BARON AND BARONESS DE HIRSCH


3 THE movement to erect a monument to the late
 Baron and Baroness de Hirsch enlists my hearty
 sympathy. They were unquestionably used in a re-
6 markable degree as instruments of divine Love.

 Divine Love reforms, regenerates, giving to human
 weakness strength, serving as admonition, instruction, and
9 governing all that really is. Divine Love is the noumenon
 and phenomenon, the Principle and practice of divine
 metaphysics. Love talked and not lived is a poor shift
12 for the weak and worldly. Love lived in a court or cot
 is God exemplified, governing governments, industries,
 human rights, liberty, life.

15 In love for man we gain the only and true sense of love
 for God, practical good, and so rise and still rise to His
 image and likeness, and are made partakers of that Mind
18 whence springs the universe.

 Philanthropy is loving, ameliorative, revolutionary; it
 wakens lofty desires, new possibilities, achievements, and
21 energies; it lays the axe at the root of the tree that
 bringeth not forth good fruit; it touches thought to
 spiritual issues, systematizes action, and insures success;


Page 288


1 it starts the wheels of right reason, revelation, justice, and
 mercy; it unselfs men and pushes on the ages. Love
3 unfolds marvellous good and uncovers hidden evil. The
 philanthropist or reformer gives little thought to self-
 defence; his life's incentive and sacrifice need no apology.
6 The good done and the good to do are his ever-present
 reward.

 Love for mankind is the elevator of the human race;
9 it demonstrates Truth and reflects divine Love. Good is
 divinely natural. Evil is unnatural; it has no origin in
 the nature of God, and He is the Father of all.

12 The great Galilean Prophet was, is, the reformer of re-
 formers. His piety partook not of the travesties of human
 opinions, pagan mysticisms, tribal religion, Greek phi-
15 losophy, creed, dogma, or materia medica. The divine
 Mind was his only instrumentality in religion or medi-
 cine. The so-called laws of matter he eschewed; with
18 him matter was not the auxiliary of Spirit. He never
 appealed to matter to perform the functions of Spirit,
 divine Love.

21 Jesus cast out evil, disease, death, showing that all
 suffering is commensurate with sin; therefore, he cast
 out devils and healed the sick. He showed that every
24 effect or amplification of wrong will revert to the wrong-
 doer; that sin punishes itself; hence his saying, "Sin
 no more, lest a worse thing come unto thee." Love
27 atones for sin through love that destroys sin. His rod
 is love.

 We cannot remake ourselves, but we can make the
30 best of what God has made. We can know that all is
 good because God made all, and that evil is not a
 fatherly grace.


Page 289


1 All education is work. The thing most important is
 what we do, not what we say. God's open secret is seen
3 through grace, truth, and love.

 I enclose a check for five hundred dollars for the
 De Hirsch monument fund.



 TRIBUTES TO QUEEN VICTORIA


 MR. WILLIAM B. JOHNSON, C.S.B., Clerk


 Beloved Student: β€” I deem it proper that The Mother
9 Church of Christ, Scientist, in Boston, Massachusetts, the
 first church of Christian Science known on earth, should
 upon this solemn occasion congregate; that a special meet-
12 ing of its First Members convene for the sacred purpose of
 expressing our deep sympathy with the bereaved nation,
 its loss and the world's loss, in the sudden departure of
15 the late lamented Victoria, Queen of Great Britain and
 Empress of India, β€” long honored, revered, beloved.
 "God save the Queen" is heard no more in England, but
18 this shout of love lives on in the heart of millions.

 With love,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

21 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 January 27, 1901


 It being inconvenient for me to attend the memorial
24 meeting in the South Congregational church on Sunday
 evening, February 3, I herewith send a few words of con-
 dolence, which may be read on that tender occasion.

27 I am interested in a meeting to be held in the capi-
 tal of my native State in memoriam of the late lamented
 Victoria, Queen of Great Britain and Empress of India.


Page 290


1 It betokens a love and a loss felt by the strong hearts
 of New England and the United States. When contem-
3 plating this sudden international bereavement, the near
 seems afar, the distant nigh, and the tried and true seem
 few. The departed Queen's royal and imperial honors
6 lose their lustre in the tomb, but her personal virtues can
 never be lost. Those live on in the affection of nations.

 Few sovereigns have been as venerable, revered, and
9 beloved as this noble woman, born in 1819, married in
 1840, and deceased the first month of the new century.



 LETTER TO MRS. McKINLEY


12 My Dear Mrs. McKinley: β€” My soul reaches out to God
 for your support, consolation, and victory. Trust in Him
 whose love enfolds thee. "Thou wilt keep him in perfect
15 peace, whose mind is stayed on Thee: because he trusteth
 in Thee." "Out of the depths have I cried unto Thee."
 Divine Love is never so near as when all earthly joys seem
18 most afar.

 Thy tender husband, our nation's chief magistrate, has
 passed earth's shadow into Life's substance. Through
21 a momentary mist he beheld the dawn. He awaits to
 welcome you where no arrow wounds the eagle soaring,
 where no partings are for love, where the high and holy
24 call you again to meet.

 "I knew that Thou hearest me always," are the words of
 him who suffered and subdued sorrow. Hold this attitude
27 of mind, and it will remove the sackcloth from thy home.

 With love,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

30 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 September 14, 1901


Page 291



 TRIBUTE TO PRESIDENT McKINLEY


 Imperative, accumulative, holy demands rested on the
3 life and labors of our late beloved President, William
 McKinley. Presiding over the destinies of a nation
 meant more to him than a mere rehearsal of aphorisms,
6 a uniting of breaches soon to widen, a quiet assent or dis-
 sent. His work began with heavy strokes, measured
 movements, reaching from the infinitesimal to the
9 infinite. It began by warming the marble of politics
 into zeal according to wisdom, quenching the vol-
 canoes of partizanship, and uniting the interests of all
12 peoples; and it ended with a universal good overcoming
 evil.

 His home relations enfolded a wealth of affection, β€” a
15 tenderness not talked but felt and lived. His humanity,
 weighed in the scales of divinity, was not found wanting.
 His public intent was uniform, consistent, sympathetic,
18 and so far as it fathomed the abyss of difficulties was
 wise, brave, unselfed. May his history waken a tone
 of truth that shall reverberate, renew euphony, empha-
21 size humane power, and bear its banner into the vast
 forever.

 While our nation's ensign of peace and prosperity
24 waves over land and sea, while her reapers are strong,
 her sheaves garnered, her treasury filled, she is suddenly
 stricken, β€” called to mourn the loss of her renowned
27 leader! Tears blend with her triumphs. She stops to
 think, to mourn, yea, to pray, that the God of harvests
 send her more laborers, who, while they work for their
30 own country, shall sacredly regard the liberty of other
 peoples and the rights of man.


Page 292


1 What cannot love and righteousness achieve for the
 race? All that can be accomplished, and more than his-
3 tory has yet recorded. All good that ever was written,
 taught, or wrought comes from God and human faith in
 the right. Through divine Love the right government is
6 assimilated, the way pointed out, the process shortened,
 and the joy of acquiescence consummated. May God
 sanctify our nation's sorrow in this wise, and His rod
9 and His staff comfort the living as it did the departing.
 O may His love shield, support, and comfort the chief
 mourner at the desolate home!



 POWER OF PRAYER


 My answer to the inquiry, "Why did Christians of every
 sect in the United States fail in their prayers to save
15 the life of President McKinley," is briefly this: Insuffi-
 cient faith or spiritual understanding, and a compound of
 prayers in which one earnest, tender desire works uncon-
18 sciously against the modus operandi of another, would
 prevent the result desired. In the June, 1901, Message
 to my church in Boston, I refer to the effect of one
21 human desire or belief unwittingly neutralizing another,
 though both are equally sincere.

 In the practice of materia medica, croton oil is not mixed
24 with morphine to remedy dysentery, for those drugs are
 supposed to possess opposite qualities and so to produce
 opposite effects. The spirit of the prayer of the righteous
27 heals the sick, but this spirit is of God, and the divine
 Mind is the same yesterday, to-day, and forever; where-
 as the human mind is a compound of faith and doubt,
30 of fear and hope, of faith in truth and faith in error.


Page 293


1 The knowledge that all things are possible to God ex-
 cludes doubt, but differing human concepts as to the
3 divine power and purpose of infinite Mind, and the so-
 called power of matter, act as the different properties of
 drugs are supposed to act — one against the other — and
6 this compound of mind and matter neutralizes itself.

 Our lamented President, in his loving acquiescence,
 believed that his martyrdom was God's way. Hun-
9 dreds, thousands of others believed the same, and hun-
 dreds of thousands who prayed for him feared that the
 bullet would prove fatal. Even the physicians may have
12 feared this.

 These conflicting states of the human mind, of trembling
 faith, hope, and of fear, evinced a lack of the absolute
15 understanding of God's omnipotence, and thus they pre-
 vented the power of absolute Truth from reassuring the
 mind and through the mind resuscitating the body of
18 the patient.

 The divine power and poor human sense — yea, the spirit
 and the flesh — struggled, and to mortal sense the flesh pre-
21 vailed. Had prayer so fervently offered possessed no
 opposing element, and President McKinley's recovery
 been regarded as wholly contingent on the power of God,
24 β€” on the power of divine Love to overrule the pur-
 poses of hate and the law of Spirit to control matter, β€”
 the result would have been scientific, and the patient
27 would have recovered.

 St. Paul writes: "For the law of the Spirit of life in
 Christ Jesus hath made me free from the law of sin and
30 death." And the Saviour of man saith: "What things
 soever ye desire, when ye pray, believe that ye receive
 them, and ye shall have them." Human governments


Page 294


1 maintain the right of the majority to rule. Christian
 Scientists are yet in a large minority on the subject of
3 divine metaphysics; but they improve the morals and the
 lives of men, and they heal the sick on the basis that God
 has all power, is omnipotent, omniscient, omnipresent,
6 supreme over all.

 In a certain city the Master "did not many mighty
 works there because of their unbelief," β€” because of the
9 mental counteracting elements, the startled or the un-
 righteous contradicting minds of mortals. And if he were
 personally with us to-day, he would rebuke whatever
12 accords not with a full faith and spiritual knowledge of
 God. He would mightily rebuke a single doubt of the
 ever-present power of divine Spirit to control all the con-
15 ditions of man and the universe.

 If the skilful surgeon or the faithful M.D. is not dis-
 mayed by a fruitless use of the knife or the drug, has not
18 the Christian Scientist with his conscious understanding
 of omnipotence, in spite of the constant stress of the
 hindrances previously mentioned, reason for his faith in
21 what is shown him by God's works?



 ON THE DEATH OF POPE LEO XIII, JULY 20, 1903


 The sad, sudden announcement of the decease of Pope
24 Leo XIII, touches the heart and will move the pen of
 millions. The intellectual, moral, and religious energy
 of this illustrious pontiff have animated the Church of
27 Rome for one quarter of a century. The august ruler
 of two hundred and fifty million human beings has now
 passed through the shadow of death into the great forever.
30 The court of the Vatican mourns him; his relatives
 shed "the unavailing tear." He is the loved and lost


Page 295


1 of many millions. I sympathize with those who mourn,
 but rejoice in knowing our dear God comforts such with
3 the blessed assurance that life is not lost; its influence
 remains in the minds of men, and divine Love holds
 its substance safe in the certainty of immortality.
6 "In Him was life; and the life was the light of men."
 (John 1: 4.)



 A TRIBUTE TO THE BIBLE


 LETTER OF THANKS FOR THE GIFT OF A COPY OF MARTIN LUTHER'S
 TRANSLATION INTO GERMAN OF THE BIBLE, PRINTED IN
 NUREM    BERG IN 1733


12 Dear Student: β€” I am in grateful receipt of your time-
 worn Bible in German. This Book of books is also the
 gift of gifts; and kindness in its largest, profoundest
15 sense is goodness. It was kind of you to give it to me.
 I thank you for it.

 Christian Scientists are fishers of men. The Bible is
18 our sea-beaten rock. It guides the fishermen. It stands
 the storm. It engages the attention and enriches the
 being of all men.



 A BENEDICTION
 [Copy of Cablegram]


 COUNTESS OF DUNMORE AND FAMILY,
24  55 Lancaster Gate, West, London, England


 Divine Love is your ever-present help. You, I, and
 mankind have cause to lament the demise of Lord Dun-
27 more; but as the Christian Scientist, the servant of God
 and man, he still lives, loves, labors.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

30 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 August 31, 1907


Page 296



 HON. CLARENCE A. BUSKIRK'S LECTURE


 The able discourse of our "learned judge," his flash of
3 flight and insight, lays the axe "unto the root of the
 trees," and shatters whatever hinders the Science of
 being.
6    MARY BAKER EDDY
 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 October 14, 1907



 "HEAR, O ISRAEL"


 The late lamented Christian Scientist brother and the
 publisher of my books, Joseph Armstrong, C.S.D., is not
12 dead, neither does he sleep nor rest from his labors in
 divine Science; and his works do follow him. Evil has no
 power to harm, to hinder, or to destroy the real spiritual
15 man. He is wiser to-day, healthier and happier, than
 yesterday. The mortal dream of life, substance, or mind
 in matter, has been lessened, and the reward of good
18 and punishment of evil and the waking out of his Adam-
 dream of evil will end in harmony, β€” evil powerless, and
 God, good, omnipotent and infinite.

21       MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 December 10, 1907



 MISS CLARA BARTON


 In the New York American, January 6, 1908, Miss
 Clara Barton dipped her pen in my heart, and traced its
27 emotions, motives, and object. Then, lifting the curtains
 of mortal mind, she depicted its rooms, guests, standing
 and seating capacity, and thereafter gave her discovery


Page 297


1 to the press. Now if Miss Barton were not a venerable
 soldier, patriot, philanthropist, moralist, and states-
3 woman, I should shrink from such salient praise. But
 in consideration of all that Miss Barton really is,
 and knowing that she can bear the blows which may
6 follow said description of her soul-visit, I will say, Amen,
 so be it.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

9  PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 January l0, 1908



 THERE IS NO DEATH


12 A suppositional gust of evil in this evil world is the
 dark hour that precedes the dawn. This gust blows
 away the baubles of belief, for there is in reality no evil,
15 no disease, no death; and the Christian Scientist who
 believes that he dies, gains a rich blessing of disbelief in
 death, and a higher realization of heaven.

18 My beloved Edward A. Kimball, whose clear, correct
 teaching of Christian Science has been and is an inspira-
 tion to the whole field, is here now as veritably as when
21 he visited me a year ago. If we would awaken to this
 recognition, we should see him here and realize that he
 never died; thus demonstrating the fundamental truth
24 of Christian Science.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 MRS. EDDY'S HISTORY


27 I have not had sufficient interest in the matter to read
 or to note from others' reading what the enemies of
 Christian Science are said to be circulating regarding my
30 history, but my friends have read Sibyl Wilbur's book,


Page 298


1 "The Life of Mary Baker Eddy," and request the privi-
 lege of buying, circulating, and recommending it to the
3 public. I briefly declare that nothing has occurred in my
 life's experience which, if correctly narrated and under-
 stood, could injure me; and not a little is already re-
6 ported of the good accomplished therein, the self-sacrifice,
 etc., that has distinguished all my working years.

 I thank Miss Wilbur and the Concord Publishing Com-
9 pany for their unselfed labors in placing this book before
 the public, and hereby say that they have my permission
 to publish and circulate this work.

12    MARY BAKER EDDY

Chapter XVII β€” Answers to Criticisms

Page 299



1    [Letter to the New York Commercial Advertiser]


 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE AND THE CHURCH


3 OVER the signature "A Priest of the Church,"
 somebody, kindly referring to my address to First
 Church of Christ, Scientist, in Concord, N. H., writes:
6 "If they [Christian Scientists] have any truth to reveal
 which has not been revealed by the church or the Bible,
 let them make it known to the world, before they claim
9 the allegiance of mankind."

 I submit that Christian Science has been widely made
 known to the world, and that it contains the entire
12 truth of the Scriptures, as also whatever portions of truth
 may be found in creeds. In addition to this, Christian
 Science presents the demonstrable divine Principle and
15 rules of the Bible, hitherto undiscovered in the trans-
 lations of the Bible and lacking in the creeds.

 Therefore I query: Do Christians, who believe in sin,
18 and especially those who claim to pardon sin, believe
 that God is good, and that God is All? Christian
 Scientists firmly subscribe to this statement; yea, they
21 understand it and the law governing it, namely, that
 God, the divine Principle of Christian Science, is


Page 300


1 "of purer eyes than to behold evil." On this basis they
 endeavor to cast out the belief in sin or in aught
3 besides God, thus enabling the sinner to overcome
 sin according to the Scripture, "Work out your own
 salvation with fear and trembling. For it is God which
6 worketh in you both to will and to do of His good
 pleasure."

 Does he who believes in sickness know or declare that
9 there is no sickness or disease, and thus heal disease?
 Christian Scientists, who do not believe in the reality
 of disease, heal disease, for the reason that the divine
12 Principle of Christian Science, demonstrated, heals the
 most inveterate diseases. Does he who believes in
 death understand or aver that there is no death, and
15 proceed to overcome "the last enemy" and raise the
 dying to health? Christian Scientists raise the dying to
 health in Christ's name, and are striving to reach the
18 summit of Jesus' words, "If a man keep my saying, he
 shall never see death."

 If, as this kind priest claims, these things, inseparable
21 from Christian Science, are common to his church, we
 propose that he make known his doctrine to the world,
 that he teach the Christianity which heals, and send out
24 students according to Christ's command, "Go ye into all
 the world, and preach the gospel to every creature,"
 "Heal the sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast
27 out devils."

 The tree is known by its fruit. If, as he implies,
 Christian Science is not a departure from the first cen-
30 tury churches, β€” as surely it is not, β€” why persecute
 it? Are the churches opening fire on their own religious
 ranks, or are they attacking a peaceable party quite


Page 301


1 their antipode? Christian Science is a reflected glory;
 it shines with borrowed rays — from Light emitting light.
3 Christian Science is the new-old Christianity, that which
 was and is the revelation of divine Love.

 The present flux in religious faith may be found to be
6 a healthy fermentation, by which the lees of religion will
 be lost, dogma and creed will pass off in scum, leaving a
 solid Christianity at the bottom — a foundation for the
9 builders. I would that all the churches on earth could
 unite as brethren in one prayer: Father, teach us the
 life of Love.

12 PLEASANT VEIW, CONCORD, N. H.,
 March 22, 1899



 [Letter to the New York World]


 FAITH IN METAPHYSICS


 Is faith in divine metaphysics insanity?

 All sin is insanity, but healing the sick is not sin.
18 There is a universal insanity which mistakes fable for
 fact throughout the entire testimony of the material
 senses. Those unfortunate people who are committed to
21 insane asylums are only so many well-defined instances
 of the baneful effects of illusion on mortal minds and
 bodies. The supposition that we can correct insanity
24 by the use of drugs is in itself a species of insanity. A
 drug cannot of itself go to the brain or affect cerebral
 conditions in any manner whatever. Drugs cannot
27 remove inflammation, restore disordered functions, or
 destroy disease without the aid of mind.

 If mind be absent from the body, drugs can produce
30 no curative effect upon the body. The mind must


Page 302


1 be, is, the vehicle of all modes of healing disease and of
 producing disease. Through the mandate of mind or
3 according to a man's belief, can he be helped or be killed
 by a drug; but mind, not matter, produces the result in
 either case.

6 Neither life nor death, health nor disease, can be pro-
 duced on a corpse, whence mind has departed. This
 self-evident fact is proof that mind is the cause of all
9 effect made manifest through so-called matter. The
 general craze is that matter masters mind; the specific
 insanity is that brain, matter, is insane.



12      [Letter to the New York Herald]


 REPLY TO MARK TWAIN


 It is a fact well understood that I begged the students
15 who first gave me the endearing appellative "Mother,"
 not to name me thus. But without my consent, the use
 of the word spread like wildfire. I still must think the
18 name is not applicable to me. I stand in relation to
 this century as a Christian Discoverer, Founder, and
 Leader. I regard self-deification as blasphemous. I may
21 be more loved, but I am less lauded, pampered, provided
 for, and cheered than others before me — and where-
 fore? Because Christian Science is not yet popular, and
24 I refuse adulation.

 My first visit to The Mother Church after it was built
 and dedicated pleased me, and the situation was satisfac-
27 tory. The dear members wanted to greet me with escort
 and the ringing of bells, but I declined and went alone in
 my carriage to the church, entered it, and knelt in thanks
30 upon the steps of its altar. There the foresplendor of


Page 303


1 the beginnings of truth fell mysteriously upon my spirit.
 I believe in one Christ, teach one Christ, know of but
3 one Christ. I believe in but one incarnation, one Mother
 Mary. I know that I am not that one, and I have never
 claimed to be. It suffices me to learn the Science of the
6 Scriptures relative to this subject.

 Christian Scientists have no quarrel with Protestants,
 Catholics, or any other sect. Christian Scientists need to
9 be understood as following the divine Principle β€” God,
 Love — and not imagined to be unscientific worshippers
 of a human being.

12 In his article, of which I have seen only extracts, Mark
 Twain's wit was not wasted in certain directions. Chris-
 tian Science eschews divine rights in human beings.
15 If the individual governed human consciousness, my
 statement of Christian Science would be disproved;
 but to demonstrate Science and its pure monotheism
18 β€” one God, one Christ, no idolatry, no human propa-
 ganda — it is essential to understand the spiritual idea.
 Jesus taught and proved that what feeds a few feeds
21 all. His life-work subordinated the material to the
 spiritual, and he left his legacy of truth to man-
 kind. His metaphysics is not the sport of philosophy,
24 religion, or science; rather is it the pith and finale of
 them all.

 I have not the inspiration nor the aspiration to be
27 a first or second Virgin-mother — her duplicate, ante-
 cedent, or subsequent. What I am remains to be proved
 by the good I do. We need much humility, wisdom,
30 and love to perform the functions of foreshadowing and
 foretasting heaven within us. This glory is molten in
 the furnace of affliction.


Page 304



 [Boston Journal, June 8, 1903]


 A MISSTATEMENT CORRECTED


3 I was early a pupil of Miss Sarah J. Bodwell, the
 principal of Sanbornton Academy, New Hampshire, and
 finished my course of studies under Professor Dyer
6 H. Sanborn, author of Sanborn's Grammar. Among
 my early studies were Comstock's Natural Philosophy,
 Chemistry, Blair's Rhetoric, Whateley's Logic, Watt's
9 "On the Mind and Moral Science." At sixteen years
 of age, I began writing for the leading newspapers, and
 for many years I wrote for the best magazines in the
12 South and North. I have lectured in large and crowded
 halls in New York City, Chicago, Boston, Portland,
 and at Waterville College, and have been invited to
15 lecture in London, England, and Edinburgh, Scotland.
 In 1883, I started The Christian Science Journal, and
 for several years was the proprietor and sole editor of
18 that periodical. In 1893, Judge S. J. Hanna became
 editor of The Christian Science Journal, and for ten
 subsequent years he knew my ability as an editor. In
21 a lecture in Chicago, he said: "Mrs. Eddy is from
 every point of view a woman of sound education and
 liberal culture."
24 Agassiz, the celebrated naturalist and author, wisely
 said: "Every great scientific truth goes through three
 stages. First, people say it conflicts with the Bible.
27 Next, they say it has been discovered before. Lastly,
 they say they have always believed it."
 The first attack upon me was: Mrs. Eddy misinterprets
30 the Scriptures; second, she has stolen the contents of her
 book, "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures,"


Page 305


1 from one P. P. Quimby (an obscure, uneducated man),
 and that he is the founder of Christian Science. Failing
3 in these attempts, the calumniator has resorted to Ralph
 Waldo Emerson's philosophy as the authority for Christian
 Science! Lastly, the defamer will declare as honestly (?),
6 "I have always known it."
 In Science and Health, page 68, third paragraph, I
 briefly express myself unmistakably on the subject of
9 "vulgar metaphysics," and the manuscripts and letters
 in my possession, which "vulgar" defamers have circu-
 lated, stand in evidence. People do not know who is
12 referred to as "an ignorant woman in New Hampshire."
 Many of the nation's best and most distinguished men
 and women were natives of the Granite State.
15 I am the author of the Christian Science textbook,

 "Science and Health with Key to the Scriptures;" and
 the demand for this book constantly increases. I am
18 rated in the National Magazine (1903) as "standing
 eighth in a list of twenty-two of the foremost living
 authors."

21 I claim no special merit of any kind. All that I am
 in reality, God has made me. I still wait at the cross to
 learn definitely more from my great Master, but not
24 of the Greek nor of the Roman schools — simply how to
 do his works.



 A PLEA FOR JUSTICE


27 My recent reply to the reprint of a scandal in the
 Literary Digest was not a question of "Who shall be
 greatest?" but of "Who shall be just?" Who is or is
30 not the founder of Christian Science was not the trend
 of thought, but my purpose was to lift the curtain on


Page 306


1 wrong, on falsehood which persistently misrepresents
 my character, education, and authorship, and attempts
3 to narrow my life into a conflict for fame.

 Far be it from me to tread on the ashes of the dead or
 to dissever any unity that may exist between Christian
6 Science and the philosophy of a great and good man, for
 such was Ralph Waldo Emerson; and I deem it unwise to
 enter into a newspaper controversy over a question that
9 is no longer a question. The false should be antagonized
 only for the purpose of making the true apparent. I have
 quite another purpose in life than to be thought great.
12 Time and goodness determine greatness. The greatest
 reform, with almost unutterable truths to translate,
 must wait to be transfused into the practical and
15 to be understood in the "new tongue." Age, with
 experience-acquired patience and unselfed love, waits
 on God. Human merit or demerit will find its proper
18 level. Divinity alone solves the problem of human-
 ity, and that in God's own time. "By their fruits ye
 shall know them."



 REMINISCENCES


 In 1862, when I first visited Dr. Quimby of Portland,
 Me., his scribblings were descriptions of his patients, and
24 these comprised the manuscripts which in 1887 I adver-
 tised that I would pay for having published. Before his
 decease, in January, 1866, Dr. Quimby had tried to get
27 them published and had failed.

 Quotations have been published, purporting to be Dr.
 Quimby's own words, which were written while I was his
30 patient in Portland and holding long conversations with
 him on my views of mental therapeutics. Some words in


Page 307


1 these quotations certainly read like words that I said to
 him, and which I, at his request, had added to his
3 copy when I corrected it. In his conversations with
 me and in his scribblings, the word science was not
 used at all, till one day I declared to him that back
6 of his magnetic treatment and manipulation of patients,
 there was a science, and it was the science of mind,
 which had nothing to do with matter, electricity, or
9 physics.

 After this I noticed he used that word, as well as other
 terms which I employed that seemed at first new to him.
12 He even acknowledged this himself, and startled me by
 saying what I cannot forget — it was this: "I see now
 what you mean, and I see that I am John, and that you
15 are Jesus."

 At that date I was a staunch orthodox, and my theologi-
 cal belief was offended by his saying and I entered a de-
18 murrer which rebuked him. But afterwards I concluded
 that he only referred to the coming anew of Truth, which
 we both desired; for in some respects he was quite a seer
21 and understood what I said better than some others did.
 For one so unlearned, he was a remarkable man. Had
 his remark related to my personality, I should still think
24 that it was profane.

 At first my case improved wonderfully under his
 treatment, but it relapsed. I was gradually emerging
27 from materia medica, dogma, and creeds, and drifting
 whither I knew not. This mental struggle might have
 caused my illness. The fallacy of materia medica, its
30 lack of science, and the want of divinity in scholas-
 tic theology, had already dawned on me. My ideal-
 ism, however, limped, for then it lacked Science. But


Page 308


1 the divine Love will accomplish what all the powers
 of earth combined can never prevent being accom-
3 plished — the advent of divine healing and its divine
 Science.



 REPLY TO McClure's Magazine


6 It is calumny on Christian Science to say that man is
 aroused to thought or action only by ease, pleasure, or
 recompense. Something higher, nobler, more imperative
9 impels the impulse of Soul.

 It becomes my duty to be just to the departed and to
 tread not ruthlessly on their ashes. The attack on me
12 and my late father and his family in McClure's Magazine,
 January, 1907, compels me as a dutiful child and the
 Leader of Christian Science to speak.

15 McClure's Magazine refers to my father's "tall, gaunt
 frame" and pictures "the old man tramping doggedly
 along the highway, regularly beating the ground with a
18 huge walking-stick." My father's person was erect and
 robust. He never used a walking-stick. To illustrate:
 One time when my father was visiting Governor Pierce,
21 President Franklin Pierce's father, the Governor handed
 him a gold-headed walking-stick as they were about to
 start for church. My father thanked the Governor,
24 but declined to accept the stick, saying, "I never use
 a cane.”

 Although McClure's Magazine attributes to my father
27 language unseemly, his household law, constantly en-
 forced, was no profanity and no slang phrases. McClure's
 Magazine also declares that the Bible was the only book
30 in his house. On the contrary, my father was a great
 reader. The man whom McClure's Magazine characterizes


Page 309


1 as "ignorant, dominating, passionate, fearless," was
 uniformly dignified — a well-informed, intellectual man,
3 cultivated in mind and manners. He was called upon
 to do much business for his town, making out deeds,
 settling quarrels, and even acting as counsel in a lawsuit
6 involving a question of pauperism between the towns of
 Loudon and Bow, N. H. Franklin Pierce, afterwards
 President of the United States, was the counsel for
9 Loudon and Mark Baker for Bow. Both entered their
 pleas, and my father won the suit. After it was decided,
 Mr. Pierce bowed to my father and congratulated him.
12 For several years father was chaplain of the New
 Hampshire State Militia, and as I recollect it, he was
 justice of the peace at one time. My father was a
15 strong believer in States' rights, but slavery he regarded
 as a great sin.

 Mark Baker was the youngest of his father's family, and
18 inherited his father's real estate, an extensive farm situ-
 ated in Bow and Concord, N. H. It is on record that
 Mark Baker's father paid the largest tax in the colony.
21 McClure's Magazine says, describing the Baker home-
 stead at Bow: "The house itself was a small, square box
 building of rudimentary architecture." My father's
24 house had a sloping roof, after the prevailing style of
 architecture at that date.

 McClure's Magazine states: "Alone of the Bakers, he
27 [Albert] received a liberal education. . . . Mary Baker
 passed her first fifteen years at the ancestral home at Bow.
 It was a lonely and unstimulating existence. The church
30 supplied the only social diversions, the district school
 practically all the intellectual life."

 Let us see what were the fruits of this "lonely and


Page 310


1 unstimulating existence." All my father's daughters were
 given an academic education, sufficiently advanced so that
3 they all taught school acceptably at various times and
 places. My brother Albert was a distinguished lawyer.
 In addition to my academic training, I was privately
6 tutored by him. He was a member of the New Hamp-
 shire Legislature, and was nominated for Congress, but
 died before the election. McClure's Magazine calls my
9 youngest brother, George Sullivan Baker, "a workman in
 a Tilton woolen mill." As a matter of fact, he was joint
 partner with Alexander Tilton, and together they owned a
12 large manufacturing establishment in Tilton, N. H. His
 military title of Colonel came from appointment on the
 staff of the Governor of New Hampshire. My oldest
15 brother, Samuel D. Baker, carried on a large business in
 Boston, Mass.

 Regarding the allegation by McClure's Magazine that all
18 the family, "excepting Albert, died of cancer," I will
 say that there was never a death in my father's family
 reported by physician or post-mortem examination as
21 caused by cancer.

 McClure's Magazine says that "the quarrels between
 Mary, a child ten years old, and her father, a gray-haired
24 man of fifty, frequently set the house in an uproar,"
 and adds that these "fits" were diagnosed by Dr. Ladd
 as "hysteria mingled with bad temper." My mother
27 often presented my disposition as exemplary for her other
 children to imitate, saying, "When do you ever see
 Mary angry?" When the first edition of Science and
30 Health was published, Dr. Ladd said to Alexander Tilton:
 "Read it, for it will do you good. It does not surprise
 me, it so resembles the author."


Page 311


1 I will relate the following incident, which occurred later
 in life, as illustrative of my disposition: β€”

3 While I was living with Dr. Patterson at his country
 home in North Groton, N. H., a girl, totally blind, knocked
 at the door and was admitted. She begged to be allowed
6 to remain with me, and my tenderness and sympathy were
 such that I could not refuse her. Shortly after, however,
 my good housekeeper said to me: "If this blind girl stays
9 with you, I shall have to leave; she troubles me so much."
 It was not in my heart to turn the blind girl out, and so
 I lost my housekeeper.

12 My reply to the statement that the clerk's book shows
 that I joined the Tilton Congregational Church at the age
 of seventeen is that my religious experience seemed to
15 culminate at twelve years of age. Hence a mistake may
 have occurred as to the exact date of my first church
 membership.

18 The facts regarding the McNeil coat-of-arms are as
 follows: β€”

 Fanny McNeil, President Pierce's niece, afterwards
21 Mrs. Judge Potter, presented me my coat-of-arms, say-
 ing that it was taken in connection with her own family
 coat-of-arms. I never doubted the veracity of her gift.
24 I have another coat-of-arms, which is of my mother's
 ancestry. When I was last in Washington, D. C., Mrs.
 Judge Potter and myself knelt in silent prayer on the
27 mound of her late father, General John McNeil, the
 hero of Lundy Lane.

 Notwithstanding that McClure's Magazine says, "Mary
30 Baker completed her education when she finished Smith's
 grammar and reached long division in arithmetic," I was
 called by the Rev. R. S. Rust, D.D., Principal of the


Page 312


1 Methodist Conference Seminary at Sanbornton Bridge, to
 supply the place of his leading teacher during her tempo-
3 rary absence.

 Regarding my first marriage and the tragic death of my
 husband, McClure's Magazine says: "He [George Wash-
6 ington Glover] took his bride to Wilmington, South Caro-
 lina, and in June, 1844, six months after his marriage, he
 died of yellow fever. He left his young wife in a miser-
9 able plight. She was far from home and entirely without
 money or friends. Glover, however, was a Free Mason,
 and thus received a decent burial. The Masons also paid
12 Mrs. Glover's fare to New York City, where she was
 met and taken to her father's home by her brother George.
 . . . Her position was an embarrassing one. She was a
15 grown woman, with a child, but entirely without means
 of support. . . . Mrs. Glover made only one effort at
 self-support. For a brief season she taught school."

18 My first husband, Major George W. Glover, resided in
 Charleston, S. C. While on a business trip to Wilming-
 ton, N. C., he was suddenly seized with yellow fever and
21 died in about nine days. I was with him on this trip.
 He took with him the usual amount of money he would
 need on such an excursion. At his decease I was sur-
24 rounded by friends, and their provisions in my behalf were
 most tender. The Governor of the State and his staff,
 with a long procession, followed the remains of my be-
27 loved one to the cemetery. The Free Masons selected
 my escort, who took me to my father's home in Tilton,
 N. H. My salary for writing gave me ample support.
30 I did open an infant school, but it was for the purpose of
 starting that educational system in New Hampshire.

 The rhyme attributed to me by McClure's Magazine is


Page 313


1 not mine, but is, I understand, a paraphrase of a silly
 song of years ago. Correctly quoted, it is as follows, so
3 I have been told: β€”


 Go to Jane Glover,
 Tell her I love her
6   By the light of the moon
 I will go to her.


 The various stories told by McClure's Magazine about
9 my father spreading the road in front of his house with
 tan-bark and straw, and about persons being hired to rock
 me, I am ignorant of. Nor do I remember any such stuff
12 as Dr. Patterson driving into Franklin, N. H., with a
 couch or cradle for me in his wagon. I only know that
 my father and mother did everything they could think of
15 to help me when I was ill.

 I was never "given to long and lonely wanderings,
 especially at night," as stated by McClure's Magazine. I
18 was always accompanied by some responsible individual
 when I took an evening walk, but I seldom took one. I
 have always consistently declared that I was not a medium
21 for spirits. I never was especially interested in the
 Shakers, never "dabbled in mesmerism," never was "an
 amateur clairvoyant," nor did "the superstitious coun-
24 try folk frequently" seek my advice. I never went
 into a trance to describe scenes far away, as McClure's
 Magazine says.

27 My oldest sister dearly loved me, but I wounded her
 pride when I adopted Christian Science, and to a Baker
 that was a sorry offence. I was obliged to be parted
30 from my son, because after my father's second marriage
 my little boy was not welcome in my father's house.


Page 314


1 McClure's Magazine calls Dr. Daniel Patterson, my
 second husband, "an itinerant dentist." It says that
3 after my marriage we "lived for a short time at Tilton,
 then moved to Franklin . . . . During the following nine
 years the Pattersons led a roving existence. The doctor
6 practised in several towns, from Tilton to North Groton
 and then to Rumney." When I was married to him, Dr.
 Daniel Patterson was located in Franklin, N. H. He had
9 the degree D.D.S., was a popular man, and considered a
 rarely skilful dentist. He bought a place in North Groton,
 which he fancied, for a summer home. At that time he
12 owned a house in Franklin, N. H.

 Although, as McClure's Magazine claims, the court
 record may state that my divorce from Dr. Patterson was
15 granted on the ground of desertion, the cause neverthe-
 less was adultery. Individuals are here to-day who were
 present in court when the decision was given by the judge
18 and who know the following facts: After the evidence
 had been submitted that a husband was about to have Dr.
 Patterson arrested for eloping with his wife, the court
21 instructed the clerk to record the divorce in my favor.
 What prevented Dr. Patterson's arrest was a letter from
 me to this self-same husband, imploring him not to do it.
24 When this husband recovered his wife, he kept her a
 prisoner in her home, and I was also the means of recon-
 ciling the couple. A Christian Scientist has told me that
27 with tears of gratitude the wife of this husband related
 these facts to her just as I have stated them. I lived
 with Dr. Patterson peaceably, and he was kind to me up
30 to the time of the divorce.

 The following affidavit by R. D. Rounsevel of Littleton,
 N. H., proprietor of the White Mountain House, Fabyans,


Page 315


1 N. H., the original of which is in my possession, is of
 interest in this connection: β€”


3 About the year 1874, Dr. Patterson, a dentist, boarded
 with me in Littleton, New Hampshire. During his stay,
 at different times, I had conversation with him about his
6 wife, from whom he was separated. He spoke of her being
 a pure and Christian woman, and the cause of the separa-
 tion being wholly on his part; that if he had done as he
9 ought, he might have had as pleasant and happy home as
 one could wish for.

 At that time I had no knowledge of who his wife was.
12 Later on I learned that Mary Baker G. Eddy, the Dis-
 coverer and Founder of Christian Science, was the above-
 mentioned woman.

15       (Signed) R. D. ROUNSEVEL


 Grafton S. S. Jan'y, 1902. Then personally appeared
 R. D. Rounsevel and made oath that the within statement
18 by him signed is true.

 Before me,        (Signed) H. M. MORSE,
 Justice of the Peace


21 Who or what is the McClure "history," so called, pre-
 senting? Is it myself, the veritable Mrs. Eddy, whom
 the New York World declared dying of cancer, or is it
24 her alleged double or dummy heretofore described?

 If indeed it be I, allow me to thank the enterprising
 historians for the testimony they have thereby given of the
27 divine power of Christian Science, which they admit has
 snatched me from the cradle and the grave, and made
 me the beloved Leader of millions of the good men and
30 women in our own and in other countries, β€” and all this


Page 316


1 because the truth I have promulgated has separated the
 tares from the wheat, uniting in one body those who love
3 Truth; because Truth divides between sect and Science
 and renews the heavenward impulse; because I still hear
 the harvest song of the Redeemer awakening the nations,
6 causing man to love his enemies; because "blessed are ye,
 when men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall
 say all manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake."

 [Christian Science Sentinel, January 19, 1907]


 A CARD


 The article in the January number of The Arena maga-
12 zine, entitled "The Recent Reckless and Irresponsible
 Attacks on Christian Science and its Founder, with a
 Survey of the Christian Science Movement," by the
15 scholarly editor, Mr. B.O. Flower, is a grand defence of
 our Cause and its Leader. Such a dignified, eloquent
 appeal to the press in behalf of common justice and truth
18 demands public attention. It defends human rights and
 the freedom of Christian sentiments, and tends to turn
 back the foaming torrents of ignorance, envy, and malice.
21 I am pleased to find this "twentieth-century review of
 opinion" once more under Mr. Flower's able guardianship
 and manifesting its unbiased judgment by such sound
24 appreciation of the rights of Christian Scientists and of
 all that is right.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

Chapter XVIII β€” Authorship of Science and Health

Page 317



1 THE following statement, which was published in
 the Sentinel of December 1, 1906, exactly defin-
3 ing her relations with the Rev. James Henry Wiggin of
 Boston, was made by Mrs. Eddy in refutation of allega-
 tions in the public press to the effect that Mr. Wiggin
6 had a share in the authorship of "Science and Health
 with Key to the Scriptures."


 MRS. EDDY'S STATEMENT


9 It is a great mistake to say that I employed the Rev.
 James Henry Wiggin to correct my diction. It was for
 no such purpose. I engaged Mr. Wiggin so as to avail
12 myself of his criticisms of my statement of Christian
 Science, which criticisms would enable me to explain
 more clearly the points that might seem ambiguous to
15 the reader.

 Mr. Calvin A. Frye copied my writings, and he will tell
 you that Mr. Wiggin left my diction quite out of the
18 question, sometimes saying, "I wouldn't express it that
 way." He often dissented from what I had written,
 but I quieted him by quoting corroborative texts of
21 Scripture.

 My diction, as used in explaining Christian Science, has
 been called original. The liberty that I have taken with


Page 318


1 capitalization, in order to express the "new tongue," has
 well-nigh constituted a new style of language. In almost
3 every case where Mr. Wiggin added words, I have erased
 them in my revisions.

 Mr. Wiggin was not my proofreader for my book
6 "Miscellaneous Writings," and for only two of my books.
 I especially employed him on "Science and Health with
 Key to the Scriptures," because at that date some critics
9 declared that my book was as ungrammatical as it was
 misleading. I availed myself of the name of the former
 proofreader for the University Press, Cambridge, to
12 defend my grammatical construction, and confidently
 awaited the years to declare the moral and spiritual
 effect upon the age of "Science and Health with Key
15 to the Scriptures."

 I invited Mr. Wiggin to visit one of my classes in the
 Massachusetts Metaphysical College, and he consented
18 on condition that I should not ask him any questions.
 I agreed not to question him just so long as he refrained
 from questioning me. He held himself well in check
21 until I began my attack on agnosticism. As I pro-
 ceeded, Mr. Wiggin manifested more and more agita-
 tion, until he could control himself no longer and,
24 addressing me, burst out with:

 "How do you know that there ever was such a man as
 Christ Jesus?"

27 He would have continued with a long argument,
 framed from his ample fund of historical knowledge,
 but I stopped him.

30 "Now, Mr. Wiggin," I said, "you have broken our
 agreement. I do not find my authority for Christian
 Science in history, but in revelation. If there had never


Page 319


1 existed such a person as the Galilean Prophet, it would
 make no difference to me. I should still know that
3 God's spiritual ideal is the only real man in His image
 and likeness."

 My saying touched him, and I heard nothing further
6 from him in the class, though afterwards he wrote a
 kind little pamphlet, signed "Phare Pleigh."

 I hold the late Mr. Wiggin in loving, grateful memory
9 for his high-principled character and well-equipped
 scholarship.



 LETTERS FROM STUDENTS


12 The following letters from students of Mrs. Eddy
 confirm her statement regarding the work which the
 Rev. Mr. Wiggin did for her, and also indicate what he
15 himself thought of that work and of Mrs. Eddy: β€”


 My Dear Teacher: β€” I am conversant with some facts
 which perhaps have not come under the observation of
18 many of your students, and considering the questions
 which have recently appeared, it may interest you to be
 advised that I have this information. On the tenth day of
21 January, 1887, I entered your Primary class at Boston.
 A few days later, in conversation with you about the
 preparation of a theme, you suggested that I call on the
24 late J. Henry Wiggin to assist me in analyzing and arrang-
 ing the topics, which I did about the twentieth of the
 above-named month. These dates are very well fixed in
27 my memory, as I considered the time an important one
 in my experience, and do so still. I also recall very
 plainly the conversation with you in general as regards
30 Mr. Wiggin. You told me that he had done some literary


Page 320


1 work for you and that he was a fine literary student and
 a good proofreader.

3 Upon calling on Mr. Wiggin, I presented my matter for
 a theme to him, and he readily consented to assist me,
 which he did. He also seemed very much pleased to
6 converse about you and your work, and I found that his
 statement of what he had done for you exactly agreed
 with what you had told me. He also expressed himself
9 freely as to his high regard for you as a Christian lady,
 as an author, and as a student of ability. Mr. Wiggin
 spoke of "Science and Health with Key to the Scrip-
12 tures" as being a very unique book, and seemed quite
 proud of his having had something to do with some
 editions. He always spoke of you as the author of this
15 book and the author of all your works. Mr. Wiggin
 did not claim to be a Christian Scientist, but was in
 a measure in sympathy with the movement, although
18 he did not endorse all the statements in your textbook;
 but his tendency was friendly.

 I called on Mr. Wiggin several times while I was in your
21 Primary class at the time above referred to, and several
 times subsequent thereto, and he always referred to you as
 the author of your works and spoke of your ability without
24 any hesitation or restriction. Our conversations were at
 times somewhat long and went into matters of detail
 regarding your work, and I am of the opinion that he
27 was proud of his acquaintance with you.

 I saw Mr. Wiggin several times after the class closed,
 and the last conversation I had with him was at the
30 time of the dedication of the first Mother Church edifice
 in 1895. I met him in the vestibule of the church
 and he spoke in a very animated manner of your


Page 321


1 grand demonstration in building this church for your
 followers. He seemed very proud to think that he had
3 been in a way connected with your work, but he always
 referred to you as the one who had accomplished this
 great work.

6 My recollections of Mr. Wiggin place him as one
 of your devoted and faithful friends, one who knew
 who and what you are, also your position as regards
9 your published works; and he always gave you that
 position without any restriction. I believe that Mr.
 Wiggin was an honest man and that he told the same
12 story to every one with whom he had occasion to talk,
 so I cannot believe that he has ever said anything
 whatever of you and your relations to your published
15 works differing from what he talked so freely in my
 presence.

 There is nothing in the circumstances which have
18 arisen recently, and the manner in which the statements
 have been made, to change my opinion one iota in this
 respect.

21 It will soon be twenty years since I first saw you and
 entered your class. During that time, from my connec-
 tion with the church, the Publishing Society, and my
24 many conversations with you, my personal knowledge of
 the authorship of your works is conclusive to me in every
 detail, and I am very glad that I was among your early
27 students and have had this experience and know of my
 own personal knowledge what has transpired during the
 past twenty years.

30 I am also pleased to have had conversations with
 people who knew you years before I did, and who have
 told me of their knowledge of your work.


Page 322


1 It is not long since I met a lady who lived in Lynn,
 and she told me she knew you when you were writing
3 Science and Health, and that she had seen the manu-
 script. These are facts which cannot be controverted
 and they must stand.

6     Your affectionate student,
 EDWARD P. BATES

 BOSTON, MASS., November 21, 1906


9 My Beloved Teacher: β€” I have just read your state-
 ment correcting mistakes widely published about the
 Rev. James H. Wiggin's work for and attitude towards
12 you; also Mr. Edward P. Bates' letter to you on the
 same subject; which reminds me of a conversation I
 had with Mr. Wiggin on Thanksgiving Day twenty
15 years ago, when a friend and I were the guests invited
 to dine with the Wiggin family.

 I had seen you the day before at the Metaphysical
18 College and received your permission to enter the next
 Primary class (Jan. 10, 1887). During the evening my
 friend spoke of my journeying from the far South, and
21 waiting months in Boston on the bare hope of a few
 days' instruction by Mrs. Eddy in Christian Science.
 She and Mrs. Wiggin seemed inclined to banter me on
24 such enthusiasm, but Mr. Wiggin kindly helped me by
 advancing many good points in the Science, which were
 so clearly stated that I was surprised when he told me
27 he was not a Christian Scientist.

 Seeing my great interest in the subject, he told me
 of his acquaintance with you and spoke earnestly and
30 beautifully of you and your work. The exact words I
 do not recall, but the impression he left with me was


Page 323


1 entirely in accordance with what Mr. Bates has so well
 written in the above-mentioned letter. Before we left
3 that evening, Mr. Wiggin gave me a pamphlet entitled
 "Christian Science and the Bible," by "Phare Pleigh,"
 which he said he had written in answer to an unfair
6 criticism of you and your book by some minister in the
 far West. I have his little book yet. How long must it
 be before the people find out that you have so identified
9 yourself with the truth by loving it and living it that you
 are not going to lie about anything nor willingly leave
 any false impression.

12 In loving gratitude for your living witness to Truth
 and Love,

 FLORENCE WHITESIDE

15 CHATTANOOGA, TENN.,
 December 4, 1906


 Beloved Teacher: β€” My heart has been too full to tell
18 you in words all that your wonderful life and sacrifice
 means to me. Neither do I now feel at all equal to ex-
 pressing the crowding thoughts of gratitude and praise
21 to God for giving this age such a Leader and teacher to
 reveal to us His way. Your crowning triumph over error
 and sin, which we have so recently witnessed, in blessing
24 those who would destroy you if God did not hold you up
 by the right hand of His righteousness, should mean to
 your older students much that they may not have been
27 able to appreciate in times past.

 I wonder if you will remember that Mr. Snider and
 myself boarded in the home of the late Rev. J. Henry
30 Wiggin during the time of our studying in the second
 class with you — the Normal class in the fall of 1887?
 We were at that time some eight days in Mr. and Mrs.


Page 324


1 Wiggin's home. He often spoke his thoughts freely
 about you and your work, especially your book Science
3 and Health. Mr. Wiggin had somewhat of a thought
 of contempt for the unlearned, and he scorned the sug-
 gestion that Mr. Quimby had given you any idea for
6 your book, as he said you and your ideas were too
 much alike for the book to have come from any one but
 yourself. He often said you were so original and so
9 very decided that no one could be of much service to
 you, and he often hinted that he thought he could give
 a clearer nomenclature for Science and Health. I re-
12 member telling you of this, and you explained how long
 you had waited on the Lord to have those very terms
 revealed to you.

15 I am very sure that neither Mr. Wiggin nor his esti-
 mable wife had any other thought but that you were
 the author of your book, and were he here to-day he
18 would be too honorable to allow the thought to go out
 that he had helped you write it. He certainly never
 gave us the impression that he thought you needed
21 help, for we always thought that Mr. Wiggin regarded
 you as quite his literary equal, and was gratified and
 pleased in numbering you among his literary friends.
24 Everything he said conveyed this impression to us β€”
 that he regarded you as entirely unique and original.
 He told us laughingly why he accepted your invitation
27 to sit through your class. He said he wanted to see if
 there was one woman under the sun who could keep to
 her text. When we asked him if he found you could do
30 so, he replied "Yes," and said that no man could have
 done so any better.

 Both Mr. and Mrs. Wiggin frequently mentioned


Page 325


1 many kindnesses you had shown them, and spoke of
 one especial day when amidst all your duties you per-
3 sonally called to inquire of his welfare (he had been
 ill) and to leave luscious hothouse fruit. One thing
 more, that I think will amuse you: Mr. Wiggin was
6 very much troubled that you had bought your house
 on Commonwealth Avenue, as he was very sure Back
 Bay property would never be worth what you then
9 paid for it. He regarded the old part of Boston in
 which he lived as having a greater future than the new
 Back Bay.

12 Years ago I offered my services to you in any capacity
 in which I could serve you, and my desire has never
 changed. Command me at any time, in any way, beloved
15 Leader.

 With increasing love and gratitude, ever faithfully your
 student,

18       CARRIE HARVEY SNIDER

 NEW YORK, N. Y.,
 December 7, 1906

Chapter XIX β€” A Memorable Coincidence and Historical Facts

Page 326



 [The Christian Science Journal]


1 WE are glad to publish the following interesting
 letter and enclosures received from our Leader.
3 That legislatures and courts are thus declaring the liberties
 of Christian Scientists is most gratifying to our people; not
 because a favor has been extended, but because their
6 inherent rights are recognized in an official and authori-
 tative manner. It is especially gratifying to them that
 the declaration of this recognition should be coincident
9 in the Southern and Northern States in which Mrs. Eddy
 has made her home.


 MRS. EDDY'S LETTER


12 Dear Editor: β€” I send for publication in our periodicals
 the following deeply interesting letter from Elizabeth Earl
 Jones of Asheville, N. C., β€” the State where my husband,
15 Major George W. Glover, passed on and up, the State
 that so signally honored his memory, where with wet eyes
 the Free Masons laid on his bier the emblems of a master
18 Mason, and in long procession with tender dirge bore his
 remains to their last resting-place. Deeply grateful, I
 recognize the divine hand in turning the hearts of the noble


Page 327


1 Southrons of North Carolina legally to protect the practice
 of Christian Science in that State.
3 Is it not a memorable coincidence that, in the Court of
 New Hampshire, my native State, and in the Legislature
 of North Carolina, they have the same year, in 1903, made
6 it legal to practise Christian Science in these States?

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
9     October 16, 1903



 MISS ELIZABETH EARL JONES' LETTER


 Beloved Leader: β€” I know the enclosed article will make
12 your heart glad, as it has made glad the hearts of all the
 Christian Scientists in North Carolina. This is the result
 of the work done at last winter's term of our Legislature,
15 when a medical bill was proposed calculated to limit or
 stop the practice of Christian Science in our State. An
 amendment was obtained by Miss Mary Hatch Harrison
18 and a few other Scientists who stayed on the field until the
 last. After the amendment had been passed, an old law,
 or rather a section of an act in the Legislature regulating
21 taxes, was changed as follows, because the representa-
 tive men of our dear State did not wish to be "discour-
 teous to the Christian Scientists." The section formerly
24 read, "pretended healers," but was changed to read as
 follows: "All other professionals who practise the art of
 healing," etc.

27 We thank our heavenly Father for this dignified
 legal protection and recognition, and look forward to
 the day, not far distant, when the laws of every State
30 will dignify the ministry of Christ as taught and prac-
 tised in Christian Science, and as lived by our dear,


Page 328


1 dear Leader, even as God has dignified, blessed, and
 prospered it, and her.

3     With devoted love,

 ELIZABETH EARL JONES

 105 BAILEY ST., ASHEVILLE, N. C.,
6    October 11, 1903


 The following article, copied from the Raleigh (N. C.)
 News and Observer, is the one referred to in Miss Jones'
9 letter: β€”


 The Christian Science people, greatly pleased at the
 law affecting them passed by the last Legislature, are
12 apt also to be pleased with the fact that the law recog-
 nizes them as healers, and that it gives them a license
 to heal. This license of five dollars annually, required
15 of physicians, has been required of them, and how this
 came about in Kinston is told in the Kinston Free Press
 as follows: β€”


18 Sheriff Wooten issued licenses yesterday to two
 Christian Science healers in this city. This is probably
 the first to be issued to the healers of this sect in the
21 State.

 Upon the request of a prominent healer of the church,
 the section of the machinery act of the Legislature cover-
24 ing it was shown, whereupon application for license was
 made and obtained.

 The section, after enumerating the different professions
27 for which a license must be obtained to carry them on in
 this State, further says, "and all other professionals who
 practise the art of healing for pay, shall pay a license fee
30 of five dollars."


Page 329


1 This was construed to include the healers of the Chris-
 tian Science church, and license was accordingly taken
3 out.

 The idea prevails that the last General Assembly of
 North Carolina relieved the healers of this sect from paying
6 this fee, but this is not so. The board only excused them
 from a medical examination before a board of medical
 examiners.


9 Mrs. Eddy's reference to the death of her husband,
 Major George W. Glover, gives especial interest to the
 following letter from Newbern, N. C., which appeared
12 in the Wilmington (N. C.) Dispatch, October 24, 1903.
 Mrs. Eddy has in her possession photographed copies of
 the notice of her husband's death and of her brother's
15 letter, taken from the Wilmington (N. C.) Chronicle as
 they appear in that paper in the issues of July 3 and
 August 21, 1844, respectively. The photographs are ver-
18 ified by the certificate of a notary public and were pre-
 sented to Mrs. Eddy by Miss Harrison.



 MISS MARY HATCH HARRISON'S LETTER


21 To the Editor: β€” At no better time than now, when the
 whole country is recognizing the steady progress of Chris-
 tian Science and admitting its interest in the movement,
24 as shown by the fair attitude of the press everywhere,
 could we ask you to give your readers the following com-
 munication. It will put before them some interesting
27 facts concerning Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy, and some in-
 cidents of her life in North and South Carolina which
 might not have been known but for a criticism of this


Page 330


1 good woman which was published in your paper in
 August, 1901.

3 I presume we should not be surprised that a noteworthy
 follower of our Lord should be maligned, since the great
 Master himself was scandalized, and he prophesied that
6 his followers would be so treated. The calumniator who
 informed you in this instance locates Mrs. Eddy in Wil-
 mington in 1843, thus contradicting his own statement,
9 since Mrs. Eddy was not then a resident of Wilmington.
 A local Christian Scientist of your city, whose womanhood
 and Christianity are appreciated by all, assisted by a
12 Mason of good standing there and a Christian Scientist of
 Charleston, S. C., carefully investigated the points con-
 cerning Major Glover's history which are questioned by
15 this critic, and has found Mrs. Eddy's statements, rela-
 ting to her husband (who she states was of Charleston,
 S. C., not of Wilmington, but who died there while on
18 business in 1844, not in 1843, as claimed in your issue) are
 sustained by Masonic records in each place as well as
 by Wilmington newspapers of that year. In "Retro-
21 spection and Introspection" (p. 19) Mrs. Eddy says of
 this circumstance: β€”

 "My husband was a Free Mason, being a member in St.
24 Andrew's Lodge, No. 10, and of Union Chapter, No. 3, of
 Royal Arch Masons. He was highly esteemed and sin-
 cerely lamented by a large circle of friends and acquaint-
27 ances, whose kindness and sympathy helped to support me
 in this terrible bereavement. A month later I returned to
 New Hampshire, where, at the end of four months, my
30 babe was born. Colonel Glover's tender devotion to his
 young bride was remarked by all observers. With his
 parting breath he gave pathetic directions to his brother


Page 331


1 Masons about accompanying her on her sad journey to
 the North. Here it is but justice to record, they per-
3 formed their obligations most faithfully."

 Such watchful solicitude as Mrs. Eddy received at the
 hands of Wilmington's best citizens, among whom she
6 remembers the Rev. Mr. Reperton, a Baptist clergyman,
 and the Governor of the State, who accompanied her to
 the train on her departure, indicates her irreproachable
9 standing in your city at that time.

 The following letter of thanks, copied from the Wil-
 mington Chronicle of August 21, 1844, testifies to the love
12 and respect entertained for Mrs. Eddy by Wilmington's
 best men, whose Southern chivalry would have scorned
 to extend such unrestrained hospitality to an unworthy
15 woman as quickly as it would have punished the assail-
 ant of a good woman: β€”



 A CARD


18 Through the columns of your paper, will you permit
 me, in behalf of the relatives and friends of the late
 Major George W. Glover of Wilmington and his be-
21 reaved lady, to return our thanks and express the feeling
 of gratitude we owe and cherish towards those friends of
 the deceased who so kindly attended him during his last
24 sickness, and who still extended their care and sympathy
 to the lone, feeble, and bereaved widow after his decease.
 Much has often been said of the high feeling of honor
27 and the noble generosity of heart which characterized the
 people of the South, yet when we listen to Mrs. Glover
 (my sister) whilst recounting the kind attention paid to
30 the deceased during his late illness, the sympathy ex-
 tended to her after his death, and the assistance volun-


Page 332


1 teered to restore her to her friends at a distance of more
 than a thousand miles, the power of language would be
3 but beggared by an attempt at expressing the feelings of
 a swelling bosom. The silent gush of grateful tears alone
 can tell the emotions of the thankful heart, β€” words are
6 indeed but a meagre tribute for so noble an effort in be-
 half of the unfortunate, yet it is all we can award: will our
 friends at Wilmington accept it as a tribute of grateful
9 hearts? Many thanks are due Mr. Cooke, who engaged
 to accompany her only to New York, but did not desert
 her or remit his kind attention until he saw her in the
12 fond embrace of her friends.

 Your friend and obedient servant,
 (Signed) GEORGE S. BAKER

15 SANBORNTON BRIDGE, N. H.,
 August 12, 1844


 The paper containing this card is now in the Young
18 Men's Christian Association at Wilmington.

 The facts regarding Major Glover's membership in
 St. Andrew's Lodge, No. 10, were brought to light in a
21 most interesting way. A Christian Scientist in Charles-
 ton was requested to look up the records of this lodge,
 as we had full confidence that it would corroborate Mrs.
24 Eddy's claims. After frequent searchings and much in-
 terviewing with Masonic authorities, it was learned that
 the lodge was no longer in existence, and that during the
27 Civil War many Masonic records were transferred to
 Columbia, where they were burned; but on repeated
 search a roll of papers recording the death of George
30 Washington Glover in 1844 and giving best praises to
 his honorable record and Christian character was found;


Page 333


1 and said record, with the seal of the Grand Secretary,
 is now in the possession of the chairman of the Christian
3 Science publication committee.

 In the records of St. John's Lodge, Wilmington, as
 found by one of your own citizens, a Mason, it is shown
6 that on the twenty-eighth day of June, 1844, a special
 meeting was convened for the purpose of paying the last
 tribute of respect to Brother George W. Glover, who
9 died on the night of the twenty-seventh. The minutes
 record this further proceeding: β€”

 "A procession was formed, which moved to the resi-
12 dence of the deceased, and from thence to the Episcopal
 burying-ground, where the body was interred with the
 usual ceremonies. The procession then returned to the
15 lodge, which was closed in due form."

 It has never been claimed by Mrs. Eddy nor by any
 Christian Scientists that Major Glover's remains were
18 carried North.

 The Wilmington Chronicle of July 3, 1844, records that
 this good man, then known as Major George W. Glover,
21 died on Thursday night, the twenty-seventh of June. The
 Chronicle states: "His end was calm and peaceful, and to
 those friends who attended him during his illness he gave
24 the repeated assurance of his willingness to die, and of his
 full reliance for salvation on the merits of a crucified Re-
 deemer. His remains were interred with Masonic honors.
27 He has left an amiable wife, to whom he had been united
 but the brief space of six months, to lament this
 irreparable loss."

30 From the Chronicle, dated September 25, 1844, we copy
 the following: "We are assured that reports of unusual
 sickness in Wilmington are in circulation." This periodi-


Page 334


1 cal then forthwith strives to give the impression that the
 rumor is not true. It is reasonable to infer from news-
3 paper reports of that date that some insidious disease
 was raging at that time.

 The allegation that copies of Mrs. Eddy's book, β€œRetro-
6 spection and Introspection," are few, and that efforts are
 being made to buy them up because she has contradicted
 herself, is without foundation. They are advertised in
9 every weekly issue of the Christian Science Sentinel, and
 still contain the original account of her husband's demise
 at Wilmington.

12 May it not be, since this critic places certain circum-
 stances in 1843, which records show really existed in 1844,
 that the woman whom he had in mind is some other one?
15 We can state Mrs. Eddy's teaching on the unreality of
 evil in no better terms than to quote her own words.
 Nothing could be further from her meaning than that evil
18 could be indulged in while being called unreal. She
 declares in her Message to The Mother Church [1901]:
 "To assume there is no reality in sin, and yet commit
21 sin, is sin itself, that clings fast to iniquity. The Pub-
 lican's wail won his humble desire, while the Pharisee's
 self-righteousness crucified Jesus."

24    MARY HATCH HARRISON



 MAJOR GLOVER'S RECORD AS A MASON


 Of further interest in this matter is the following ex-
27 tract from an editorial obituary which appeared in 1845 in
 the Freemason's Monthly Magazine, published by the
 late Charles W. Moore, Grand Secretary of the Grand
30 Lodge of Massachusetts: β€”


Page 335


1 Died at Wilmington, N. C., on the 27th June last,
 Major George W. Glover, formerly of Concord, N. H.

3 Brother Glover resided in Charleston, S. C., and was
 made a Mason in "St. Andrew's Lodge, No. 10." He was
 soon exalted to the degree of a Royal Arch Mason in
6 "Union Chapter, No. 3," and retained his membership
 in both till his decease. He was devotedly attached
 to Masonry, faithful as a member and officer of the
9 Lodge and Chapter, and beloved by his brothers and
 companions, who mourn his early death.


 Additional facts regarding Major Glover, his illness and
12 death, are that he was for a number of years a resident of
 Charleston, S. C., where he erected a fine dwelling-house,
 the drawings and specifications of which were kept by his
15 widow for many years after his death. While at Wilming-
 ton, N. C., in June, 1844, Mr. Glover was attacked with
 yellow fever of the worst type, and at the end of nine days
18 he passed away. This was the second case of the dread
 disease in that city, and in the hope of allaying the excite-
 ment which was fast arising, the authorities gave the cause
21 of death as bilious fever, but they refused permission to
 take the remains to Charleston.

 On the third day of her husband's illness, Mrs. Glover
24 (now Mrs. Eddy) sent for the distinguished physician who
 attended cases of this terrible disease as an expert (Dr.
 McRee we think it was), and was told by him that he could
27 not conceal the fact that the case was one of yellow fever
 in its worst form, and nothing could save the life of
 her husband. In these nine days and nights of agony
30 the young wife prayed incessantly for her husband's
 recovery, and was told by the expert physician that


Page 336


1 but for her prayers the patient would have died on
 the seventh day.

3 The disease spread so rapidly that Mrs. Glover (Mrs.
 Eddy) was afraid to have her brother, George S. Baker,
 come to her after her husband's death, to take her back to
6 the North. Although he desired to go to her assistance,
 she declined on this ground, and entrusted herself to the
 care of her husband's Masonic brethren, who faithfully
9 performed their obligation to her. She makes grateful
 acknowledgment of this in her book, "Retrospection and
 Introspection." In this book (p. 20) she also states,
12 "After returning to the paternal roof I lost all my hus-
 band's property, except what money I had brought
 with me; and remained with my parents until after
15 my mother's decease." Mr. Glover had made no will
 previous to his last illness, and then the seizure of dis-
 ease was so sudden and so violent that he was unable
18 to make a will.

 These letters and extracts are of absorbing interest to
 Christian Scientists as amplification of the facts given by
21 Mrs. Eddy in "Retrospection and Introspection."

Chapter XX β€” General Miscellany

Page 337



1     [Boston Herald, Sunday, May 15, 1898]


 THE UNITED STATES TO GREAT BRITAIN


3 HAIL, brother! fling thy banner
 To the billows and the breeze;
 We proffer thee warm welcome
6   With our hand, though not our knees.


 Lord of the main and manor!
 Thy palm, in ancient day,
9 Didst rock the country's cradle
 That wakes thy laureate's lay.


 The hoar fight is forgotten;
12    Our eagle, like the dove,
 Returns to bless a bridal
 Betokened from above.


15 List, brother! angels whisper
 To Judah's sceptred race, β€”
 "Thou of the self-same spirit,
18    Allied by nations' grace,


 "Wouldst cheer the hosts of heaven;
 For Anglo-Israel, lo!
21 Is marching under orders;
 His hand averts the blow."


Page 338


1 Brave Britain, blest America!
 Unite your battle-plan;
3 Victorious, all who live it, β€”
 The love for God and man.



 TO THE PUBLIC


6 The following views of the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy
 upon the subject of the Trinity, are known to us to be
 those uniformly held and expressed by her. A reference
9 to her writings will fully corroborate this statement. β€”


 EDITOR Sentinel.
 The contents of the last lecture of our dear brother,
12 on the subject "The Unknown God Made Known,"
 were unknown to me till after the lecture was delivered
 in Boston, April 5.

15 The members of the Board of Lectureship are not
 allowed to consult me relative to their subjects or the
 handling thereof, owing to my busy life, and they seek a
18 higher source for wisdom and guidance. The talented
 author of this lecture has a heart full of love towards
 God and man. For once he may have overlooked the
21 construction that people unfamiliar with his broad
 views and loving nature might put on his comparisons
 and ready humor. But all Christian Scientists deeply
24 recognize the oneness of Jesus — that he stands alone
 in word and deed, the visible discoverer, founder, de-
 monstrator, and great Teacher of Christianity, whose
27 sandals none may unloose.

 The Board of Lectureship is absolutely inclined to
 be, and is instructed to be, charitable towards all, and


Page 339


1 hating none. The purpose of its members is to sub-
 serve the interest of mankind, and to cement the bonds
3 of Christian brotherhood, whose every link leads up-
 ward in the chain of being. The cardinal points of
 Christian Science cannot be lost sight of, namely — one
6 God, supreme, infinite, and one Christ Jesus.

 The Board of Lectureship is specially requested to be
 wise in discoursing on the great subject of Christian
9 Science.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 FAST DAY IN NEW HAMPSHIRE, 1899


12 Along the lines of progressive Christendom, New
 Hampshire's advancement is marked. Already Massa-
 chusetts has exchanged Fast Day, and all that it for-
15 merly signified, for Patriots' Day, and the observance
 of the holiday illustrates the joy, grace, and glory of lib-
 erty. We read in Holy Writ that the disciples of St.
18 John the Baptist said to the great Master, "Why do we
 and the Pharisees fast oft, but thy disciples fast not?"
 And he answered them in substance: My disciples
21 rejoice in their present Christianity and have no cause
 to mourn; only those who have not the Christ, Truth,
 within them should wear sackcloth.

24 Jesus said to his disciples, "This kind goeth not out but
 by prayer and fasting," but he did not appoint a fast.
 Merely to abstain from eating was not sufficient to meet
27 his demand. The animus of his saying was: Silence
 appetites, passion, and all that wars against Spirit and
 spiritual power. The fact that he healed the sick man
30 without the observance of a material fast confirms this


Page 340


1 conclusion. Jesus attended feasts, but we have no record
 of his observing appointed fasts.

3 St. Paul's days for prayer were every day and every
 hour. He said, "Pray without ceasing." He classed
 the usage of special days and seasons for religious ob-
6 servances and precedents as belonging not to the Chris-
 tian era, but to traditions, old-wives' fables, and endless
 genealogies.

9 The enlightenment, the erudition, the progress of relig-
 ion and medicine in New Hampshire, are in excess of
 other States, as witness her schools, her churches, and
12 her frown on class legislation. In many of the States
 in our Union a simple board of health, clad in a little
 brief authority, has arrogated to itself the prerogative
15 of making laws for the State on the practice of medicine!
 But this attempt is shorn of some of its shamelessness by
 the courts immediately annulling such bills and pluck-
18 ing their plumes through constitutional interpretations.
 Not the tradition of the elders, nor a paltering, timid,
 or dastardly policy, is pursued by the leaders of our rock-
21 ribbed State.

 That the Governor of New Hampshire has suggested to
 his constituents to recur to a religious observance which
24 virtually belongs to the past, should tend to enhance their
 confidence in his intention to rule righteously the affairs
 of state. However, Jesus' example in this, as in all else,
27 suffices for the Christian era. The dark days of our fore-
 fathers and their implorations for peace and plenty have
 passed, and are succeeded by our time of abundance, even
30 the full beneficence of the laws of the universe which
 man's diligence has utilized. Institutions of learning and
 progressive religion light their fires in every home.


Page 341


1 I have one innate joy, and love to breathe it to the
 breeze as God's courtesy. A native of New Hampshire,
3 a child of the Republic, a Daughter of the Revolution, I
 thank God that He has emblazoned on the escutcheon
 of this State, engraven on her granite rocks, and lifted
6 to her giant hills the ensign of religious liberty β€” "Free-
 dom to worship God."



 SPRING GREETING


9 Beloved brethren all over our land and in every land,
 accept your Leader's Spring greeting, while


 The bird of hope is singing
12    A lightsome lay, a cooing call,
 And in her heart is beating
 A love for all β€”
15    " ’Tis peace not power I seek,
 ’Tis meet that man be meek."


 [New York Herald, May 1, 1901]



18       [Extract]


 MRS. EDDY TALKS


 Christian Science has been so much to the fore of late
21 that unusual public interest centres in the personality
 of Mrs. Mary Baker Eddy, the Founder of the cult.
 The granting of interviews is not usual, hence it was
24 a special favor that Mrs. Eddy received the Herald
 correspondent.

 It had been raining all day and was damp without, so
27 the change from the misty air outside to the pleasant


Page 342


1 warmth within the ample, richly furnished house was
 agreeable. Seated in the large parlor, I became aware
3 of a white-haired lady slowly descending the stairs.
 She entered with a gracious smile, walking uprightly and
 with light step, and after a kindly greeting took a seat
6 on a sofa. It was Mrs. Eddy. There was no mis-
 taking that. Older in years, white-haired and frailer,
 but Mrs. Eddy herself. The likeness to the portraits
9 of twenty years ago, so often seen in reproductions, was
 unmistakable. There is no mistaking certain lines that
 depend upon the osseous structure; there is no mistaking
12 the eyes — those eyes the shade of which is so hard to
 catch, whether blue-gray or grayish brown, and which
 are always bright. And when I say frail, let it not be
15 understood that I mean weak, for weak she was not.
 When we were snugly seated in the other and smaller
 parlor across the hall, which serves as a library, Mrs.
18 Eddy sat back to be questioned.

 "The continuity of The Church of Christ, Scientist,"
 she said, in her clear voice, "is assured. It is growing
21 wonderfully. It will embrace all the churches, one by
 one, because in it alone is the simplicity of the oneness
 of God; the oneness of Christ and the perfecting of man
24 stated scientifically."

 "How will it be governed after all now concerned in
 its government shall have passed on?"

27 "It will evolve scientifically. Its essence is evangelical.
 Its government will develop as it progresses."

 "Will there be a hierarchy, or will it be directed by a
30 single earthly ruler?"

 "In time its present rules of service and present ruler-
 ship will advance nearer perfection."


Page 343


1 It was plain that the answers to questions would be
 in Mrs. Eddy's own spirit. She has a rapt way of talk-
3 ing, looking large-eyed into space, and works around a
 question in her own way, reaching an answer often
 unexpectedly after a prolonged exordium. She explained:
6 "No present change is contemplated in the rulership.
 You would ask, perhaps, whether my successor will be a
 woman or a man. I can answer that. It will be a man."

9 "Can you name the man?"

 "I cannot answer that now."

 Here, then, was the definite statement that Mrs. Eddy's
12 immediate successor would, like herself, be the ruler.


 Not a Pope or a Christ


 "I have been called a pope, but surely I have sought
15 no such distinction. I have simply taught as I learned
 while healing the sick. It was in 1866 that the light of
 the Science came first to me. In 1875 I wrote my book.
18 It brought down a shower of abuse upon my head, but
 it won converts from the first. I followed it up, teaching
 and organizing, and trust in me grew. I was the mother,
21 but of course the term pope is used figuratively.

 "A position of authority," she went on, "became
 necessary. Rules were necessary, and I made a code of
24 by-laws, but each one was the fruit of experience and the
 result of prayer. Entrusting their enforcement to others,
 I found at one time that they had five churches under
27 discipline. I intervened. Dissensions are dangerous in
 an infant church. I wrote to each church in tenderness,
 in exhortation, and in rebuke, and so brought all back to
30 union and love again. If that is to be a pope, then you


Page 344


1 can judge for yourself. I have even been spoken of as a
 Christ, but to my understanding of Christ that is impos-
3 sible. If we say that the sun stands for God, then all his
 rays collectively stand for Christ, and each separate ray
 for men and women. God the Father is greater than
6 Christ, but Christ is 'one with the Father,' and so the
 mystery is scientifically explained. There can be but
 one Christ."

9 "And the soul of man?"

 "It is not the spirit of God, inhabiting clay and then
 withdrawn from it, but God preserving individuality and
12 personality to the end. I hold it absurd to say that when
 a man dies, the man will be at once better than he was
 before death. How can it be? The individuality of him
15 must make gradual approaches to Soul's perfection."

 "Do you reject utterly the bacteria theory of the
 propagation of disease?"

18 "Oh," with a prolonged inflection, "entirely. If I
 harbored that idea about a disease, I should think myself
 in danger of catching it."


21    About Infectious Diseases


 "Then as to the laws — the health laws of the States
 on the question of infectious and contagious diseases.
24 How does Christian Science stand as to them?"

 "I say, 'Render to CΓ¦sar the things that are CΓ¦sar's.'
 We cannot force perfection on the world. Were vaccina-
27 tion of any avail, I should tremble for mankind; but,
 knowing it is not, and that the fear of catching small-
 pox is more dangerous than any material infection, I
30 say: Where vaccination is compulsory, let your children


Page 345


1 be vaccinated, and see that your mind is in such a state
 that by your prayers vaccination will do the children no
3 harm. So long as Christian Scientists obey the laws, I
 do not suppose their mental reservations will be thought
 to matter much. But every thought tells, and Christian
6 Science will overthrow false knowledge in the end."

 "What is your attitude to science in general? Do you
 oppose it?"

9  "Not," with a smile, "if it is really science."

 "Well, electricity, engineering, the telephone, the steam
 engine — are these too material for Christian Science?"

12 "No; only false science — healing by drugs. I was a
 sickly child. I was dosed with drugs until they had no
 effect on me. The doctors said I would live if the drugs
15 could be made to act on me. Then homoeopathy came
 like blessed relief to me, but I found that when I pre-
 scribed pellets without any medication they acted just
18 the same and healed the sick. How could I believe in
 a science of drugs?"

 "But surgery?"

21 "The work done by the surgeon is the last healing that
 will be vouchsafed to us, or rather attained by us, as we
 near a state of spiritual perfection. At present I am
24 conservative about advice on surgical cases."

 "But the pursuit of modern material inventions?"

 "Oh, we cannot oppose them. They all tend to newer,
27 finer, more etherealized ways of living. They seek the finer
 essences. They light the way to the Church of Christ.
 We use them, we make them our figures of speech.
30 They are preparing the way for us."

 We talked on many subjects, some only of which are
 here touched upon, and her views, strictly and always


Page 346


1 from the standpoint of Christian Science, were continu-
 ally surprising. She talks as one who has lived with her
3 subject for a lifetime, β€” an ordinary lifetime; and so
 far from being puzzled by any question, welcomes it as
 another opportunity for presenting another view of her
6 religion.

 Those who have been anticipating nature and declaring
 Mrs. Eddy non-existent may learn authoritatively from
9 the Herald that she is in the flesh and in health. Soon
 after I reached Concord on my return from Pleasant
 View, Mrs. Eddy's carriage drove into town and made
12 several turns about the court-house before returning.
 She was inside, and as she passed me the same ex-
 pression of looking forward, thinking, thinking, was on
15 her face.

 CONCORD, N. H.,
 Tuesday, April 30, 1901



 MRS. EDDY'S SUCCESSOR


 In a recent interview which appeared in the columns
 of the New York Herald, the Rev. Mary Baker Eddy,
21 Discoverer and Founder of Christian Science, stated that
 her successor would be a man. Various conjectures
 having arisen as to whether she had in mind any particu-
24 lar person when the statement was made, Mrs. Eddy
 gave the following to the Associated Press, May 16,
 1901: β€”


27 "I did say that a man would be my future successor.
 By this I did not mean any man to-day on earth.

 "Science and Health makes it plain to all Christian
30 Scientists that the manhood and womanhood of God


Page 347


1 have already been revealed in a degree through Christ
 Jesus and Christian Science, His two witnesses. What
3 remains to lead on the centuries and reveal my successor,
 is man in the image and likeness of the Father-Mother
 God, man the generic term for mankind."



 GIFT OF A LOVING-CUP


 The Executive Members of The Mother Church of
 Christ, Scientist, will please accept my heartfelt acknowl-
9 edgment of their beautiful gift to me, a loving-cup, pre-
 sented July 16, 1903. The exquisite design of boughs
 encircling this cup, illustrated by Keats' touching couplet,


12    Ah happy, happy boughs, that cannot shed
 Your leaves, nor ever bid the Spring adieu!


 would almost suggest that nature had reproduced her
15 primal presence, bough, bird, and song, to salute me.
 The twelve beautiful pearls that crown this cup call to
 mind the number of our great Master's first disciples, and
18 the parable of the priceless pearl which purchases our
 field of labor in exchange for all else.

 I shall treasure my loving-cup with all its sweet
21 associations.


 [Special contribution to "Bohemia." A symposium]



 FUNDAMENTAL CHRISTIAN SCIENCE


24 Most thinkers concede that Science is the law of God;
 that matter is not a law-maker; that man is not the
 author of Science, and that a phenomenon is chimerical,
27 unless it be the manifestation of a fixed Principle whose
 noumenon is God and whose phenomenon is Science.


Page 348


1 My discovery that mankind is absolutely healed of so-
 called disease and injuries by other than drugs, surgery,
3 hygiene, electricity, magnetism, or will-power, induced a
 deep research, which proved conclusively that all effect
 must be the offspring of a universal cause. I sought this
6 cause, not within but ab extra, and I found it was God
 made manifest in the flesh, and understood through divine
 Science. Then I was healed, and the greatest of all ques-
9 tions was solved sufficiently to give a reason for the hope
 that was within me.

 The religious departure from divine Science sprang from
12 the belief that the man Jesus, rather than his divine Prin-
 ciple, God, saves man, and that materia medica heals him.
 The writer's departure from such a religion was based upon
15 her discovery that neither man nor materia medica, but
 God, heals and saves mankind.

 Here, however, was no stopping-place, since Science
18 demanded a rational proof that the divine Mind heals
 the sick and saves the sinner. God unfolded the way, the
 demonstration thereof was made, and the certainty of its
21 value to the race firmly established. I had found unmis-
 takably an actual, unfailing causation, enshrined in the
 divine Principle and in the laws of man and the universe,
24 which, never producing an opposite effect, demonstrated
 Christianity and proved itself Science, for it healed the
 sick and reformed the sinner on a demonstrable Principle
27 and given rule. The human demonstrator of this Science
 may mistake, but the Science remains the law of God β€”
 infallible, eternal. Divine Life, Truth, Love is the basic
30 Principle of all Science, it solves the problem of being;
 and nothing that worketh ill can enter into the solution
 of God's problems.


Page 349


1 God is Mind, and divine Mind was first chronologi-
 cally, is first potentially, and is the healer to whom all
3 things are possible. A scientific state of health is a
 consciousness of health, holiness, immortality — a con-
 sciousness gained through Christ, Truth; while disease
6 is a mental state or error that Truth destroys. It is self-
 evident that matter, or the body, cannot cause disease,
 since disease is in a sense susceptible of both ease and
9 dis-ease, and matter is not sensible. Kant, Locke, Berke-
 ley, Tyndall, and Spencer afford little aid in understand-
 ing divine metaphysics or its therapeutics. Christian
12 Science is a divine largess, a gift of God — understood
 by and divinely natural to him who sits at the feet of
 Jesus clothed in truth, who is putting off the hypothesis
15 of matter because he is conscious of the allness of God β€”
 "looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of our faith."
 Thus the great Way-shower, invested with glory, is under-
18 stood, and his words and works illustrate "the way, the
 truth, and the life."
~  Divine modes or manifestations are natural, beyond
21 the so-called natural sciences and human philosophy,
 because they are spiritual, and coexist with the God of
 nature in absolute Science. The laws of God, or divine
24 Mind, obtain not in material phenomena, or phenomenal
 evil, which is lawless and traceable to mortal mind β€”
 human will divorced from Science.

27 Inductive or deductive reasoning is correct only as it
 is spiritual, induced by love and deduced from God,
 Spirit; only as it makes manifest the infinite nature,
30 including all law and supplying all the needs of man.
 Wholly hypothetical, inductive reasoning reckons creation
 as its own creator, seeks cause in effect, and from atom


Page 350


1 and dust draws its conclusions of Deity and man, law and
 gospel, leaving science at the beck of material phenomena,
3 or leaving it out of the question. To begin with the
 divine noumenon, Mind, and to end with the phenom-
 enon, matter, is minus divine logic and plus human hy-
6 pothesis, with its effects, sin, disease, and death. It was
 in this dilemma that revelation, uplifting human reason,
 came to the writer's rescue, when calmly and rationally,
9 though faintly, she spiritually discerned the divine idea
 of the cosmos and Science of man.



 WHITHER?


12 Father, did'st not Thou the dark wave treading
 Lift from despair the struggler with the sea?
 And heed'st Thou not the scalding tear man's shedding,
15 And know'st Thou not the pathway glad and free?


 This weight of anguish which they blindly bind
 On earth, this bitter searing to the core of love;
18 This crushing out of health and peace, mankind β€”
 Thou all, Thou infinite — dost doom above.


 Oft mortal sense is darkened unto death
21 (The Stygian shadow of a world of glee);
 The old foundations of an early faith
 Sunk from beneath man, whither shall he flee?


24 To Love divine, whose kindling mighty rays
 Brighten the horoscope of crumbling creeds,
 Dawn Truth delightful, crowned with endless days,
27 And Science ripe in prayer, in word, and deeds.


Page 351



 A LETTER FROM OUR LEADER


 With our Leader's kind permission, the Sentinel is
3 privileged to publish her letter of recent date, addressed
 to Mr. John C. Higdon of St. Louis, Mo. This letter
 is especially interesting on account of its beautiful tribute
6 to Free Masonry.


 Beloved Student: β€” Your interesting letter was handed
 to me duly. This is my earliest moment in which to
9 answer it.

 "Know Thyself," the title of your gem quoted, is
 indeed a divine command, for the morale of Free Masonry
12 is above ethics — it touches the hem of his garment
 who spake divinely.

 It was truly Masonic, tender, grand in you to remember
15 me as the widow of a Mason. May you and I and all
 mankind meet in that hour of Soul where are no part-
 ings, no pain.

18    Lovingly yours in Christ,
 MARY BAKER EDDY

 PLEASANT VIEW, CONCORD, N. H.,
21    February 9, 1906



 TAKE NOTICE


 I have not read Gerhardt C. Mars' book, "The Inter-
24 pretation of Life," therefore I have not endorsed it, and
 any assertions to the contrary are false. Christian Scien-
 tists are not concerned with philosophy; divine Science
27 is all they need, or can have in reality.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
30    June 24, 1908


Page 352



 RECOGNITION OF BLESSINGS


 REVEREND MARY BAKER EDDY,
3  Chestnut Hill, Mass.


 Beloved Leader: β€” Informally assembled, we, the ushers
 of your church, desire to express our recognition of the
6 blessings that have come to us through the peculiar priv-
 ileges we enjoy in this church work. We are prompted
 to acknowledge our debt of gratitude to you for your
9 life of spirituality, with its years of tender ministry, yet
 we know that the real gratitude is what is proved in
 better lives.

12 It is our earnest prayer that we may so reflect in our
 thoughts and acts the teachings of Christian Science that
 our daily living may be a fitting testimony of the efficacy
15 of our Cause in the regeneration of mankind.

 THE USHERS OF THE MOTHER CHURCH

 BOSTON, MASS., October 9, 1908


 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


 Beloved Ushers of The Mother Church of Christ, Sci-
 entist: β€” I thank you not only for your tender letter to
21 me, but for ushering into our church the hearers and the
 doers of God's Word.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

24 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 October 12, 1908



 MRS. EDDY'S THANKS


27 Beloved Christian Scientists: β€” Accept my thanks for
 your successful plans for the first issue of The Christian
 Science Monitor. My desire is that every Christian


Page 353


1 Scientist, and as many others as possible, subscribe for
 and read our daily newspaper.

3      MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 November 16, 1908



6 [Extract from the leading Editorial in Vol. 1, No. 1, of The
 Christian Science Monitor, November 25, 1908]


 SOMETHING IN A NAME


9 I have given the name to all the Christian Science
 periodicals. The first was The Christian Science Jour-
 nal, designed to put on record the divine Science of
12 Truth; the second I entitled Sentinel, intended to hold
 guard over Truth, Life, and Love; the third, Der Herold
 der Christian Science, to proclaim the universal activity
15 and availability of Truth; the next I named Monitor,
 to spread undivided the Science that operates unspent.
 The object of the Monitor is to injure no man, but to
18 bless all mankind.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 ARTICLE XXII, SECTION 17


21 MRS. EDDY'S ROOM. β€” SECTION 17. The room in
 The Mother Church formerly known as "Mother's
 Room" shall hereafter be closed to visitors.


24 There is nothing in this room now of any special in-
 terest. "Let the dead bury their dead," and the spiritual
 have all place and power.

27     MARY BAKER EDDY


Page 354



 TO WHOM IT MAY CONCERN
 In view of complaints from the field, because of alleged
3 misrepresentations by persons offering Bibles and other
 books for sale which they claim have been endorsed by
 me, it is due the field to state that I recommend nothing
6 but what is published or sold by The Christian Science
 Publishing Society. Christian Scientists are under no
 obligation to buy books for which my endorsement is
9 claimed.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
12   April 28, 1909



 EXTEMPORE


 JANUARY 1, 1910


15    I
 O blessings infinite!
 O glad New Year!
18    Sweet sign and substance
 Of God's presence here.


 II
21    Give us not only angels' songs,
 But Science vast, to which belongs
 The tongue of angels
24    And the song of songs.


 MARY BAKER EDDY


 [The above lines were written extemporaneously by
27 Mrs. Eddy on New Year's morning. The members of her


Page 355


1 household were with her at the time, and it was gratifying
 to them, as it will be to the field, to see in her spiritualized
3 thought and mental vigor a symbol of the glad New Year
 on which we have just entered. β€” EDITOR Sentinel.



 MEN IN OUR RANKS


6 A letter from a student in the field says there is a grave
 need for more men in Christian Science practice.

 I have not infrequently hinted at this. However, if
9 the occasion demands it, I will repeat that men are very
 important factors in our field of labor for Christian
 Science. The male element is a strong supporting arm
12 to religion as well as to politics, and we need in our ranks
 of divine energy, the strong, the faithful, the untiring
 spiritual armament.

15    MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
 February 7, 1910



 A PΓ†AN OF PRAISE


 "Behind a frowning providence
 He hides a shining face."


21 The Christian Scientists at Mrs. Eddy's home are
 the happiest group on earth. Their faces shine with
 the reflection of light and love; their footsteps are not
24 weary; their thoughts are upward; their way is onward,
 and their light shines. The world is better for this
 happy group of Christian Scientists; Mrs. Eddy is hap-
27 pier because of them; God is glorified in His reflection
 of peace, love, joy.


Page 356


1 Whenwill mankind awake to know their present owner-
 ship of all good, and praise and love the spot where God
3 dwells most conspicuously in His reflection of love and
 leadership ? When will the world waken to the privilege
 of knowing God, the liberty and glory of His presence,
6 β€” where


 "He plants His footsteps in the sea
 And rides upon the storm."


9     MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
 April 20, 1910



 A STATEMENT BY MRS. EDDY


 Editor Christian Science Sentinel: β€” In reply to in-
 quiries, will you please state that within the last five
15 years I have given no assurance, no encouragement nor
 consent to have my picture issued, other than the ones
 now and heretofore presented in Science and Health.

18    MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
 July 18, 1910



 THE WAY OF WISDOM


 No man can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one,
 and love the other; or else he will hold to the one, and despise the
24 other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. β€” MATTHEW 6: 24.


 The infinite is one, and this one is Spirit; Spirit is
 God, and this God is infinite good.

27 This simple statement of oneness is the only possible
 correct version of Christian Science. God being infinite,


Page 357


1 He is the only basis of Science; hence materiality is wholly
 apart from Christian Science, and is only a "Suffer it to
3 be so now" until we arrive at the spiritual fulness of God,
 Spirit, even the divine idea of Christian Science, β€”
 Christ, born of God, the offspring of Spirit, β€” wherein
6 matter has neither part nor portion, because matter is the
 absolute opposite of spiritual means, manifestation, and
 demonstration. The only incentive of a mistaken sense
9 is malicious animal magnetism, β€” the name of all evil, β€”
 and this must be understood.

 I have crowned The Mother Church building with the
12 spiritual modesty of Christian Science, which is its jewel.
 When my dear brethren in New York desire to build
 higher,β€”to enlarge their phylacteries and demonstrate
15 Christian Science to a higher extent, β€” they must begin
 on a wholly spiritual foundation, than which there is no
 other, and proportionably estimate their success and
18 glory of achievement only as they build upon the rock of
 Christ, the spiritual foundation. This will open the way,
 widely and impartially, to their never-ending success, β€”
21 to salvation and eternal Christian Science.

 Spirit is infinite; therefore Spirit is all. "There is no
 matter" is not only the axiom of true Christian Science,
24 but it is the only basis upon which this Science can be
 demonstrated.



 A LETTER BY MRS. EDDY


27 MRS. AUGUSTA E. STETSON, NEW YORK CITY


 Beloved Student: β€” I have just finished reading your
 interesting letter. I thank you for acknowledging me as
30 your Leader, and I know that every true follower of


Page 358


1 Christian Science abides by the definite rules which de-
 monstrate the true following of their Leader; therefore,
3 if you are sincere in your protestations and are doing as
 you say you are, you will be blessed in your obedience.

 The Scriptures say, "Watch and pray, that ye enter
6 not into temptation." You are aware that animal mag-
 netism is the opposite of divine Science, and that this
 opponent is the means whereby the conflict against
9 Truth is engendered and developed. Beloved ! you need
 to watch and pray that the enemy of good cannot separate
 you from your Leader and best earthly friend.

12 You have been duly informed by me that, however
 much I desire to read all that you send to me, I have not
 the time to do so. The Christian Science Publishing
15 Society will settle the question whether or not they shall
 publish your poems. It is part of their duties to relieve
 me of so much labor.

18 I thank you for the money you send me which was
 given you by your students. I shall devote it to a worthy
 and charitable purpose.

21 Mr. Adam Dickey is my secretary, through whom all
 my business is transacted.

 Give my best wishes and love to your dear students
24 and church.

 Lovingly your teacher and Leader,

 MARY BAKER EDDY

27 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 July 12, 1909



 TAKE NOTICE


30 I approve the By-laws of The Mother Church, and
 require the Christian Science Board of Directors to main-


Page 359


1 tain them and sustain them. These Directors do not
 act contrary to the rules of the Church Manual, neither
3 do they trouble me with their difficulties with individ-
 uals in their own church or with the members of branch
 churches.

6 My province as a Leader — as the Discoverer and
 Founder of Christian Science — is not to interfere in
 cases of discipline, and I hereby publicly declare that I
9 am not personally involved in the affairs of the church in
 any other way than through my written and published
 rules, all of which can be read by the individual who
12 desires to inform himself of the facts.

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BROOKLINE, MASS.,
15  October 12, 1909



 A LETTER FROM MRS. EDDY


 In the Sentinel of July 31, 1909, there appeared under
18 the heading "None good but one," a number of quota-
 tions from a composite letter, dated July 19, which had
 been written to Mrs. Augusta E. Stetson by twenty-four
21 of her students who then occupied offices in the building
 of First Church of Christ, Scientist, of New York, and
 were known as "the practitioners." This letter was for-
24 warded to Mrs. Eddy by Mrs. Stetson with the latter's
 unqualified approval. Upon receipt of this letter Mrs.
 Eddy wrote to Mrs. Stetson as follows: β€”


27 My Dear Student: β€” Awake and arise from this temp-
 tation produced by animal magnetism upon yourself,
 allowing your students to deify you and me. Treat your-
30 self for it and get your students to help you rise out of it.


Page 360


1 It will be your destruction if you do not do this. Answer
 this letter immediately.

3        As ever, lovingly your teacher,

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BROOKLINE, MASS.,
6 July 23, 1909



 A LETTER BY MRS. EDDY (1)


 TO THE BOARD OF TRUSTEES, FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST
9        NEW YORK CITY


 Beloved Brethren: β€” In consideration of the present
 momentous question at issue in First Church of Christ,
12 Scientist, New York City, I am constrained to say, if I
 can settle this church difficulty amicably by a few words,
 as many students think I can, I herewith cheerfully
15 subscribe these words of love: β€”

 My beloved brethren in First Church of Christ, Sci-
 entist, New York City, I advise you with all my soul to
18 support the Directors of The Mother Church, and unite
 with those in your church who are supporting The Mother
 Church Directors. Abide in fellowship with and obedi-
21 ence to The Mother Church, and in this way God will
 bless and prosper you. This I know, for He has proved
 it to me for forty years in succession.

24       Lovingly yours,

 MARY BAKER EDDY

 BROOKLINE, MASS.,
27   November 13, 1909



 A LETTER BY MRS. EDDY


 My Dear Student: β€” Your favor of the 10th instant is
30 at hand. God is above your teacher, your healer, or any


 (1) The text here given is that of the original letter as sent by Mrs. Eddy, and
 published in the Christian Science Sentinel of November 20, 1909. This letter was
 republished in the Sentinel of December 4, 1909, at Mrs. Eddy's request, with
 the words "in Truth" inserted after the word "Abide."


Page 361


1 earthly friend. Follow the directions of God as simplified
 in Christian Science, and though it be through deserts
3 He will direct you into the paths of peace.

 I do not presume to give you personal instruction as
 to your relations with other students. All I say is stated
6 in Christian Science to be used as a model. Please find
 it there, and do not bring your Leader into a personal
 conflict.

9 I have not seen Mrs. Stetson for over a year, and have
 not written to her since August 30, 1909.

 Sincerely yours,

12   MARY BAKER EDDY

 BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 December 11, 1909



 A TELEGRAM AND MRS. EDDY'S REPLY


 [Telegram]


 MRS. MARY BAKER EDDY,
18   Chestnut Hill, Mass.


 Beloved Leader: β€” We rejoice that our church has
 promptly made its demonstration by action at its annual
21 meeting in accordance with your desire for a truly demo-
 cratic and liberal government.

 BOARD OF TRUSTEES,
24    FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 NEW YORK, N. Y.,
 CHARLES DEAN, Chairman,
27   ARTHUR O. PROBST, Clerk

 NEW YORK, N. Y.,
 January 19, 1910


Page 362


 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


 CHARLES A. DEAN, CHAIRMAN BOARD of TRUSTEES,
3     FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, NEW YORK CITY


 Beloved Brethren: β€” I rejoice with you in the victory of
 right over wrong, of Truth over error.

6        MARY BAKER EDDY

 CHESTNUT HILL, MASS.,
 January 20, 1910



 A LETTER AND MRS. EDDY'S REPLY


 MRS. MARY BAKER EDDY,
 Chestnut Hill, Mass.


12 Revered Leader, Counsellor, and Friend: β€” The Trustees
 and Readers of all the Christian Science churches and
 societies of Greater New York, for the first time gath-
15 ered in one place with one accord, to confer harmoniously
 and unitedly in promoting and enlarging the activities
 of the Cause of Christian Science in this community, as
18 their first act send you their loving greetings.

 With hearts filled with gratitude to God, we rejoice in
 your inspired leadership, in your wise counselling. We
21 revere and cherish your friendship, and assure you that
 it is our intention to take such action as will unite the
 churches and societies in this field in the bonds of Chris-
24 tian love and fellowship, thus demonstrating practical
 Christianity.

 Gratefully yours,

27    FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 SECOND CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,


Page 363


1   THIRD CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 FOURTH CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
3   FIFTH CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 SIXTH CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST,
 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, Brooklyn,
6   FOURTH CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, Brooklyn,
 FIRST CHURCH OF CHRIST, SCIENTIST, Staten Island,
 CHRISTIAN SCIENCE SOCIETY, Bronx,
9   CHRISTIAN SCIENCE SOCIETY, Flushing, L. I.,

 By the Committee

 NEW YORK, N. Y.,
12  February 5, 1910


 Mrs. Eddy's Reply


 This proof that sanity and Science govern the Christian
15 Science churches in Greater New York is soul inspiring.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 [The Christian Science Journal, July, 1895. Reprinted in Christian
18 Science Sentinel, November 13, 1909]```  TO THE MEMBERS OF THE CHRISTIAN SCIENTIST ASSOCIATION
21 My address before the Christian Scientist Associa-


 tion has been misrepresented and evidently misunder-
 stood by some students. The gist of the whole subject
24 was not to malpractise unwittingly. In order to be
 sure that one is not doing this, he must avoid naming,
 in his mental treatment, any other individual but the
27 patient whom he is treating, and practise only to heal.
 Any deviation from this direct rule is more or less


Page 364


1 dangerous. No mortal is infallible, β€” hence the Scrip-
 ture, "Judge no man."


 . . .


3 The rule of mental practice in Christian Science is
 strictly to handle no other mentality but the mind of
 your patient, and treat this mind to be Christly. Any
6 departure from this golden rule is inadmissible. This
 mental practice includes and inculcates the command-
 ment, "Thou shalt have no other gods before me."
9 Animal magnetism, hypnotism, etc., are disarmed by
 the practitioner who excludes from his own conscious-
 ness, and that of his patients, all sense of the realism
12 of any other cause or effect save that which cometh
 from God. And he should teach his students to defend
 themselves from all evil, and to heal the sick, by
15 recognizing the supremacy and allness of good. This
 epitomizes what heals all manner of sickness and dis-
 ease, moral or physical.

 MARY BAKER EDDY



 [Christian Science Sentinel, February 15, 1908]


 CONCORD, N. H., TO MRS. EDDY, AND MRS. EDDY'S REPLY


 THE ESTEEM IN WHICH MRS. EDDY IS HELD IN CONCORD HAS
 BEEN OFFICIALLY EXPRESSED IN THE FOLLOWING PREAMBLE
24 AND RESOLUTIONS, WHICH WERE UNANIMOUSLY ADOPTED BY
 THE BOARD OF ALDERMEN AND COMMON COUNCIL OF THAT
 CITY AND THUS HAVE BECOME A PART OF CONCORD’S RECORDS


27    Concord, New Hampshire, to Rev. Mary Baker G.
 Eddy


 Whereas, Rev. Mary Baker G. Eddy has decided to
30 make her home in Massachusetts, after a residence of
 nineteen years in Concord, and


Page 365


1 Whereas, her residence here has been the source of so
 much good to the city, and

3 Whereas, the most kindly and helpful relations have
 ever existed between Mrs. Eddy and Concord and Con-
 cord people,

6 Be It Resolved, That the City of Concord, through its
 Board of Aldermen and Common Council, in joint
 convention, convey to Mrs. Eddy,

9  1. Its appreciation of her life in its midst,

 2. Its regrets over her departure, and

 3. The hope that though absent she will always
12 cherish a loving regard for the city, near which she was
 born, and for its people, among whom she has lived for
 so many years.

15 Be It Resolved, That the Mayor and City Clerk be
 authorized and instructed to sign and attest this testi-
 monial in behalf of the City Council.

18 Done this tenth day of February, nineteen hundred
 and eight.

 CHARLES R. CORNING, Mayor
21 Attest: HENRY E. CHAMBERLAIN, City Clerk


 Mrs. Eddy's Reply
 TO THE HONORABLE MAYOR AND CITY COUNCIL,
24    CONCORD, N. H.
 Gentlemen: β€” I have not only the pleasure, but the
 honor of replying to the City Council of Concord, in
27 joint convention assembled, and to Alderman Cressy,
 for the kindly resolutions passed by your honorable
 body, and for which I thank you deeply. Lest I should
30 acknowledge more than I deserve of praise, I leave their
 courteous opinions to their good judgment.


Page 366


1 My early days hold rich recollections of associations
 with your churches and institutions, and memory has a
3 distinct model in granite of the good folk in Concord,
 which, like the granite of their State, steadfast and
 enduring, has hinted this quality to other states and
6 nations all over the world.

 My home influence, early education, and church
 experience, have unquestionably ripened into the fruits
9 of my present religious experience, and for this I prize
 them. May I honor this origin and deserve the con-
 tinued friendship and esteem of the people in my native
12 State.

 Sincerely yours,

 MARY BAKER G. EDDY

15 BOX G, BROOKLINE, MASS.,
 February 13, 1908